Sails long and
white as swan's wings carried the ship Farflyer through summer air
down the bay from the Armed Cliffs toward Gont Port. She glided into
the still water landward of the jetty, so sure and graceful a
creature of the wind that a couple of townsmen fishing off the old
quay cheered her in, waving to the crewmen and the one passenger
standing in the prow.
He was a thin man
with a thin pack and an old black cloak, probably a sorcerer or small
tradesman, nobody important. The two fishermen watched the bustle on
the dock and the ship's deck as she made ready to unload her cargo,
and only glanced at the passenger with a bit of curiosity when as he
left the ship one of the sailors made a gesture behind his back,
thumb and first and last finger of the left hand all pointed at him:
May you never come back!
He hesitated on the
pier, shouldered his pack, and set off into the streets of Gont Port.
They were busy streets, and he got at once into the Fish Market,
abrawl with hawkers and hagglers, paving stones glittering with fish
scales and brine. If he had a way, he soon lost it among the carts
and stalls and crowds and the cold stares of dead fish.
A tall old woman
turned from the stall where she had been insulting the freshness of
the herring and the veracity of the fishwife. Seeing her glaring at
him, the stranger said unwisely, "Would you have the kindness to
tell me the way I should go for Re Albi?"
"Why, go drown
yourself in pig slop for a start," said the tall woman and
strode off, leaving the stranger wilted and dismayed. But the
fishwife, seeing a chance to seize the high moral ground, blared out,
"Re Albi is it? Re Albi you want, man? Speak up then! The Old
Mage's house, that would be what you'd want at Re Albi. Yes it would.
So you go out by the corner there, and up Elvers Lane there, see,
till you reach the tower…"
Once he was out of
the market, broad streets led him uphill and past the massive
watchtower to a town gate. Two stone dragons large as life guarded
it, teeth the length of his forearm, stone eyes glaring blindly out
over the town and the bay. A lounging guard told him just turn left
at the top of the road and he'd be in Re Albi. "And keep on
through the village for the Old Mage's house," the guard said.
So he went trudging
up the road, which was pretty steep, looking up as he went to the
steeper slopes and far peak of Gont Mountain that overhung its island
like a cloud.
It was a long road
and a hot day. He soon had his black cloak off and went on bareheaded
in his shirtsleeves, but he had not thought to find water or buy food
in the town, or had been too shy to, maybe, for he was not a man
familiar with cities or at ease with strangers.
After several long
miles he caught up to a cart which he had seen far up the dusty way
for a long time as a dark blot in a white blot of dust. It creaked
and streaked along at the pace of a pair of small oxen that looked as
old, wrinkled, and unhopeful as tortoises. He greeted the carter, who
resembled the oxen. The carter said nothing, but blinked.
"Might there
be a spring of water up the road?" the stranger asked.
The carter slowly
shook his head. After a long time he said, "No." A while
later he said, "There ain't."
They all plodded
along. Discouraged, the stranger found it hard to go any faster than
the oxen, about a mile an hour, maybe.
He became aware
that the carter was wordlessly reaching something out to him: a big
clay jug wrapped round with wicker. He took it, and finding it very
heavy, drank his fill of the water, leaving it scarcely lighter when
he passed it back with his thanks.
"Climb on,"
said the carter after a while.
"Thanks. I'll
walk. How far might it be to Re Albi?"
The wheels creaked.
The oxen heaved deep sighs, first one, then the other. Their dusty
hides smelled sweet in the hot sunlight.
"Ten mile,"
the carter said. He thought, and said, "Or twelve." After a
while he said, "No less."
"I'd better
walk on, then," said the stranger.
Refreshed by the
water, he was able to get ahead of the oxen, and they and the cart
and the carter were a good way behind him when he heard the carter
speak again. "Going to the Old Mages house," he said. If it
was a question, it seemed to need no answer. The traveler walked on.
When he started up
the road it had still lain in the vast shadow of the mountain, but
when he turned left to the little village he took to be Re Albi, the
sun was blazing in the western sky and under it the sea lay white as
steel.
There were
scattered small houses, a small dusty square, a fountain with one
thin stream of water falling. He made for that, drank from his hands
again and again, put his head under the stream, rubbed cool water
through his hair and let it run down his arms, and sat for a while on
the stone rim of the fountain, observed in attentive silence by two
dirty little boys and a dirty little girl.
"He ain't the
farrier," one of the boys said.
The traveler combed
his wet hair back with his ringers.
"He'll be
going to the Old Mage's house," said the girl, "stupid."
"Yerraghh!"
said the boy, drawing his face into a horrible lopsided grimace by
pulling at it with one hand while he clawed the air with the other.
"You watch it,
Stony," said the other boy.
"Take you
there," said the girl to the traveler.
"Thanks,"
he said, and stood up wearily.
"Got no staff,
see," said one boy, and the other said, "Never said he
did." Both watched with sullen eyes as the stranger followed the
girl out of the village to a path that led north through rocky
pastures that dropped down steep to the left.
The sun glared on
the sea. His eyes dazzled, and the high horizon and the blowing wind
made him dizzy. The child was a little hopping shadow ahead of him.
He stopped.
"Come on,"
she said, but she too stopped. He came up to her on the path.
"There," she said. He saw a wooden house near the cliff's
edge, still some way ahead.
"I ain't
afraid," the girl said. "I fetch their eggs lots of times
for Stony's dad to carry to market. Once she gave me peaches. The old
lady. Stony says I stole 'em but I never. Go on. She ain't there.
Neither of em is."
She stood still,
pointing to the house.
"Nobody's
there?"
"The old man
is. Old Hawk, he is."
The traveler went
on. The child stood watching him till he went round the corner of the
house.
Two goats stared
down at the stranger from a steep fenced field. A scatter of hens and
half-grown chicks pecked and conversed softly in long grass under
peach and plum trees. A man was standing on a short ladder against
the trunk of one of the trees; his head was in the leaves, and the
traveler could see only his bare brown legs.
"Hello,"
the traveler said, and after a while said it again a bit louder.
The leaves shook
and the man came briskly down the ladder. He carried a handful of
plums, and when he got off the ladder he batted away a couple of bees
drawn by the juice. He came forward, a short, straight-backed man,
grey hair tied back from a handsome, timeworn face. He looked to be
seventy or so. Old scars, four white seams, ran from his left
cheekbone down to the jaw. His gaze was clear, direct, intense.
"They're ripe," he said, "though they'll be even
better tomorrow." He held out his handful of little yellow
plums.
"Lord
Sparrowhawk," the stranger said huskily. "Arch-mage."
The old man gave a
curt nod of acknowledgment. "Come into the shade," he said.
The stranger
followed him, and did what he was told: he sat down on a wooden bench
in the shade of the gnarled tree nearest the house; he accepted the
plums, now rinsed and served in a wicker basket; he ate one, then
another, then a third. Questioned, he admitted that he had eaten
nothing that day. He sat while the master of the house went into it,
coming out presently with bread and cheese and half an onion. The
guest ate the bread and cheese and onion and drank the cup of cold
water his host brought him. The host ate plums to keep him company.
"You look
tired. How far have you come?"
"From Roke."
The old man's
expression was hard to read. He said only, "I wouldn't have
guessed that."
"I'm from
Taon, lord. I went from Taon to Roke. And there the Lord Patterner
told me I should come here. To you."
"Why?"
It was a formidable
gaze.
"Because you
walked across the dark land living…" The stranger's husky
voice died away.
The old man picked
up the words: "And came to the far shores of the day. Yes. But
that was spoken in prophecy of the coming of our King, Lebannen."
"You were with
him, lord."
"I was. And he
gained his kingdom there. But I left mine there. So don't call me by
any title. Hawk, or Sparrowhawk, as you please. And how shall I call
you?"
The man murmured
his use-name: "Alder."
Food and drink and
shade and sitting down had clearly eased him, but he still looked
exhausted. He had a weary sadness in him; his face was full of it.
The old man had
spoken to him with a hard edge in his voice, but that was gone when
he said, "Let's put off talking for a bit. You've sailed near a
thousand miles and walked fifteen uphill. And I've got to water the
beans and the lettuce id all, since my wife and daughter left the
garden in my charge. So rest a while. We can talk in the cool of the
evening. Or the cool of the morning. There's seldom as much hurry as
I used to think there was."
When he came back
by half an hour later his guest was flat on his back asleep in the
cool grass under the peach trees.
The man who had
been Archmage of Earthsea stopped with a bucket in one hand and a hoe
in the other and looked down at the sleeping stranger.
"Alder,"
he said under his breath. "What's the trouble you bring with
you, Alder?"
It seemed to him
that if he wanted to know the man's true name he would know it only
by thinking, by putting his mind to it, as he might have done when he
was a mage.
But he did not know
it, and thinking would not give it to him, and he was not a mage.
He knew nothing
about this Alder and must wait to be told. "Never trouble
trouble," he told himself, and went on to water the beans.
As soon as the
sun's light was cut offby a low rock wall that ran along the top of
the cliff near the house, the cool of the shadow roused the sleeper.
He sat up with a shiver, then stood up, a bit stiff and bewildered,
with grass seed in his hair. Seeing his host filling buckets at the
well and lugging them to the garden, he went to help him.
"Three or four
more ought to do it," said the ex-Archmage, doling out water to
the roots of a row of young cabbages. The smell of wet dirt was
pleasant in the dry, warm air. The westering light came golden and
broken over the ground.
They sat on a long
bench beside the house door to see the sun go down. Sparrowhawk had
brought out a bottle and two squat, thick cups of greenish glass. "My
wife's son's wine," he said. "From Oak Farm, in Middle
Valley. A good year, seven years back." It was a flinty red wine
that warmed Alder right through. The sun set in calm clarity. The
wind was down. Birds in the orchard trees made a few closing remarks.
Alder had been
amazed when he learned from the Master Patterner of Roke that the
Archmage Sparrowhawk, that man of legend, who had brought the king
home from the realm of death and then flown off on a dragon's back,
was still alive. Alive, said the Patterner, and living on his home
island, Gont. "I tell you what not many know," the
Patterner had said, "for I think you need to know it. And I
think you will keep his secret."
"But then he
is still Archmage!" Alder had said, with a kind of joy: for it
had been a puzzle and concern to all men of the art that the wise men
of Roke Island, the school and center of magery in the Archipelago,
had not in all the years of King Lebannen's rule named an Archmage to
replace Sparrowhawk.
"No," the
Patterner had said. "He is not a mage at all."
The Patterner had
told him a little of how Sparrowhawk had lost his power, and why; and
Alder had had time to ponder it all. But still, here, in the presence
of this man who had spoken with dragons, and brought back the Ring of
Erreth-Akbe, and crossed the kingdom of the dead, and ruled the
Archipelago before the king, all those stories and songs were in his
mind. Even as he saw him old, content with his garden, with no power
in him or about him but that of a soul made by a long life of thought
and action, he still saw a great mage. And so it troubled him
considerably that Sparrow-hawk had a wife.
A wife, a daughter,
a stepson… Mages had no family. A common sorcerer like Alder
might marry or might not, but the men of true power were celibate.
Alder could imagine this man riding a dragon, that was easy enough,
but to think of him as a husband and father was another matter. He
couldn't manage it. He tried. He asked, "Your—wife—She's
with her son, then?"
Sparrowhawk came
back from far away. His eyes had been on the western gulfs. "No,"
he said. "She's in Havnor. With the king."
After a while,
coming all the way back, he added, "She went there with our
daughter just after the Long Dance. Lebannen sent for them, to take
counsel. Maybe on the same matter that brings you here to me. We'll
see… But the truth is, I'm tired this evening, and not much
disposed to weighing heavy matters. And you look tired too. So a bowl
of soup, maybe, and another glass of wine, and sleep? And we'll talk
in the morning."
"All with
pleasure, lord," Alder said, "but for the sleep. That's
what I fear."
It took the old man
a while to register this, but then he said, "You fear to sleep?"
"Dreams."
"Ah." A
keen glance from the dark eyes under eyebrows grown tangled and half
grey. "You had a good nap there in the grass, I think."
"The sweetest
sleep I've had since I left Roke Island. I'm grateful to you for that
boon, lord. Maybe it will return tonight. But if not, I struggle with
my dream, and cry out, and wake, and am a burden to anyone near me.
I'll sleep outside, if you permit."
Sparrowhawk nodded.
"It'll be a pleasant night," he said.
It was a pleasant
night, cool, the sea wind mild from the south, the stars of summer
whitening all the sky except where the broad, dark summit of the
mountain loomed. Alder put down the pallet and sheepskin his host
gave him, in the grass where he had slept before.
Sparrowhawk lay in
the little western alcove of the house. He had slept there as a boy,
when it was Ogion's house and he was Ogion's prentice in wizardry.
Tehanu had slept there these last fifteen years, since she had been
his daughter. With her and Tenar gone, when he lay in his and Tenar's
bed in the dark back corner of the single room he felt his solitude,
so he had taken to sleeping in the alcove. He liked the narrow cot
built out from the thick house wall of timbers, right under the
window. He slept well there. But this night he did not.
Before midnight,
wakened by a cry, voices outside, he leapt up and went to the door.
It was only Alder struggling with nightmare, amid sleepy protests
from the henhouse. Alder shouted in the thick voice of dream and then
woke, starting up in panic and distress. He begged his host's pardon
and said he would sit up a while under the stars. Sparrowhawk went
back to bed. He was not wakened again by Alder, but he had a bad
dream of his own.
He was standing by
a wall of stone near the top of a long hillside of dry grey grass
that ran down from dimness into the dark. He knew he had been there
before, had stood there before, but he did not know when, or what
place it was. Someone was standing on the other side of the wall, the
downhill side, not far away. He could not see the face, only that it
was a tall man, cloaked. He knew that he knew him. The man spoke to
him, using his true name. He said, "You will soon be here, Ged."
Cold to the bone,
he sat up, staring to see the space of the house about him, to draw
its reality around him like a blanket. He looked out the window at
the stars. The cold came into his heart then. They were not the stars
of summer, beloved, familiar, the Cart, the Falcon, the Dancers, the
Heart of the Swan. They were other stars, the small, still stars of
the dry land, that never rise or set. He had known their names, once,
when he knew the names of things.
"Avert!"
he said aloud and made the gesture to turn away misfortune that he
had learned when he was ten years old. His gaze went to the open
doorway of the house, the corner behind the door, where he thought to
see darkness taking shape, clotting together and rising up.
But his gesture,
though it had no power, woke him. The shadows behind the door were
only shadows. The stars out the window were the stars of Earthsea,
paling in the first reflection of the dawn.
He sat holding his
sheepskin up round his shoulders, watching those stars fade as they
dropped west, watching the growing brightness, the colors of light,
the play and change of coming day. There was a grief in him, he did
not know why, a pain and yearning as for something dear and lost,
forever lost. He was used to that; he had held much dear, and lost
much; but this sadness was so great it did not seem to be his own. He
felt a sadness at the very heart of things, a grief even in the
coming of the light. It clung to him from his dream, and stayed with
him when he got up.
He lit a little
fire in the big hearth and went to the peach trees and the henhouse
to gather breakfast. Alder came in from the path that ran north along
the cliff top; he had gone for a walk at first light, he said. He
looked jaded, and Sparrowhawk was struck again by the sadness in his
face, which echoed the deep aftermood of his own dream.
They had a cup of
the warmed barley gruel the country people of Gont drink, a boiled
egg, a peach; they ate by the hearth, for the morning air in the
shadow of the mountain was too cold for sitting outdoors. Sparrowhawk
looked after his livestock: fed the chickens, scattered grain for
doves, let the goats into the pasture. When he came back they sat
again on the bench in the dooryard. The sun was not over the mountain
yet, but the air had grown dry and warm.
"Now tell me
what brings you here, Alder. But since you came by Roke, tell me
first if things are well in the Great House."
"I did not
enter it, my lord."
"Ah." A
neutral tone but a sharp glance.
"I was only in
the Immanent Grove."
"Ah." A
neutral tone, a neutral glance. "Is the Patterner well?"
"He told me,
'Carry my love and honor to my lord and say to him: I wish we walked
in the Grove together as we used to do.'"
Sparrowhawk smiled
a little sadly. After a while he said, "So. But he sent you to
me with more to say than that, I think."
"I will try to
be brief."
"Man, we have
all day before us. And I like a story told from the beginning."
So Alder told him
his story from the beginning.
He was a witch's
son, born in the town of Elini on Taon, the Isle of the Harpers.
Taon is at the
southern end of the Sea of Ea, not far from where Solea lay before
the sea whelmed it. That was the ancient heart of Earthsea. All those
islands had states and cities, kings and wizards, when Havnor was a
land of feuding tribesmen and Gont a wilderness ruled by bears.
People born on Ea or Ebea, Enlad or Taon, though they may be a
ditchdigger's daughter or a witch's son, consider themselves to be
descendants of the Elder Mages, sharing the lineage of the warriors
who died in the dark years for Queen Elfarran. Therefore they often
have a fine courtesy of manner, though sometimes an undue
haughtiness, and a generous, uncalculating turn of mind and speech, a
way of soaring above mere fact and prose, which those whose minds
stay close to merchandise distrust. "Kites without strings,"
say the rich men of Havnor of such people. But they do not say it in
the hearing of the king, Lebannen of the House of Enlad.
The best harps in
Earthsea are made on Taon, and there are schools of music there, and
many famous singers of the Lays and Deeds were born or learned their
art there. Elini, however, is just a market town in the hills, with
no music about it, Alder said; and his mother was a poor woman,
though not, as he put it, hungry poor. She had a birthmark, a red
stain from the right eyebrow and ear clear down over her shoulder.
Many women and men with such a blemish or difference about them
become witches or sorcerers perforce, "marked for it,"
people say. Blackberry learned spells and could do the most ordinary
kind of witchery; she had no real gift for it, but she had a way
about her that was almost as good as the gift itself. She made a
living, and trained her son as well as she could, and saved enough to
prentice him to the sorcerer who gave him his true name.
Of his father Alder
said nothing. He knew nothing. Blackberry had never spoken of him.
Though seldom celibate, witches seldom kept company more than a night
or two with any man, and it was a rare thing for a witch to marry a
man. Far more often two of them lived their lives together, and that
was called witch marriage or she-troth. A witch's child, then, had a
mother or two mothers, but no father. That went without saying, and
Sparrowhawk asked nothing on that score; but he asked about Alder's
training.
The sorcerer Gannet
had taught Alder the few words he knew of the True Speech, and some
spells of finding and illusion, at which Alder had shown, he said, no
talent at all. But Gannet took enough interest in the boy to discover
his true gift. Alder was a mender. He could rejoin. He could make
whole. A broken tool, a knife blade or an axle snapped, a pottery
bowl shattered: he could bring the fragments back together without
joint or seam or weakness. So his master sent him about seeking
various spells of mending, which he found mostly among witches of the
island, and he worked with them and by himself to learn to mend.
"That is a
kind of healing," Sparrowhawk said. "No small gift, nor
easy craft."
"It was a joy
to me," Alder said, with a shadow of a smile in his face.
"Working out the spells, and finding sometimes how to use one of
the True Words in the work… To put back together a barrel
that's dried, the staves all fallen in from the hoops—that's a
real pleasure, seeing it build up again, and swell out in the right
curve, and stand there on its bottom ready for the wine…There
was a harper from Meoni, a great harper, oh, he played like a storm
on the high hills, like a tempest on the sea. He was hard on the harp
strings, twanging and pulling them in the passion of his art, so
they'd break at the very height and flight of the music. And so he
hired me to be there near him when he played, and when he broke a
string I'd mend it quick as the note itself, and he'd play on."
Sparrowhawk nodded
with the warmth of a fellow professional talking shop. "Have you
mended glass?" he asked.
"I have, but
it's a long, nasty job," Alder said, "with all the tiny
little bits and speckles glass goes to."
"But a big
hole in the heel of a stocking can be worse," Sparrowhawk said,
and they discussed mending for a while longer, before Alder returned
to his story.
He had become a
mender, then, a sorcerer with a modest practice and a local
reputation for his gift. When he was about thirty, he went to the
principal city of the island, Meoni, with the harper, who was playing
for a wedding there. A woman sought him out in their lodging, a young
woman, not trained as a witch; but she had a gift, she said, the same
as his, and wanted him to teach her. And indeed she had a greater
gift than his. Though she knew not a word of the Old Speech, she
could put a smashed jug back together or mend a frayed-out rope just
with the movements of her hands and a wordless song she sang under
her breath, and she had healed broken limbs of animals and people,
which Alder had never dared try to do.
So rather than his
teaching her, they put their skills together and taught each other
more than either had ever known. She came back to Elini and lived
with Alder's mother Blackberry, who taught her various useful
appearances and effects and ways of impressing customers, if not much
actual witch knowledge. Lily was her name; and Lily and Alder worked
together there and in all the hill towns nearby, as their reputation
grew.
"And I came to
love her," Alder said. His voice had changed when he began to
speak of her, losing its hesitancy, growing urgent and musical.
"Her hair was
dark, but with a shining of red gold in it," he said.
There was no way he
could hide his love from her, and she knew it and returned it.
Whether she was a witch now or not, she said she did not care; she
said the two of them were born to be together, in their work and in
their life; she loved him and would be married to him.
So they were
married, and lived in very great happiness for a year, and half a
second year.
"Nothing was
wrong at all until the time came for the child to be born,"
Alder said. "But it was late, and then very late. The midwives
tried to bring on the birth with herbs and spells, but it was as if
the child would not let her bear it. It would not be separated from
her. It would not be born. And it was not born. It took her with it."
After a while he
said, "We had great joy."
"I see that."
"And my sorrow
was in that degree."
The old man nodded.
"I could bear
it," Alder said. "You know how it is. There was not much
reason to be living that I could see, but I could bear it."
"Yes."
"But in the
winter. Two months after her death. There was a dream came to me. She
was in the dream."
‘Tell it.
"I stood on a
hillside. Along the top of the hill and running down the slope was a
wall, low, like a boundary wall between sheep pastures. She was
standing across the wall from me, below it. It was darker there."
Sparrowhawk nodded
once. His face had gone rock hard.
"She was
calling to me. I heard her voice saying my name, and I went to her. I
knew she was dead, I knew it in the dream, but I was glad to go. I
couldn't see her clear, and I went to her to see her, to be with her.
And she reached out across the wall. It was no higher than my heart.
I had thought she might have the child with her, but she did not. She
was reaching her hands out to me, and so I reached out to her, and we
took each others hands."
"You touched?"
"I wanted to
go to her, but I could not cross the wall. My legs would not move. I
tried to draw her to me, and she wanted to come, it seemed as if she
could, but the wall was there between us. We couldn't get over it. So
she leaned across to me and kissed my mouth and said my name. And she
said, 'Set me free!'
"I thought if
I called her by her true name maybe I could free her, bring her
across that wall, and I said, 'Come with me, Mevre!' But she said,
'That's not my name, Hara, that's not my name any more.' And she let
go my hands, though I tried to hold her. She cried, 'Set me free,
Hara!' But she was going down into the dark. It was all dark down
that hillside below the wall. I called her name and her use-name and
all the dear names I had had for her, but she went on away. So then I
woke."
Sparrowhawk gazed
long and keenly at his visitor. "You gave me your name, Hara,"
he said.
Alder looked a
little stunned, and took a couple of long breaths, but he looked up
with desolate courage. "Who could I better trust it with?"
he said.
Sparrowhawk thanked
him gravely. "I will try to deserve your trust," he said.
"Tell me, do you know what that place is—that wall?"
"I did not
know it then. Now I know you have crossed it."
"Yes. I've
been on that hill. And crossed the wall, by the power and art I used
to have. And I've gone down to the cities of the dead, and spoken to
men I had known living, and sometimes they answered me. But Hara, you
are the first man I ever knew or heard of, among all the great mages
in the lore of Roke or Paln or the Enlades, who ever touched, ho ever
kissed his love across that wall."
Alder sat with his
head bowed and his hands clenched.
"Will you tell
me: what was her touch like? Were her hands warm? Was she cold air
and shadow, or like a living woman? Forgive my questions."
"I wish I
could answer them, my lord. On Roke the summoner asked the same. But
I can't answer truly. My longing for her was so great, I wished so
much—it could be I wished her to be as she was in life. But I
don't know. In dream not all things are clear."
"In dream, no.
But I never heard of any man coming to the wall in dream. It is a
place a wizard may seek to come to, if he must, if he's learned the
way and has the power. But without the knowledge and the power, only
the dying can—"
And then he broke
off, remembering his dream of the night before.
"I took it for
a dream," Alder said. "It troubled me, but I cherished it.
It was like a harrow on my heart's ground to think of it, and yet I
held to that pain, held it close to me. I wanted it. I hoped to dream
again."
"Did you?"
"Yes. I
dreamed again."
He looked unseeing
into the blue gulf of air and ocean west of where they sat. Low and
faint across the tranquil sea lay the sunlit hills of Kameber. Behind
them the sun was breaking bright over the mountains northern
shoulder.
"It was nine
days after the first dream. I was in that same place, but high up on
the hill. I saw the wall below me across the slope. And I ran down
the hill, calling out her name, sure of seeing her. There was someone
there. But when I came close, I saw it wasn't Lily. It was a man, and
he was stooping at the wall, as if he was repairing it. I said to
him, 'Where is she, where is Lily?' He didn't answer or look up. I
saw what he was doing. He wasn't working to mend the wall but to
unbuild it, prying with his fingers at a great stone. The stone never
moved, and he said, 'Help me, Hara!' Then I saw that it was my
teacher, Gannet, who named me. He has been dead these five years. He
kept prying and straining at the stone with his fingers, and said my
name again—'Help me, set me free.' And he stood up and reached
out to me across the wall, as she had done, and caught my hand. But
his hand burned, with fire or with cold, I don't know, but the touch
of it burned me so that I pulled away, and the pain and fear of it
woke me from the dream."
He held his hand
out as he spoke, showing a darkness on the back and palm like an old
bruise.
"I've learned
not to let them touch me," he said in a low voice.
Ged looked at
Alder's mouth. There was a darkening across his lips too.
"Hara, you've
been in mortal danger," he said, also softly.
"There is
more."
Forcing his voice
against silence, Alder went on with his story.
The next night when
he slept again he found himself on that dim hill and saw the wall
that dropped down from the hilltop across the slope. He went down
towards it, hoping to find his wife there. "I didn't care if she
couldn't cross it, if I couldn't, so long as I could see her and talk
to her," he said. But if she was there he never saw her among
all the others: for as he came closer to the wall he saw a crowd of
shadowy people on the other side, some clear and some dim, some he
seemed to know and others he did not know, and all of them reached
out their hands to him as he approached and called him by his name:
"Hara! let us come with you! Hara, set us free!"
"It's a
terrible thing to hear one's true name called by strangers,"
Alder said, "and it's a terrible thing to be called by the
dead."
He tried to turn
and climb back up the hill, away from the wall; but his legs had the
awful weakness of dream and would not carry him. He fell to his knees
to keep himself from being drawn down to the wall, and called out for
help, though there was no one to help him; and so he woke in terror.
Since then, every
night that he slept deeply, he found himself standing on the hill in
the dry grey grass above the wall, and the dead would crowd thick and
shadowy below it, pleading and crying to him, calling his name.
"I wake,"
he said, "and I'm in my own room. I'm not there, on that
hillside. But I know they are. And I have to sleep. I try to wake
often, and to sleep in daylight when I can, but I have to sleep at
last. And then I am there, and they are there. And I can't go up the
hill. If I move it's always downhill, towards the wall. Sometimes I
can turn my back to them, but then I think I hear Lily among them,
crying to me. And I turn to look for her. And they reach out to me."
He looked down at
his hands gripping each other.
"What am I to
do?" he said.
Sparrowhawk said
nothing.
After a long time
Alder said, "The harper I told you of was a good friend to me.
After a while he saw there was something amiss, and when I told him
that I couldn't sleep for fear of my dreams of the dead, he urged me
arid helped me to take ship's passage to Ea, to speak to a grey
wizard there." He meant a man trained in the School on Roke. "As
soon as that wizard heard what my dreams were he said I must go to
Roke."
"What is his
name?"
"Beryl. He
serves the Prince of Ea, who is Lord of the Isle of Taon."
The old man nodded.
"He had no
help to give me, he said, but his word was as good as gold to the
ship's master. So I went on the water again. That was a long journey,
coasting clear round Havnor and down the Inmost Sea. I thought maybe
being on the water, far from Taon, always farther, I might leave the
dream behind me. The wizard on Ea called that place in my dream the
dry land, and I thought maybe I'd be going away from it, going on the
sea. But every night I was there on the hillside. And more than once
in the night, as time went on. Twice, or three times, or every time
my eyes close, I'm on the hill, and the wall below me, and the voices
calling me. So I'm like a man crazy with the pain of a wound who can
find peace only in sleep, but the sleep is my torment, with the pain
and anguish of the wretched dead all crowding at the wall, and my
fear of them."
The sailors soon
began to shun him, he said, at night because he cried out and woke
them with his miserable wakenings, and in daylight because they
thought there was a curse on him or a gebbeth in him.
"And no relief
for you on Roke?"
"In the
Grove," Alder said, and his face changed entirely when he said
the word.
Sparrowhawk's face
had the same look for a moment.
"The Master
Patterner took me there, under those trees, and I could sleep. Even
at night I could sleep. In daylight, if the sun's on me—it was
like that in the afternoon, yesterday, here—if the warmth of
the sun's on me and the red of the sun shines through my eyelids, I
don't fear to dream. But in the Grove there was no fear at all, and I
could love the night again."
"Tell me how
it was when you came to Roke."
Though hampered by
weariness, anguish, and awe, Alder had the silver tongue of his
island; and what he left out for fear of going on too long or telling
the Archmage what he already knew, his listener could well imagine,
remembering when he himself first came to the Isle of the Wise as a
boy of fifteen.
When Alder left the
ship at the docks at Thwil Town, one of the sailors had drawn the
rune of the Closed Door on the top of the gangplank to prevent his
ever coming back aboard. Alder noticed it, but he thought the sailor
had good cause. He felt himself ill-omened; he felt he bore darkness
in him. That made him shyer than he would have been in any case in a
strange town. And Thwil was a very strange town.
"The streets
lead you awry," Sparrowhawk said.
"They do that,
my lord!—I'm sorry, my tongue will obey my heart, and not you—"
"Never mind. I
was used to it once. I can be Lord Goatherd again, if it eases your
speech. Go on."
Misdirected by
those he asked, or misunderstanding the directions, Alder wandered
about the hilly little labyrinth of Thwil Town with the School always
in sight and never able to get to it, until, having reached despair,
he came to a plain door in a bare wall on a dull square. After
staring at it a while he recognised the wall was the one he had been
trying to get to. He knocked, and a man with a quiet face and quiet
eyes opened the door.
Alder was ready to
say that he had been sent by the wizard Beryl of Ea with a message
for the Master Summoner, but he didn't have a chance to speak. The
Doorkeeper gazed at him a moment and said mildly, "You cannot
bring them into this house, friend."
Alder did not ask
who it was he could not bring with him. He knew. He had slept
scarcely at all the past nights, snatching fragments of sleep and
waking in terror, dozing off in the daylight, seeing the dry grass
sloping down through the sunlit deck of the ship, the wall of stones
across the waves of the sea. And waking, the dream was in him, with
him, around him, veiled, and he could hear, always, faintly, through
all the noises of wind and sea, the voices that cried his name. He
did not know if he was awake now or asleep. He was crazy with pain
and fear and weariness.
"Keep them
out," he said, "and let me in, for pity's sake let me in!"
"Wait here,"
the man said, as gently as before. "There's a bench,"
pointing. And he closed the door.
Alder went and sat
down on the stone bench. He remembered that, and he remembered some
boys of fifteen or so looking curiously at him as they went by and
entered that door, but what happened for some while after he could
recall only in fragments.
The Doorkeeper came
back with a young man with the staff and cloak of a Roke wizard. Then
Alder was in a room, which he understood was in a lodging house.
There the Master Summoner came and tried to talk with him. But Alder
by then was not able to talk. Between sleep and waking, between the
sunlit room and the dim grey hill, between the Summoner's voice
speaking to him and the voices calling him across the wall, he could
not think and he could not move, in the living world. But in the dim
world where the voices called, he thought it would be easy to walk on
down those few steps to the wall and let the reaching hands take him
and hold him. If he was one of them they would let him be, he
thought.
Then, as he
remembered, the sunlit room was altogether gone, and he was on the
grey hill. But with him stood the Summoner of Roke: a big, broad,
dark-skinned man, with a great staff of yew wood that shimmered in
the dim place.
The voices had
ceased calling. The people, the crowding figures at the wall, were
gone. He could hear a distant rustle and a kind of sobbing as they
went down into the darkness, went away.
The Summoner
stepped to the wall and put his hands on it.
The stones had been
loosened here and there. A few had fallen and lay on the dry grass.
Alder felt that he should pick them up and replace them, mend the
wall, but he did not.
The Summoner turned
to him and asked, "Who brought you here?"
"My wife,
Mevre."
"Summon her
here."
Alder stood dumb.
At last he opened his mouth, but it was not his wife's true name that
he spoke but her use-name, the name he had called her in life. He
said it aloud, "Lily…" The sound of it was not like
a white flower, but like a pebble dropping on dust.
No sound. Stars
shone small and steady in the black sky. Alder had never looked up at
the sky in this place before. He did not recognise the stars.
"Mevre!"
said the Summoner, and in his deep voice spoke some words in the Old
Speech.
Alder felt the
breath go out of him and could barely stand. But nothing stirred on
the long slope that led down to formless dark.
Then there was some
movement, something lighter, coming up the hill, coming slowly
nearer. Alder shook with fear and yearning, and whispered, "Oh
my dear love."
But the figure as
it came closer was too small to be Lily. He saw it was a child of
twelve or so, girl or boy he could not tell. It paid no heed to him
or the Summoner and never looked across the wall, but settled down
just under it. When Alder came closer and looked down he saw the
child was prying and pulling at the stones, trying to loosen one,
then another.
The Summoner was
whispering in the Old Speech. The child glanced up once indifferently
and went on tugging at the stones with its thin fingers that seemed
to have no strength in them.
This was so
horrible to Alder that his head spun; he tried to turn away, and
beyond that he could remember nothing till he woke in the sunny room,
lying in bed, weak and sick and cold.
People looked after
him: the aloof, smiling woman who kept the lodging house, and a
brown-skinned, stocky old man who came with the Doorkeeper. Alder
took him for a physician-sorcerer. Only after he had seen him with
his staff of olive wood did he understand that he was the Herbal, the
master of healing of the School on Roke.
His presence
brought solace, and he was able to give Alder sleep. He brewed up a
tea and had Alder drink it, and lighted some herb that burned slowly
with a smell like the dark earth under pine woods, and sitting nearby
began a long, soft chant. "But I must not sleep," Alder
protested, feeling sleep coming into him like a great dark tide. The
healer laid his warm hand on Alder's hand. Then peace came into
Alder, and he slipped into sleep without fear. So long as the
healer's hand was on his, or on his shoulder, it kept him from the
dark hillside and the wall of stones.
He woke to eat a
little, and soon the Master Herbal was there again with the tepid,
insipid tea and the earth-smelling smoke and the dull untuneful chant
and the touch of his hand; and Alder could have rest.
The healer had all
his duties at the School, so could be there only some hours of the
night. Alder got enough rest in three nights that he could eat and
walk about the town a little in the day and think and talk
coherently. On the fourth morning the three masters, the Herbal, the
Doorkeeper, and the Summoner, came to his room.
Alder bowed to the
Summoner with dread, almost distrust, in his heart. The Herbal was
also a great mage, but his art was not altogether different from
Alder's own craft, so they had a kind of understanding; and there was
the great kindness of his hand. The Summoner, though, dealt not with
bodily things but with the spirit, with the minds and wills of men,
with ghosts, with meanings. His art was arcane, dangerous, full of
risk and threat. And he had stood beside Alder there, not in the
body, on the boundary, at the wall. With him the darkness and the
fear returned.
None of the three
mages said anything at first. If they had one thing in common, it was
a great capacity for silence.
So Alder spoke,
trying to say what was in his heart, for nothing less would do.
"If I did some
wrong that brought me to that place, or brought my wife to me there,
or the other souls, if I can mend or undo what I did, I will. But I
don't know what it is I did."
"Or what you
are," the Summoner said.
Alder was mute.
"Not many of
us know who or what we are," said the Doorkeeper. "A
glimpse is all we get."
"Tell us how
you first went to the wall of stones," the Summoner said.
And Alder told
them.
The mages listened
in silence and said nothing for a while after he was done. Then the
Summoner asked, "Have you thought what it means to cross that
wall?"
"I know I
could not come back."
"Only mages
can cross the wall living, and only at utmost need. The Herbal may go
with a sufferer all the way to that wall, but if the sick man crosses
it, he does not follow."
The Summoner was so
tall and broad-bodied and dark that, looking at him, Alder thought of
a bear.
"My art of
Summoning empowers us to call the dead back across the wall for a
brief time, a moment, if there is need to do so. I myself question if
any need could justify so great a breach in the law and balance of
the world. I have never made that spell. Nor have I crossed the wall.
The Archmage did, and the King with him, to heal the wound in the
world the wizard called Cob made."
"And when the
Archmage did not return, Thorion, who was our Summoner then, went
down into the dry land to seek him," the Herbal said. "He
came back, but changed."
"There is no
need to speak of that," the big man said.
"Maybe there
is," said the Herbal. "Maybe Alder needs to know it.
Thorion trusted his strength too far, I think. He stayed there too
long. He thought he could summon himself back into life, but what
came back was only his skill, his power, his ambition—the will
to live that gives no life. Yet we trusted him, because we had loved
him. So he devoured us. Until Irian destroyed him."
Far from Roke, on
the Isle of Gont, Alder's listener interrupted him—"What
name was that?" Sparrowhawk asked.
"Irian, he
said."
"Do you know
that name?"
"No, my lord."
"Nor I."
After a pause Sparrowhawk went on softly, as if unwillingly. "But
I saw Thorion, there. In the dry land, where he had risked going to
seek me. It grieved me to see him there. I said to him he might go
back across the wall." His face went dark and grim. "That
was ill spoken. All is spoken ill between the living and the dead.
But I had loved him too."
They sat in
silence. Sparrowhawk got up abruptly to stretch his arms and rub his
thighs. They both moved about a bit. Alder got a drink of water from
the well. Sparrowhawk fetched out a garden spade and the new handle
to fit to it, and set to work smoothing the oaken shaft and tapering
the end that would go in the socket.
He said, "Go
on, Alder," and Alder went on with his story.
The two masters had
been silent for a while after the Herbal spoke about Thorion. Alder
got up the courage to ask them about a matter that had been much on
his mind: how those who died came to the wall, and how the mages came
there.
The Summoner
answered promptly: "It is a spirit journey."
The old healer was
more hesitant. "It's not in the body that we cross the wall,
since the body of one who dies stays here. And if a mage goes there
in vision, his sleeping body is still here, alive. And so we call
that voyager… we call what makes that journey from the body,
the soul, the spirit."
"But my wife
took my hand," Alder said. He could not say again to them that
she had kissed his mouth. "I felt her touch."
"So it seemed
to you," the Summoner said.
"If they
touched bodily, if a link was made," the Herbal said to the
Summoner, "might that not be why the other dead can come to him,
call to him, even touch him?"
"That is why
he must resist them," said the Summoner, with a glance at Alder.
His eyes were small, fiery.
Alder felt it as an
accusation, and not a fair one. He said, "I try to resist them,
my lord. I have tried. But there are so many of them—and she's
with them—and they're suffering, crying out to me."
"They cannot
suffer," the Summoner said. "Death ends all suffering."
"Maybe the
shadow of pain is pain," said the Herbal. "There are
mountains in that land, and they are called Paln."
The Doorkeeper had
scarcely spoken until now. He said in his quiet, easy voice, "Alder
is a mender, not a breaker. I don't think he can break that link."
"If he made it
he can break it," the Summoner said.
"Did he make
it?"
"I have no
such art, my lord," Alder said, so frightened by what they were
saying that he spoke angrily.
"Then I must
go down among them," said the Summoner.
"No, my
friend," said the Doorkeeper, and the old Herbal said, "You
last of us all."
"But this is
my art."
"And ours."
"Who then?"
The Doorkeeper
said, "It seems Alder is our guide. Having come to us for help,
maybe he can help us. Let us all go with him in his vision—to
the wall, though not across it."
So that night, when
late and fearfully Alder let sleep overcome him, and found himself on
the grey hill, the others were with him: the Herbal, a warm presence
in the chill; the Doorkeeper, elusive and silvery as starlight; and
the massive Summoner, the bear, a dark strength.
This time they were
standing not where the hill ran down into the dark, but on the near
slope, looking up to the top. The wall in this place ran along the
crest of the hill and was low, little more than knee height. Above it
the sky with its few small stars was perfectly black.
Nothing moved.
It would be hard to
walk uphill to the wall, Alder thought. Always before it had been
below him.
But if he could go
to it maybe Lily would be there, as she had been the first time.
Maybe he could take her hand, and the mages would bring her back with
him. Or he could step over the wall where it was so low and come to
her.
He began to walk up
the hill. It was easy, it was no trouble, he was almost there.
"Hara!" The Summoner's deep voice called him back like a
noose round his neck, a jerked leash. He stumbled, staggered forward
one step more, almost at the wall, dropped to his knees and reached
out to the stones. He was crying, "Save me!" but to whom?
To the mages, or to the shadows beyond the wall?
Then hands were on
his shoulders, living hands, strong and warm, and he was in his room,
with the healers hands indeed on his shoulders, and the werelight
burning white around them. And there were four men in the room with
him, not three.
The old Herbal sat
down on the bed with him and soothed him a while, for he was shaking,
shuddering, sobbing. "I can't do it," he kept saying, but
still he did not know if he was talking to the mages or to the dead.
When the fear and
pain began to lessen, he felt tired beyond bearing, and looked almost
without interest at the man who had come into the room. His eyes were
the color of ice, his hair and skin were white. A far Northerner,
from Enwas or Bereswek, Alder thought him.
This man said to
the mages, "What are you doing, my friends?"
"Taking risks,
Azver," said the old Herbal.
"Trouble at
the border, Patterner," said the Summoner.
Alder could feel
the respect they had for this man, their relief that he was there, as
they told him briefly what the trouble was.
"If he'll come
with me, will you let him go?" the Patterner asked when they
were done, and turning to Alder, "You need not fear your dreams
in the Immanent Grove. And so we need not fear your dreams."
They all assented.
The Patterner nodded and vanished. He was not there.
He had not been
there; he had been a sending, a presentment. It was the first time
Alder had seen the great powers of these masters made manifest, and
it would have unnerved him if he had not been past amazement and
fear.
He followed the
Doorkeeper out into the night, through the streets, past the walls of
the School, across fields under a high round hill, and along a stream
singing its water music softly in the darkness of its banks. Ahead of
them was a high wood, the trees crowned with grey starlight.
The Master
Patterner came along the path to meet them, looking just as he had in
the room. He and the Doorkeeper spoke for a minute, and then Alder
followed the Patterner into the Grove.
"The trees are
dark," Alder said to Sparrowhawk, "but it isn't dark under
them. There is a light—a lightness there."
His listener
nodded, smiling a little.
"As soon as I
came there, I knew I could sleep. I felt as if I'd been asleep all
along, in an evil dream, and now, here, I was truly awake: so I could
truly sleep. There was a place he took me to, in among the roots of a
huge tree, all soft with the fallen leaves of the tree, and he told
me I could lie there. And I did, and I slept. I cannot tell you the
sweetness of it."
The midday sun had
grown strong; they went indoors, and the host set out bread and
cheese and a bit of dried meat. Alder looked round him as they ate.
The house had only the one long room with its little western alcove,
but it was large and darkly airy, strongly built, with wide boards
and beams, a gleaming floor, a deep stone fireplace. "This is a
noble house," Alder said.
"An old one.
They call it the Old Mage's house. Not for me, nor for my master
Aihal who lived here, but for his master Heleth, who with him stilled
the great earthquake. It's a good house."
Alder slept a while
again under the trees with the sun shining on him through the moving
leaves. His host rested too, but not long; when Alder woke, there was
a good-sized basket of the small golden plums under the tree, and
Sparrowhawk was up in the goat pasture mending a fence. Alder went to
help him, but the job was done. The goats, however, were long gone.
"Neither of
'em's in milk," Sparrowhawk grumbled as they returned to the
house. "They've got nothing to do but find new ways through the
fence. I keep them for exasperation… The first spell I ever
learned was to call goats from wandering. My aunt taught me. It's no
more use to me now than if I sang them a love song. I'd better go see
if they've got into the widower's vegetables. You don't have the kind
of sorcery to charm a goat to come, do you?"
The two brown
nannies were indeed invading a cabbage patch on the outskirts of the
village. Alder repeated the spell Sparrowhawk told him:
Noth hierth malk
man, hiolk ban merth ban!
The goats gazed at
him with alert disdain and moved away a little. Shouting and a stick
got them out of the cabbages onto the path, and there Sparrowhawk
produced some plums from his pocket. Promising, offering, and
cajoling, he slowly led the truants back into their pasture.
"They're odd
creatures," he said, latching the gate. "You never know
where you are with a goat."
Alder thought that
he never knew where he was with his host, but did not say it.
When they were
sitting in the shade again, Sparrowhawk said, "The Patterner
isn't a Northerner, he's a Karg. Like my wife. He was a warrior of
Karego-At. The only man I know of who ever came from those lands to
Roke. The Kargs have no wizards. They distrust all sorcery. But
they've kept more knowledge of the Old Powers of the Earth than we
have. This man, Azver, when he was young, he heard some tale of the
Immanent Grove, and it came to him that the center of all the earth's
powers must be there. So he left his gods and his native tongue
behind him and made his way to Roke. He stood on our doorstep and
said, 'Teach me to live in that forest!' And we taught him, till he
began to teach us… So he became our Master Patterner. He's not
a gentle man, but he is to be trusted."
"I never could
fear him," Alder said. "It was easy to be with him. He'd
take me far into the wood with him."
They were both
silent, both thinking of the glades and aisles of that wood, the
sunlight and starlight in its leaves.
"It is the
heart of the world," Alder said.
Sparrowhawk looked
up eastward at the slopes of Gont Mountain, dark with trees. "I'll
go walking there," he said, "in the forest, come autumn."
After a while he
said, "Tell me what counsel the Patterner had for you, and why
he sent you here to me."
"He said, my
lord, that you knew more of the… the dry land than any living
man, and so maybe you would understand what it means that the souls
there come to me as they do, begging me for freedom."
"Did he say
how he thinks it came about?"
"Yes. He said
that maybe my wife and I didn't know how to be parted, only how to be
joined. That it was not my doing, but was maybe ours together,
because we drew each to the other, like drops of quicksilver. But the
Master Sum-moner didn't agree. He said that only a great power of
magery could so transgress the order of the world. Because my old
master Gannet also touched me across the wall, the Summoner said
maybe it was a mage power in him which had been hidden or disguised
in life, but now was revealed."
Sparrowhawk brooded
a while. "When I lived on Roke," he said, "I might
have seen it as the Summoner does. There I knew no power stronger
than what we call magery. Not even the Old Powers of the Earth, I
thought… If the Summoner you met is the man I think, he came
as a boy to Roke. My old friend Vetch of Iffish sent him to study
with us. And he never left. That's a difference between him and Azver
the Patterner. Azver lived till he was grown as a warrior's son, a
warrior himself, among men and women, in the thick of life. Matters
that the walls of the School keep out, he knows in his flesh and
blood. He knows that men and women love, make love, marry…
Having lived these fifteen years outside the walls, I incline to
think Azver might be on the better track. The bond between you and
your wife is stronger than the division between life and death."
Alder hesitated.
"I've thought it might be so. But it seems… shameless to
think it. We loved each other, more than I can say we loved each
other, but was our love greater than any other before us? Was it
greater than Morred's and Elfarran's?"
"Maybe not
less."
"How can that
be?"
Sparrowhawk looked
at him as if saluting something, and answered him with a care that
made Alder feel honored. "Well," he said slowly, "sometimes
there's a passion that comes in its springtime to ill fate or death.
And because it ends in its beauty, it's what the harpers sing of and
the poets make stories of: the love that escapes the years. That was
the love of the Young King and Elfarran. That was your love, Hara. It
wasn't greater than Morred's, but was his greater than yours?"
Alder said nothing,
pondering.
"There's no
less or greater in an absolute thing," Sparrowhawk said. "All
or nothing at all, the true lover says, and that's the truth of it.
My love will never die, he says. He claims eternity. And rightly. How
can it die when it's life itself? What do we know of eternity but the
glimpse we get of it when we enter in that bond?"
He spoke softly but
with fire and energy, then he leaned back, and after a minute said,
with a half smile, "Every oaf of a farm boy sings that, every
young girl that dreams of love knows it. But it's not a thing the
Masters of Roke are familiar with. The Patterner maybe knew it early.
I learned it late. Very late. Not quite too late." He looked at
Alder, the fire still in his eyes, challenging. "You had that,"
he said.
"I did."
Alder drew a deep breath. Presently he said, "Maybe they're
there together, in the dark land. Morred and Elfarran."
"No,"
Sparrowhawk said with bleak certainty.
"But if the
bond is true, what can break it?"
"There are no
lovers there."
"Then what are
they, what do they do, there in that land? You've been there, you
crossed the wall. You walked and spoke with them. Tell me!"
"I will."
But Sparrowhawk said nothing for a while. "I don't like to think
about it," he said. He rubbed his head and scowled. "You
saw…You've seen those stars. Little, mean stars, that never
move. No moon. No sunrise… There are roads, if you go down the
hill. Roads and cities. On the hill there's grass, dead grass, but
farther down there's only dust and rocks. Nothing grows. Dark cities.
The multitudes of the dead stand in the streets, or walk on the roads
to no end. They don't speak. They don't touch. They never touch."
His voice was low and dry. "There Morred would pass Elfarran and
never turn his head, and she wouldn't look at him… There's no
rejoining there, Hara. No bond. The mother doesn't hold her child,
there."
"But my wife
came to me," Alder said, "she called my name, she kissed my
mouth!"
"Yes. And
since your love wasn't greater than any other mortal love, and since
you and she aren't mighty wizards whose power might change the laws
of life and death, therefore, therefore something else is in this.
Something is happening, is changing. Though it happens through you
and to you, you are its instrument and not its cause."
Sparrowhawk stood
up and strode to the beginning of the path along the cliff and back
to Alder; he was charged, almost quivering with tense energy, like a
hawk about to stoop down on its prey.
"Did your wife
not say to you, when you called her by her true name, That is not my
name any more—?"
"Yes,"
Alder whispered.
"But how is
that? We who have true names keep them when we die, it's our use-name
that is forgotten… This is a mystery to the learned, I can
tell you, but as well as we understand it, a true name is a word in
the True Speech. That's why only one with the gift can know a child's
name and give it. And the name binds the being—alive or dead.
All the art of the Summoner lies in that… Yet when the master
summoned your wife to come by her true name, she didn't come to him.
You called by her use-name, Lily, and she came to you. Did she come
to you as to the one who knew her truly?"
He gazed at Alder
keenly and yet as if he saw more than the man who sat with him. After
a while he went on, "When my master Aihal died, my wife was here
with him; and as he was dying he said to her, all is changed, all
changed. He was looking across that wall. From which side I do not
know.
"And since
that time, indeed there have been changes—a king on Morred's
throne, and no Archmage of Roke. But more than that, much more. I saw
a child summon the dragon Kalessin, the Eldest: and Kalessin came to
her, calling her daughter, as I do. What does that mean? What does it
mean that dragons have been seen above the islands of the west? The
king sent to us, sent a ship to Gont Port, asking my daughter Tehanu
to come and take counsel with him concerning dragons. People fear
that the old covenant is broken, that the dragons will come to burn
fields and cities as they did before Erreth-Akbe fought with Orm
Embar. And now, at the boundary of life and death, a soul refuses the
bond of her name… I do not understand it. All I know is that
it is changing. It is all changing."
There was no fear
in his voice, only fierce exultation.
Alder could not
share that. He had lost too much and was too worn out by his struggle
against forces he could not control or comprehend. But his heart rose
to that gallantry.
"May it change
for the good, my lord," he said.
"Be it so,"
the old man said. "But change it must."
As the heat went
out of the day, Sparrowhawk said he had to walk to the village. He
carried the basket of plums with a basket of eggs nested in it.
Alder walked with
him and they talked. When Alder understood that Sparrowhawk bartered
fruit and eggs and the other produce of the little farm for barley
and wheat flour, that the wood he burned was gathered patiently up in
the forest, that his goats' not giving milk meant he must eke out
last year's cheese, Alder was amazed: how could it be that the
Archmage of Earthsea lived from hand to mouth? Did his own people not
honor him?
When he went with
him to the village, he saw women shut their doors when they saw the
old man coming. The marketer who took his eggs and fruit tallied the
count on his wooden tablet without a word, his face sullen and his
eyes lowered. Sparrowhawk spoke to him pleasantly, "A good day
to you then, Iddi," but got no answer.
"My lord,"
Alder asked as they walked home, "do they know who you are?"
"No,"
said the ex-Archmage, with a dry sidelong look. "And yes."
"But—"
Alder did not know how to speak his indignation.
"They know I
have no power of sorcery, but there's something uncanny about me.
They know I live with a foreigner, a Kargish woman. They know the
girl we call our daughter is something like a witch, but worse,
because her face and hand were burnt away by fire, and because she
herself burnt up the Lord of Re Albi, or pushed him off the cliff, or
killed him with the evil eye—their stories vary. They honor the
house we live in, though, because it was Aihal's and Heleth's house,
and dead wizards are good wizards… You're a townsman, Alder,
of an isle of Morred's kingdom. A village on Gont is another matter."
"But why do
you stay here, lord? Surely the king would do you proper honor—"
"I want no
honor," the old man said, with a violence that silenced Alder
entirely.
They walked on. As
they came to the house built at the cliff's edge he spoke again.
"This is my eyrie," he said.
They had a glass of
the red wine with supper, and another sitting out to watch the sun
set. They did not talk much. Fear of the night, of the dream, was
coming into Alder.
"I'm no
healer," his host said, "but perhaps I can do what the
Master Herbal did to let you sleep."
Alder looked his
question.
"I've been
thinking about it, and it seems to me maybe it was no spell at all
that kept you away from that hillside, but just the touch of a living
hand. If you like, we can try it."
Alder protested,
but Sparrowhawk said, "I'm awake hah0 most nights anyway."
So the guest lay that night in the low bed in the back corner of the
big room, and the host sat up beside him, watching the fire and
dozing.
He watched Alder,
too, and saw him fall asleep at last; and not long after that saw him
start and shudder in his sleep. He put out his hand and laid it on
Alder's shoulder as he lay half turned away. The sleeping man stirred
a little, sighed, relaxed, and slept on.
It pleased
Sparrowhawk that he could do this much. As good as a wizard, he told
himself with mild sarcasm.
He was not sleepy,
the tension was still in him. He thought about all Alder had told
him, and what they had talked about in the afternoon. He saw Alder
stand in the path by the cabbage patch saying the spell to call the
goats, and the goats' haughty indifference to the powerless words. He
remembered how he had used to speak the name of the Sparrowhawk, the
marsh hawk, the grey eagle, calling them down from the sky to him in
a rush of wings to grasp his arm with iron talons and glare at him,
eye to wrathful, golden eye… None of that any more. He could
boast, calling this house his eyrie, but he had no wings.
But Tehanu did. The
dragon's wings were hers to fly on.
The fire had burned
out. He pulled his sheepskin over him more closely, leaning his head
back against the wall, still keeping his hand on Alder's inert, warm
shoulder. He liked the man and was sorry for him.
He must remember to
ask him to mend the green pitcher, tomorrow.
The grass next to
the wall was short, dry, dead. No wind blew to make it move or
rustle.
He roused up with a
start, hah0 rising from the chair, and after a moment of bewilderment
put his hand back on Alder's shoulder, grasping it a little, and
whispered, "Hara! Come away, Hara." Alder shuddered, then
relaxed. He sighed again, turned more onto his face and lay still.
Sparrowhawk sat
with his hand on the sleeper's arm. How had he himself come there, to
the wall of stones? He no longer had the power to go there. He had no
way to find the way. As in the night before, Alder's dream or vision,
Alder's voyaging soul had drawn him with it to the edge of the dark
land.
He was wide awake
now. He sat gazing at the greyish square of the west window, full of
stars.
The grass under the
wall… It did not grow farther down where the hill leveled out
into the dim, dry land. He had said to Alder that down there was only
dust, only rock. He saw that black dust, black rock. Dead stream beds
where no water ever ran. No living thing. No bird, no field mouse
cowering, no glitter and buzz of little insects, the creatures of the
sun. Only the dead, with their empty eyes and silent faces.
But did birds not
die?
A mouse, a gnat, a
goat—a white-and-brown, clever-hoofed, yellow-eyed, shameless
goat, Sippy who had been Tehanu's pet, and who had died last winter
at a great age—where was Sippy? Not in the dry land, the dark
land. She was dead, but she was not there. She was where she
belonged, in the dirt. In the dirt, in the light, in the wind, the
leap of water from the rock, the yellow eye of the sun.
Then why, then why…
He watched Alder
mend the pitcher. Fat-bellied and jade green, it had been a favorite
of Tenar's; she had carried it all the way from Oak Farm, years ago.
It had slipped from his hands the other day as he took it from the
shelf. He had picked up the two big pieces of it and the little
fragments with some notion of gluing them back together so it could
sit out for looks, if never for use again. Every time he saw the
pieces, which he had put into a basket, his clumsiness had outraged
him.
Now, fascinated, he
watched Alder's hands. Slender, strong, deft, unhurried, they cradled
the shape of the pitcher, stroking and fitting and settling the
pieces of pottery, urging and caressing, the thumbs coaxing and
guiding the smaller fragments into place, reuniting them, reassuring
them. While he worked he murmured a two-word, tuneless chant. They
were words of the Old Speech. Ged knew and did not know their
meaning. Alder's face was serene, all stress and sorrow gone: a face
so wholly absorbed in time and task that timeless calm shone through
it.
His hands separated
from the pitcher, opening out from it like the sheath of a flower
opening. It stood on the oak table, whole.
He looked at it
with quiet pleasure.
When Ged thanked
him, he said, "It was no trouble at all. The breaks were very
clean. It's a well-made piece, and good clay. It's the shoddy work
that costs to mend."
"I had a
thought how you might find sleep," Ged said.
Alder had waked at
first light and had got up, so that his host could go to his bed and
sleep sound till broad day; but clearly the arrangement would not do
for long.
"Come along
with me," the old man said, and they set off inland on a path
that skirted the goats' pasture and wound between knolls, little,
half-tended fields, and inlets of the forest. Gont was a wild-looking
place to Alder, ragged and random, the shaggy mountain always
frowning and looming above.
"It seemed to
me," Sparrowhawk said as they walked, "if I could do as
well as the Master Herbal did, keeping you from the hill of the wall
only by putting my hand on you, that there might be others who could
help you. If you have no objection to animals."
"Animals?"
"You see,"
Sparrowhawk began, but got no further, interrupted by a strange
creature bounding down the path towards them. It was bundled in
skirts and shawls, feathers stuck out in all directions from its
head, and it wore high leather boots. "O Mastawk, O Mastawk!"
it shouted.
"Hello, then,
Heather. Gently now," said Sparrowhawk. The woman stopped,
rocking her body, her head-feathers waving, a large grin on her face.
"She knowed you was a-coming!" she bawled. "She made
that hawk's beak with her fingers like this, see, she did, and she
told me go, go, with her hand! She knowed you was a-coming!"
"And so I am."
"To see us?"
"To see you.
Heather, this is Master Alder."
"Master
Alder," she whispered, quieting suddenly as she included Alder
in her consciousness. She shrank, drew into herself, looked down at
her feet.
She had no leather
boots on. Her bare legs were coated from the knee down with smooth,
brown, drying mud. Her skirts were bunched, caught up into the
waistband.
"You've been
frogging, have you, Heather?"
She nodded
vacantly.
"I'll go tell
Aunty," she said, beginning in a whisper and ending with a
bellow, and bolted back the way she had come.
"She's a good
soul," Sparrowhawk said. "She used to help my wife. She
lives with our witch now and helps her. I don't think you'll object
to entering a witch's house?"
"Never in the
world, my lord."
"Many do.
Nobles and common folk, wizards and sorcerers."
"Lily my wife
was a witch."
Sparrowhawk bowed
his head and walked in silence for a while. "How did she learn
of her gift, Alder?"
"It was born
in her. As a child she'd make a torn branch grow on the tree again,
and other children brought her their broken toys to mend. But when
her father saw her do that he would strike her hands. Her family were
considerable persons in their town. Respectable persons," Alder
said in his even, gentle voice. "They didn't want her consorting
with witches. Since it would keep her from marriage with a
respectable man. So she kept all her study to herself. And the
witches of her town would have nothing to do with her, even when she
sought to learn from them, for they were afraid of her father, you
see. Then a rich man came to court her, for she was beautiful, as I
told you, my lord. More beautiful than I could say. And her father
told her she was to be married. She ran away that night. She lived by
herself, wandering, for some years. A witch here and there took her
in, but she kept herself by her skill."
"It's not a
big island, Taon."
"Her father
wouldn't seek her. He said no tinker witch was his daughter."
Again Sparrowhawk
bowed his head. "So she heard of you, and came to you."
"But she
taught me more than I could teach her," Alder said earnestly.
"It was a great gift she had."
"I believe
it."
They had come to a
little house or big hut, set down in a dell, with witch hazel and
broom in tangles about it, and a goat on the roof, and a flock of
white-speckled black hens squawking away, and a lazy little sheepdog
bitch standing up and thinking about barking and thinking better of
it and waving her tail.
Sparrowhawk went to
the low doorway, stooping to look in. "There you are, Aunty!"
he said. "I've brought you a visitor. Alder, a man of sorcery
from the-Isle of Taon. His craft is mending, and he's a master, I can
tell you, for I just watched him put back together Tenar's green
pitcher, you know the one, that I like a clumsy old fool dropped and
broke to pieces the other day."
He entered the hut,
and Alder followed him. An old woman sat in a cushioned chair near
the doorway where she could look out into the sunlight. Feathers
stuck out of her wispy white hair. A speckled hen was settled in her
lap. She smiled at Sparrowhawk with enchanting sweetness and nodded
politely to the visitor. The hen woke, cackled, and departed.
"This is
Moss," said Sparrowhawk, "a witch of many skills, the
greatest of which is kindness."
So, Alder imagined,
might the Archmage of Roke have introduced a great wizard to a great
lady. He bowed. The old woman ducked her head and laughed a little.
She made a circling
motion with her left hand, looking a query at Sparrowhawk.
"Tenar?
Tehanu?" he said. "Still in Havnor with the king, so far as
I know. They'll be having a fine time there, seeing all the sights of
the great city and the palaces."
"I made us
crowns," Heather shouted, bouncing out of the odorous, dark
jumble farther inside the house. "Like kings and queens. See?"
She preened the chicken feathers that stuck out of her thick hair at
all angles. Aunty Moss, becoming aware of her own peculiar headdress,
batted ineffectively at the feathers with her left hand and grimaced.
"Crowns are
heavy," Sparrowhawk said. He gently plucked the feathers from
the thin hair.
"Who's the
queen, Mastawk?" Heather cried. "Who's the queen? Bannen's
the king, who's the queen?"
"King Lebannen
has no queen, Heather."
"Why not? He
ought to. Why not?"
"Maybe he's
looking for her."
"He'll marry
Tehanu!" the woman shrieked, joyful. "He will!"
Alder saw
Sparrowhawk's face change, close, become rock.
He said only, "I
doubt it." He held the feathers he had taken from Moss's hair
and stroked them softly. "I've come to you for a favor, as
always, Aunty Moss," he said.
She reached her
good hand out and took his hand with such tenderness that Alder was
moved to the heart.
"I want to
borrow one of your puppies."
Moss began to look
sad. Heather, gawking beside her, puzzled it over for a minute and
then shouted, "The puppies! Aunty Moss, the puppies! But they're
all gone!"
The old woman
nodded, looking forlorn, caressing Sparrowhawk's brown hand.
"Somebody
wanted them?"
"The biggest
one got out and maybe it ran up in the forest and some creature
killed it for it never came back and then old Ramballs, he came and
said he needs sheepdogs and he'd take both and train them and Aunty
gave them to him because they chased the new chicks Snowflakes
hatched and ate out house and home, they did, besides."
"Well, Rambles
may have a bit of a job training them," Sparrowhawk said with a
half smile. "I'm glad he's got them but sorry they're gone,
since I wanted to borrow one for a night or two. They slept on your
bed, didn't they, Moss?"
She nodded, still
sad. Then, brightening a little, she looked up with her head to one
side and mewed.
Sparrowhawk
blinked, but Heather understood, "Oh! The kittens!" she
shouted. "Little Grey had four, and Old Black he killed one
before we could stop him, but there's still two or three somewhere
round here, they sleep with Aunty and Biddy most every night now the
little dogs are gone. Kitty! kitty! kitty! where are you, kitty,
kitty?" And after a good deal of commotion and scrambling and
piercing mews in the dark interior, she reappeared with a grey kitten
clutched squirming and squealing in her hand. "Here's one!"
she shouted, and threw it at Sparrowhawk. He caught it awkwardly. It
instantly bit him.
"There, there
now," he told it. "Calm down." A tiny, rumbling growl
emerged from it, and it tried to bite him again. Moss gestured, and
he set the little creature down in her lap. She stroked it with her
slow heavy hand. It flattened out at once, stretched, looked up at
her, and purred.
"May I borrow
it for a while?"
The old witch
raised her hand from the kitten in a royal gesture that said clearly:
It is yours and welcome.
"Master Alder
here is having troublesome dreams, you see, and I thought maybe
having an animal with him nights might help to ease the trouble."
Moss nodded gravely
and, looking up at Alder, slipped her hand under the kitten and
lifted it towards him. Alder took it rather gingerly into his hands.
It did not growl or bite. It scrambled up his arm and clung to his
neck under his hair, which he wore loosely gathered at the nape.
As they walked back
to the Old Mage's house, the kitten tucked inside Alder's shirt,
Sparrowhawk explained. "Once, when I was new to the art, I was
asked to heal a child with the redfever. I knew the boy was dying,
but I couldn't bring myself to let him go. I tried to follow him. To
bring him back. Across the wall of stones… And so, here in the
body, I fell down by the bedside and lay like the dead myself.
There was a witch
there who guessed what the matter was, and she had me taken to my
house and laid abed there. And in my house was an animal that had
befriended me when I was a boy on Roke, a wild creature that came to
me of its own will and stayed with me. An otak. Do you know them? I
think there are none in the North."
Alder hesitated. He
said, "I know of them only from the Deed that tells of how…
how the mage came to the Court of the Terrenon in Osskil. And the
otak tried to warn him of a gebbeth that walked with him. And he won
free of the gebbeth, but the little animal was caught and slain."
Sparrowhawk walked
on without speaking for twenty paces or so. "Yes," he said.
"So. Well, my otak also saved my life when I was caught by my
own folly on the wrong side of the wall, my body lying here and my
soul astray there. The otak came to me and washed me, the way they
wash themselves and their young, the way cats do, with a dry tongue,
patiently, touching me and bringing me back with its touch, bringing
me back into my body. And the gift the animal gave me was not only
life but a knowledge as great as I ever learned on Roke… But
you see, I forget all my learning.
"A knowledge,
I say, but it's rather a mystery. What's the difference between us
and the animals? Speech? All the animals have some way of speaking,
saying come and beware and much else; but they can't tell stories,
and they can't tell lies. While we can…
"But the
dragons speak: they speak the True Speech, the language of the
Making, in which there are no lies, in which to tell the story is to
make it be! Yet we call the dragons animals..
"So maybe the
difference isn't language. Maybe it's this: animals do neither good
nor evil. They do as they must do. We may call what they do harmful
or useful, but good and evil belong to us, who chose to choose what
we do. The dragons are dangerous, yes. They can do harm, yes. But
they're not evil. They're beneath our morality, if you will, like any
animal. Or beyond it. They have nothing to do with it.
"We must
choose and choose again. The animals need only be and do. We're
yoked, and they're free. So to be with an animal is to know a little
freedom…
"Last night, I
was thinking of how witches often have a companion, a familiar. My
aunt had an old dog that never barked. She called him Gobefore. And
the Archmage Nemmerle, when I first came to Roke Island, had a raven
that went with him everywhere. And I thought of a young woman I knew
once who wore a little dragon-lizard, a harekki, for her bracelet.
And so at last I thought of my otak. Then I thought, if what Alder
needs to keep him on this side of the wall is the warmth of a touch,
why not an animal? Since they see life, not death. Maybe a dog or cat
is as good as a Master of Roke…"
So it proved. The
kitten, evidently happy to be away from the household of dogs and
tomcats and roosters and the unpredictable Heather, tried hard to
show that it was a reliable and diligent cat, patrolling the house
for mice, riding on Alder's shoulder under his hair when permitted,
and settling right down to sleep purring under his chin as soon as he
lay down. Alder slept all night without any dream he remembered, and
woke to find the kitten sitting on his chest, washing its ears with
an air of quiet virtue.
When Sparrowhawk
tried to determine its sex, however, it growled and struggled. "All
right," he said, getting his hand out of danger quickly. "Have
it your way. It's either a male or a female, Alder, I'm certain of
that."
"I won't name
it, in any case," Alder said. "They go out like candle
flames, little cats. If you've named one you grieve more for it."
That day at Alder's
suggestion they went fence mending, walking the goat-pasture fence,
Sparrowhawk on the inside and Alder on the outside. Whenever one of
them found a place where the palings showed the beginning of rot or
the tie laths had been weakened, Alder would run his hands along the
wood, thumbing and tugging and smoothing and strengthening, a half-
articulate chant almost inaudible in his throat and chest, his face
relaxed and intent.
Once Sparrowhawk,
watching him, murmured, "And I used to take it all for granted!"
Alder, lost in his
work, did not ask him what he meant.
"There,"
he said, "that'll hold." And they moved on, followed
closely by the two inquisitive goats, who butted and pushed at the
repaired sections offence as if to test them.
"I've been
thinking," Sparrowhawk said, "that you might do well to go
to Havnor."
Alder looked at him
in alarm. "Ah," he said. "I thought maybe, if I have a
way now to keep away from… that place… I could go home
to Taon." He was losing faith in what he said as he said it.
"You might,
but I don't think it would be wise."
Alder said
reluctantly, "It is a great deal to ask of a kitten, to defend a
man against the armies of the dead."
"It is."
"But I—what
should I do in Havnor?" And, with sudden hope, "Would you
go with me?"
Sparrowhawk shook
his head once. "I stay here."
"The Lord
Patterner…"
"Sent you to
me. And I send you to those who should hear your tale and find out
what it means… I tell you, Alder, I think in his heart the
Patterner believes I am what I was. He believes I'm merely hiding
here in the forests of Gont and will come forth when the need is
greatest." The old man looked down at his sweaty, patched
clothes and dusty shoes, and laughed. "In all my glory," he
said.
"Beh,"
said the brown goat behind him.
"But all the
same, Alder, he was right to send you here, since she'd have been
here, if she hadn't gone to Havnor."
"The Lady
Tenar?"
"Hama Gondun.
So the Patterner himself called her," Sparrowhawk said, looking
across the fence at Alder, his eyes unfathomable. "A woman on
Gont. The Woman of Gont. Tehanu."
When Alder came
down to the docks, Farflyer was still there, taking on a cargo of
timbers; but he knew he had worn out his welcome on that ship. He
went to a small shabby coaster tied up next to her, the Pretty Rose.
Sparrowhawk had
given him a letter of passage signed by the king and sealed with the
Rune of Peace. "He sent it for me to use if I changed my mind,"
the old man had said with a snort. "It'll serve you." The
ship's master, after getting his purser to read it for him, became
quite deferential and apologised for the cramped quarters and the
length of the voyage. Pretty Rose was going to Havnor, sure enough,
but she was a coaster, trading small goods from port to port, and it
might take her a month to work clear round the southeast coast of the
Great Island to the King's City.
That was all right
with him, Alder said. For if he dreaded the voyage, he feared its
ending more.
New moon to half
moon, the sea voyage was a time of peace for him. The grey kitten was
a hardy traveler, busy mousing the ship all day but faithfully
curling up under his chin or within hand's reach at night; and to his
unceasing wonder, that little scrap of warm life kept him from the
wall of stones and the voices calling him across it. Not wholly. Not
so that he ever entirely forgot them. They were there, just through
the veil of sleep in darkness, just through the brightness of the
day. Sleeping out on deck those warm nights, he opened his eyes often
to see that the stars moved, swinging to the rocking of the moored
ship, following their courses through heaven to the west. He was
still a haunted man. But for a half month of summer along the coasts
of Kameber and Barnisk and the Great Island he could turn his back on
his ghosts.
For days the kitten
hunted a young rat nearly as big as it was. Seeing it proudly and
laboriously hauling the carcass across the deck, one of the sailors
called it Tug. Alder accepted the name for it.
They sailed down
the Ebavnor Straits and in through the portals of Havnor Bay. Across
the sunlit water little by little the white towers of the city at the
center of the world resolved out of the haze of distance. Alder stood
at the prow as they came in and looking up saw on the pinnacle of the
highest tower a flash of silver light, the Sword of Erreth-Akbe.
Now he wished he
could stay aboard and sail on and not go ashore into the great city
among great people with a letter for the king. He knew he was no fit
messenger. Why had such a burden been laid on him? How could it be
that a village sorcerer who knew nothing of high matters and deep
arts was called on to make these journeys from land to land, from
mage to monarch, from the living to the dead?
He had said
something like that to Sparrowhawk. "It's all beyond me,"
he had said. The old man looked at him a while and then, calling him
by his true name, said, "The world's vast and strange, Hara, but
no vaster and no stranger than our minds are. Think of that
sometimes."
Behind the city the
sky darkened with a thunderstorm inland. The towers burned white
against purple-black, and gulls soared like drifting sparks of fire
above them.
Pretty Rose was
moored, the gangplank run out. This time the sailors wished him well
as he shouldered his pack. He picked up the covered poultry basket in
which Tug crouched patiently, and went ashore.
The streets were
many and crowded, but the way to the palace was plain, and he had no
idea what to do except go there and say that he carried a letter for
the king from the Archmage Sparrowhawk.
And that he did,
many times.
From guard to
guard, from official to official, from the broad outer steps of the
palace to high anterooms, staircases with gilded banisters, inner
offices with tapestried walls, across floors of tile and marble and
oak, under ceilings coffered, beamed, vaulted, painted, he went
repeating his talisman: "I come from Sparrowhawk who was the
Archmage with a letter for the king." He would not give his
letter up. A retinue, a crowd of suspicious, semi-civil, patronising,
temporising, obstructive guards and ushers and officials kept
gathering and thickening around him and followed and impeded his slow
way into the palace.
Suddenly they were
all gone. A door had opened. It closed behind him.
He stood alone in a
quiet room. A wide window looked out over the roofs northwestward.
The thundercloud had cleared and the broad grey summit of Mount Onn
hovered above far hills.
Another door
opened. A man came in, dressed in black, about Alder's age, quick
moving, with a fine, strong face as smooth as bronze. He came
straight to Alder: "Master Alder, I am Lebannen."
He put out his
right hand to touch Alders hand, palm against palm, as the custom was
in Ea and the Enlades. Alder responded automatically to the familiar
gesture. Then he thought he ought to kneel, or bow at least, but the
moment to do so seemed to have passed. He stood dumb.
"You came from
my Lord Sparrowhawk? How is he? Is he well?"
"Yes, lord. He
sends you—" Alder hurriedly groped inside his jacket for
the letter, which he had intended to offer to the king kneeling, when
they finally showed him to the throne room where the king would be
sitting on his throne—"this letter, my lord."
The eyes watching
him were alert, urbane, as implacably keen as Sparrowhawk's, but
withholding even more of the mind within. As the king took the letter
Alder offered him, his courtesy was perfect. "The bearer of any
word from him has my heart's thanks and welcome. Will you forgive
me?"
Alder finally
managed a bow. The king walked over to the window to read the letter.
He read it twice at
least, then refolded it. His face was as impassive as before. He went
to the door and spoke to someone outside it, then turned back to
Alder. "Please," he said, "sit down with me. They'll
bring us something to eat. You've been all afternoon in the palace, I
know. If the gate captain had had the wits to send me word, I could
have spared you hours of climbing the walls and swimming the moats
they set around me… Did you stay with my Lord Sparrowhawk? In
his house on the cliff's edge?"
"Yes."
"I envy you.
I've never been there. I haven't seen him since we parted on Roke,
half my lifetime ago. He wouldn't let me come to him on Gont. He
wouldn't come to my crowning." Lebannen smiled as if nothing he
said was of any moment. "He gave me my kingdom," he said.
Sitting down, he
nodded to Alder to take the chair facing him across a little table.
Alder looked at the tabletop, inlaid with curling patterns of ivory
and silver, leaves and blossoms of the rowan tree twined about
slender swords.
"Did you have
a good voyage?" the king asked, and made other small talk while
they were served plates of cold meat and smoked trout and lettuces
and cheese. He set Alder a welcome example by eating with a good
appetite; and he poured them wine, the palest topaz, in goblets of
crystal. He raised his glass. "To my lord and dear friend,"
he said.
Alder murmured, "To
him," and drank.
The king spoke
about Taon, which he had visited a few years before—Alder
remembered the excitement of the island when the king was in Meoni.
And he spoke of some musicians from Taon who were in the city now,
harpers and singers come to make music for the court; it might be
Alder knew some of them; and indeed the names he said were familiar.
He was very skilled at putting his guest at ease, and food and wine
were a considerable help too.
When they were done
eating, the king poured them another half glass of wine and said,
"The letter concerns you, mostly. Did you know that?" His
tone had not changed much from the small talk, and Alder was fuddled
for a moment.
"No," he
said.
"Do you have
an idea what it deals with?"
"What I dream,
maybe," Alder said, speaking low, looking down.
The king studied
him for a moment. There was nothing offensive in his gaze, but he was
more open in that scrutiny than most men would have been. Then he
took up the letter and held it out to Alder.
"My lord, I
read very little."
Lebannen was not
surprised—some sorcerers could read, some could not—but
he clearly and sharply regretted putting his guest at a disadvantage.
The gold-bronze skin of his face went dusky red. He said, "I'm
sorry, Alder. May I read you what he says?"
"Please, my
lord," Alder said. The king's embarrassment made him, for a
moment, feel the king's equal, and he spoke for the first time
naturally and with warmth.
Lebannen scanned
the salutation and some lines of the letter and then read aloud:
"Alder of Taon
who bears this to you is one called in dream and not by his own will
to that land you and I crossed once together. He will tell you of
suffering where suffering is past and change where no thing changes.
We closed the door Cob opened. Now the wall itself maybe is to fall.
He has been to Roke. Only Azver heard him. My Lord the King will hear
and will act as wisdom instructs and need requires. Alder bears my
lifelong honor and obedience to my Lord the King. Also my lifelong
honor and regard to my lady Tenar. Also to my beloved daughter Tehanu
a spoken message from me.' And he signs it with the rune of the
Talon." Lebannen looked up from the letter into Alder's eyes and
held his gaze. "Tell me what it is you dream," he said.
So once more Alder
told his story.
He told it briefly
and not very well. Though he had been in awe of Sparrowhawk, the
ex-Archmage looked and dressed and lived like an old villager or
farmer, a man of Alder's own kind and standing, and that simplicity
had defeated all superficial timidity. But however kind and courteous
the king might be, he looked like the king, he behaved like the king,
he was the king, and to Alder the distance was insuperable. He
hurried through as best he could and stopped with relief.
Lebannen asked a
few questions. Lily and then Gannet had each touched Alder once:
never since? And Gannet's touch had burned?
Alder held out his
hand. The marks were almost invisible under a month's tan.
"I think the
people at the wall would touch me if I came close to them," he
said.
"But you keep
away from them?"
"I have done
so."
"And they are
not people you knew in life?"
"Sometimes I
think I know one or another."
"But never
your wife?"
"There are so
many of them, my lord. Sometimes I think she's there. But I can't see
her."
To talk about it
brought it near, too near. He felt the fear welling up in him again.
He thought the walls of the room might melt away and the evening sky
and the floating mountain-crown vanish like a curtain brushed aside,
to leave him standing where he was always standing, on a dark hill by
a wall of stones.
"Alder."
He looked up,
shaken, his head swimming. The room seemed bright, the king's face
hard and vivid.
"You'll stay
here in the palace?"
It was an
invitation, but Alder could only nod, accepting it as an order.
"Good. I'll
arrange for you to give the message you bear to Mistress Tehanu
tomorrow. And I know the White Lady will wish to talk with you."
He bowed. Lebannen
turned away.
"My lord—"
Lebannen turned.
"May I have my
cat with me?"
Not a flicker of a
smile, no mockery. "Of course."
"My lord, I am
sorry to my heart, to bring news that troubles you!"
"Any word from
the man who sent you is a grace to me and to its bearer. And I'd
rather get bad news from an honest man than lies from a flatterer,"
Lebannen said, and Alder, hearing the true accent of his home islands
in the words, was a little cheered.
The king went out,
and at once a man looked in the door Alder had entered by. "I
will take you to your chamber, if you wall follow me, sir," he
said. He was dignified, elderly, and well dressed, and Alder followed
him without any idea whether he was a nobleman or a servant, and
therefore not daring to ask him about Tug. In the room before the
room where he had met the king, the officials and guards and ushers
had absolutely insisted that he leave his poultry basket with them.
It had been eyed with suspicion and inspected with disapproval by ten
or fifteen officials already. He had explained ten or fifteen times
that he had the cat with him because he had nowhere in the city to
leave it. The anteroom where he had been compelled to set it down was
far behind him, he had not seen it there as they went through, he
would never find it now, it was half a palace away, corridors,
hallways, passages, doors…
His guide bowed and
left him in a small, beautiful room, tapestried, carpeted, a chair
with an embroidered seat, a window that looked out to the harbor, a
table on which stood a bowl of summer fruit and a pitcher of water.
And the poultry basket.
He opened it. Tug
emerged in a leisurely manner indicating his familiarity with
palaces. He stretched, sniffed Alder's fingers in greeting, and went
about the room examining things. He discovered a curtained alcove
with a bed in it and jumped up on the bed. A discreet knock at the
door. A young man entered carrying a large, flat, heavy wooden box
with no lid. He bowed to Alder, murmuring, "Sand, sir." He
placed the box in the far corner of the alcove. He bowed again and
left.
"Well,"
Alder said, sitting down on the bed. He was not in the habit of
talking to the kitten. Their relationship was one of silent, trustful
touch. But he had to talk to somebody. "I met the king today,"
he said.
The king had all
too many people to talk to before he could sit down on his bed. Chief
among them were the emissaries of the High King of the Kargs. They
were about to take their leave, having accomplished their mission to
Havnor, to their own satisfaction if not at all to Lebannen's.
He had looked
forward to the visit of these ambassadors as the culmination of years
of patient overture, invitation, and negotiation. For the first ten
years of his reign he had been able to accomplish nothing at all with
the Kargs. The God-King in Awabath rejected his offers of treaties
and trade and sent his envoys back unheard, declaring that gods do
not parley with vile mortals, least of all with accursed sorcerers.
But the God-Kings proclamations of universal divine empire were not
followed by the threatened fleets of a myriad ships bearing plumed
warriors to overrun the godless West. Even the pirate raids that had
plagued the eastern isles of the Archipelago for so long gradually
ceased. The pirates had become contrabanders, seeking to trade
whatever unlicensed goods they could smuggle out of Karego-At for
Archipelagan iron and steel and bronze, for the Kargad Lands were
poor in mines and metal.
It was from these
illicit traders that news first came of the rise of the High King.
On Hur-at-Hur, the
big, poor, easternmost island of the Kargad Lands, a warlord, Thol,
claiming descent from Thoreg of Hupun and from the God Wuluah, had
made himself High King of that land. Next he had conquered At-nini,
and then, with a fleet and an invading army drawn from both
Hur-at-Hur and Atnini, he had claimed dominion over the rich central
island, Karego-At. While his warriors were fighting their way towards
Awabath, the capital city, the people of the city rose up against the
tyranny of the God-King. They slaughtered the high priests, drove the
bureaucrats out of the temples, threw the gates wide, and welcomed
King Thol to the throne of Thoreg with banners and dancing in the
streets.
The God-King fled
with a remnant of his guards and hi-erophants to the Place of the
Tombs on Atuan. There in the desert, in his temple by the
earthquake-shattered ruins of the shrine of the Nameless Ones, one of
his priest-eunuchs cut the God-King's throat.
Thol proclaimed
himself High King of the Four Kargad Lands. As soon as he got word of
that, Lebannen sent ambassadors to greet his brother king and assure
him of the friendly disposition of the Archipelago.
Five years of
difficult and tiresome diplomacy had ensued. Thol was a violent man
on a threatened throne. In the wreckage of the theocracy, all control
in his realm was chancy, all authority questionable. Lesser kings
constantly declared themselves and had to be bought or beaten into
obedience to the High King. Sectarians issued from shrines and
caverns crying "Woe to the mighty!" and foretelling
earthquake, tidal wave, plague upon the deicides. Ruling a troubled,
divided empire, Thol could scarcely place any trust in the powerful
and wealthy Archipelagans.
It meant nothing to
him that their king talked about friendship, flourishing the Ring of
Peace. Did not the Kargs have a claim to that ring? It had been made
in ancient days in the West, but long ago, King Thoreg of Hupun had
accepted it as a gift from the hero Erreth-Akbe, a sign of amity
between the Kargad and Hardic lands. It had disappeared, and there
had been war, not amity. But then the Hawk-Mage had found the ring
and stolen it back, along with the Priestess of the Tombs of Atuan,
and carried both off to Havnor. So much for the trustworthiness of
the Archipelagans.
Through his envoys,
Lebannen patiently and politely pointed out that the Ring of Peace
had, to begin with, been Morred's gift to Elfarran, a cherished token
of the Archipelago's most beloved king and queen. And a very sacred
thing as well, for on it was the Bond rune, a mighty enchantment of
blessing. Nearly four centuries ago, Erreth-Akbe had taken it to the
Kargad Lands as a pledge of unbreakable peace. But the priests of
Awabath had broken the pledge, and broken the Ring. Some forty years
ago now, Spar-rowhawk of Roke and Tenar of Atuan had healed the Ring.
What, then, of the peace?
That had been the
gist of his messages to King Thol.
And a month ago,
just after the Long Dance of summer, a fleet of ships had come
sailing straight down the Passage of Felkway, up the Ebavnor Straits,
and in between the portals of Havnor Bay: long red ships with red
sails, carrying plumed warriors, gorgeous-robed emissaries, and a few
veiled women.
"Let the
daughter of Thol the High King, who sits upon the Throne of Thoreg
and whose ancestor was Wuluah, wear the Ring of Peace upon her arm,
as Queen Elfarran of Solea wore it, and this will be the sign of
everlasting peace between the Western and the Eastern Isles."
That was the High
King's message to Lebannen. It was written out in big Hardic runes on
a scroll, but before handing it to King Lebannen, Thol's ambassador
read it out loud, in public, at the reception of the emissaries at
the court in Havnor, with the whole court there to do the Kargish
envoys honor. Perhaps it was because the ambassador did not actually
read Hardic, but spoke the words loudly and slowly from memory, that
they had the tone of an ultimatum.
The princess said
nothing. She stood among the ten handmaidens or slave girls who had
accompanied her to Havnor and the flock of court ladies who had been
hastily assigned to look after her and do her honor. She was veiled,
entirely veiled, as was, it appeared, the custom of well-born women
in Hur-at-Hur. The veils, red with lines of gold embroidery, fell
straight down from a flat-brimmed hat or headdress, so that the
princess appeared to be a red column or pillar, cylindrical,
featureless, motionless, silent.
"The High King
Thol does us great honor," Lebannen said in his clear, quiet
voice; and then he paused. The court and the emissaries waited. "You
are welcome here, princess," he said to the veiled figure. It
did not stir.
"Let the
princess be lodged in the River House, and let all be as she
desires," Lebannen said.
The River House was
a beautiful small palace at the northern edge of the city, fitted
into the old city wall, with terraces built out over the little River
Serrenen. Queen Heru had built it, and it was often called the
Queen's House.
When Lebannen came
to the throne he had had it repaired and refurnished, along with the
Palace of Maharion, called the New Palace, in which he held court. He
used the River House only for summer festivities and sometimes as a
retreat for himself for a few days.
A little rustle now
went through his courtiers. The Queens House?
After urbanities
among the Kargish emissaries, Lebannen left the audience room. He
went to his dressing room, where he could be as alone as a king can
be, with his old servant, Oak, whom he had known all his life.
He slapped the
gilded scroll down on a table. "Cheese in a rat trap," he
said. He was shaking. He whipped the dagger he always wore out of its
sheath and stabbed it straight down through the High King's message.
"A pig in a poke," he said. "A piece of goods. The
Ring on her arm and the collar round my neck."
Oak stared at him
in blank dismay. Prince Arren of Enlad had never lost his temper.
When he was a child he might have wept for a moment, one bitter sob,
but that was all. He was too well trained, too well disciplined to
give way to anger. And as king, a king who had earned his realm by
crossing the land of the dead, he could be stern, but always, Oak
thought, too proud, too strong for anger.
"They will not
use me!" Lebannen said, stabbing the dagger down again, his face
so black and blind with fury that the old man drew back from him in
real fear.
Lebannen saw him.
He always saw the people around him.
He sheathed his
dagger. He said in a steadier voice,
"Oak, by my
name, I will destroy Thol and his kingdom before I let him use me as
a footstool to his throne." Then he drew a long breath and sat
down to let Oak lift the heavy, gold-weighted state robe from his
shoulders.
Oak never breathed
a word of this scene to anyone, but there was, of course, immediate
and continuous speculation about the princess of the Kargs and what
the king was going to do about her—or what, in fact, he had
already done.
He had not said
that he accepted the offer of the princess as his bride. For all
agreed she had been offered to him as his bride; the language about
Elfarran's Ring barely veiled the offer, or the bargain, or the
threat. But he had not refused it, either. His response (endlessly
analyzed) had been to say she was welcome, that all should be as she
desired, and that she should live in the River House: the Queen's
House. Surely that was significant? But on the other hand, why not in
the New Palace? Why send her across the city?
Ever since
Lebannen's coronation, ladies of noble houses and princesses of the
old royal lineages of Enlad, Ea, and Shelieth had come to visit or to
stay at the court. They had all been entertained most royally, and
the king had danced at their weddings as, one by one, they settled
for noblemen or wealthy commoners. It was well known that he liked
the company of women and their counsel as well, that he would
willingly flirt with a pretty girl and invite an intelligent woman to
advise him, tease him, or console him. But no girl or woman had ever
come near the rumor of a shadow of a chance of marrying him. And none
had ever been lodged in the River House.
The king must have
a queen, his advisors told him at regular intervals.
You really must
marry, Arren, his mother had told him the last time he saw her alive.
The heir of Morred,
will he have no heir? asked the common people.
To all of them he
had said, in various words and ways: Give me time. I have the ruins
of a kingdom to rebuild. Let me make a house worthy of a queen, a
realm my child can rule. And because he was well loved and trusted,
and still a young man, and for all his gravity a charming and
persuasive one, he had escaped all the hopeful maidens. Until now.
What was under the
stiff red veils? Who lived inside that unrevealing tent? The ladies
assigned to the princess's entourage were besieged by questions. Was
she pretty? Ugly? Was it true she was tall and thin, short and
muscular, white as milk, pockmarked, one-eyed, yellow-haired,
black-haired, forty-five years old, ten years old, a drooling cretin,
a brilliant beauty?
Gradually the
rumors began to run one way. She was young, though not a child; hair
neither yellow nor black; pretty enough, said some of the ladies;
coarse, said others. Spoke not a word of Hardic, they all said, and
would not learn. Hid among her women, and when forced to leave her
room, hid in her red tent-veils. The king had paid her a visit of
courtesy. She had not bowed to him, or spoken, or made any sign, but
stood there, said old Lady lyesa in exasperation, "like a brick
chimney."
He spoke to her
through men who had served as his envoys in the Kargad Lands and
through the Karg ambassador, who spoke fairly good Hardic.
Laboriously he transmitted his compliments and queries as to her
wishes and desires. The translators spoke to her women, whose veils
were shorter and somewhat less impenetrable. Her women gathered round
the motionless red pillar and mumbled and buzzed and returned the
translators, and the translators informed the king that the princess
was content and required nothing.
She had been there
a half month when Tenar and Tehanu arrived from Gont. Lebannen had
sent a ship and a message begging them to come, shortly before the
Kargad leet brought the princess, and for reasons that had nothing to
do with her or King Thol. But the first time he was alone nth Tenar,
he burst out, "What am I going to do with her? at can I do?"
"Tell me about
it," Tenar said, looking somewhat amazed.
Lebannen had spent
only a brief time with Tenar, though they had written a few letters
over the years; he was not yet used to her hair being grey, and she
seemed smaller than he remembered her; but with her he felt
immediately, as he had fifteen years earlier, that he could say
anything and she would understand.
"For five
years I've built up trade and tried to keep on good terms with Thol,
because he's a warlord and I don't want my kingdom pinched, as it was
in Maharion's reign, between dragons in the west and warlords in the
east. And because I rule in the Sign of Peace. And it went well
enough, till this. Till he sends this girl out of the blue, saying if
you want peace, give her Elfarran's Ring. Your Ring, Tenar! Yours and
Ged's!"
Tenar hesitated a
while. "She is his daughter, after all."
"What's a
daughter to a barbarian king? Goods. A bargaining piece to buy
advantage with. You know that! You were born there!"
It was unlike him
to speak so, and he heard it himself. He knelt down suddenly,
catching her hand and putting it over his eyes in sign of contrition.
"Tenar, I'm sorry. This disturbs me beyond all reason. I can't
see what to do."
"Well, so long
as you do nothing, you have some leeway… Maybe the princess
has some opinion of her own?"
"How can she?
Hidden in that red sack? She won't talk, she won't look out, she
might as well be a tent pole." He tried to laugh. His own
uncontrollable resentment alarmed him and he tried to excuse it.
"This came on just as I had troubling news from the west. It was
for that that I asked you and Tehanu to come. Not to bother you with
this foolishness."
"It isn't
foolishness," Tenar said, but he brushed the topic away,
dismissed it, and began to talk about dragons.
Since the news from
the west had been troubling indeed, he had succeeded in not thinking
about the princess at all, most of the time. He was aware that it was
not his habit to handle matters of state by ignoring them.
Manipulated, one manipulates others. Several days after their
conversation, he asked Tenar to visit the princess, to try to get her
to talk. After all, he said, they spoke the same language.
"Probably,"
Tenar said. "I never knew anybody from Hur-at-Hur. On Atuan, we
called them barbarians."
He was chastised.
But of course she did what he asked. Presently she reported that she
and the princess spoke the same language, or nearly the same, and
that the princess had not known that there were any other languages.
She had thought all the people here, the courtiers and ladies, were
malicious lunatics, mocking her by chattering and yapping like
animals without human speech. As well as Tenar could tell, she had
grown up in the desert, in King Thol's original domain on Hur-at-Hur,
and had only been very briefly at the imperial court in Awabath
before she was sent on to Havnor.
"She's
frightened," Tenar said.
"So she hides
in her tent. What does she think I am?"
"How could she
know what you are?"
He scowled. "How
old is she?"
"Young. But a
woman."
"I can't marry
her," he said, with sudden resolution. "I'll send her
back."
"A returned
bride is a dishonored woman. If you send her back, Thol might kill
her to keep the dishonor from his house. He'll certainly consider
that you intend to dishonor him."
The look of fury
came into his face again.
Tenar forestalled
him. "Barbarian customs," she said stiffly.
He strode up and
down the room. "Very well. But I will not consider this girl as
queen of the Kingdom of Morred. Can she be taught to speak Hardic? A
few words, at least? Is she unteachable? I'll tell Thol that a Hardic
king can't marry a woman who doesn't speak the language of the realm.
I don't care if he doesn't like it, he needs the slap. And it buys me
time."
"And you'll
ask her to learn Hardic?"
"How can I ask
her anything if she takes it all for gibberish? What possible use is
there in my going to her? I thought perhaps you'd speak to her,
Tenar… You must see what an imposition this is, using this
girl to make Thol appear my equal, using the Ring—the Ring you
brought us—as a trap! I cannot even seem to condone it. I'm
willing to temporise, to delay, in order to keep the peace. Nothing
more. Even that much deceit is vile. Tell the girl what you think
best. I will have nothing to do with her."
And he went out in
a righteous wrath, which cooled slowly into an uneasy feeling much
resembling shame.
When the Kargish
emissaries announced they would be leaving soon, Lebannen prepared a
carefully worded message for King Thol. He expressed his appreciation
of the honor of the princess's presence in Havnor and the pleasure he
and his court would have in introducing her to the manners, customs,
and language of his kingdom. He said nothing at all about the Ring,
about marrying her, or about not marrying her.
It was in the
evening after his conversation with the dream-troubled sorcerer from
Taon that he met for the last time with the Kargs and gave them his
letter to the High King. He read it aloud first, as the ambassador
had read aloud Thol's letter to him.
The ambassador
listened complacently. "The High King will be pleased," he
said.
All the time he was
talking amenities to the emissaries and displaying the gifts he was
sending to Thol, Lebannen puzzled over this easy acceptance of his
evasiveness. His thoughts all came to one conclusion: He knows I'm
stuck with her. To which his mind made a passionate silent answer:
Never.
He inquired whether
the ambassador would be going by the River House to bid his princess
farewell. The ambassador looked at him blankly, as if he had been
asked if he was going to say goodbye to a package he had delivered.
Lebannen felt the anger rising in his heart again. He saw the
ambassador's face change a little, taking on a wary, placating look.
He smiled and wished the emissaries a fair wind to the Kargad Lands.
He went out of the audience chamber and to his own room.
Rites and ceremony
hedged most of his acts, and as king he must be in public most of his
life; but because he had come to a throne empty for centuries, a
palace where there were no protocols, he had been able to have some
things as he liked them. He had kept ceremony out of his bedroom. His
nights were his own. He said good night to Oak, who would sleep in
the anteroom, and shut the door. He sat down on his bed. He felt
tired and angry and strangely desolate.
Around his neck he
always wore a slight gold chain with a little pouch of cloth-of-gold
on it. In the pouch was a pebble: a dull, black bit of rock, rough
edged. He took it out and held it in his hand as he sat and thought.
He tried to turn
his mind away from all this stupidity about the Kargish girl by
thinking about the sorcerer Alder and his dreams. But all that came
into his mind was a painful envy of Alder for having gone ashore on
Gont, having talked with Ged, having stayed with him.
That was why he
felt desolate. The man he called his lord, the man he had loved above
all others, wouldn't let him come near, wouldn't come to him.
Did Ged believe
that because he had lost his wizardly power, Lebannen must think less
of him? must despise him?
Given the power
that power had over the minds and hearts of men, it was not an
implausible thought. But surely Ged knew him better, or at least
thought better of him.
Was it that, having
been truly Lebannen's lord and guide, Ged could not bear to be his
subject? That might indeed be hard for the old man to bear: the
blunt, irrevocable reversal of their status.
But Lebannen
remembered very clearly how Ged had knelt to him, down on both knees,
on Roke Knoll, in the shadow of the dragon and in the sight of the
masters whose master Ged had been. He had stood up and kissed
Lebannen, telling him to rule well, calling him my lord and dear
companion.
"He gave me my
kingdom," Lebannen had said to Alder. That had been the moment
he gave it. Wholly, freely.
And that was why
Ged wouldn't come to Havnor, wouldn't let Lebannen come to take
counsel with him. He had handed over the power—wholly, freely.
He would not even seem to meddle, to cast his shadow across
Lebannen's light.
"He has done
with doing," the Doorkeeper had said.
But Alder's story
had moved Ged to send the man here, to Lebannen, asking him to act as
need required.
It was indeed
strange, Alders story; and Ged's saying that maybe the wall itself
was going to fall was stranger yet. What could it mean? And why
should one man's dreams bear so much weight?
He himself had
dreamed of the outskirts of the dryland, long ago, when he and Ged
the Archmage were traveling together, before they ever came to
Selidor.
And on that
westernmost of all the islands he had followed Ged into the dry land.
Across the wall of stones, awn to dim cities where the shadows of the
dead stood in doorways or walked without aim or purpose in streets
lit only ay the moveless stars. With Ged he had walked across all it
country, a weary way to a dark valley of dust and stones at the foot
of the mountains whose only name was Paln.
He opened his palm,
looked down at the little black stone he held, closed his hand on it
again.
From the valley of
the dry river, having done what they came to do, they had climbed up
into the mountains, because there was no turning back. They had gone
up the road forbidden to the dead, climbing, clambering over rocks
that scored and burned their hands, till Ged could go no farther.
Lebannen had carried him as far as he could, then crawled on with him
to the end of darkness, the hopeless cliff of night. And so had come
back, with him, into the sunlight and the sound of the sea breaking
on the shores of life.
It was a long time
since he had thought so vividly of that terrible journey. But the bit
of black stone from those mountains was always over his heart.
And it seemed to
him now that the memory of that land, the darkness of it, the dust,
was always in his mind just under the bright various play and
movement of the days, although he always looked away from it. He
looked away because he could not bear the knowledge that in the end
that was where he would come again: come alone, uncompanioned, and
forever. To stand empty-eyed, unspeaking, in the shadows of a shadow
city. Never to see sunlight, or drink water, or touch a living hand.
He got up abruptly,
shaking off these morbid thoughts.
He closed the stone
in its pouch, made ready for bed, put out the lamp, and lay down. At
once he saw it again: the dim grey land of dust and rock It rose up
far ahead into black, sharp peaks, but here it sloped away, always
downward, to the right, into utter darkness. "What lies that
way?" he had asked Ged as they walked on and on. His companion
had said he did not know, that maybe that way there was no end.
Lebannen sat up, angered and alarmed by the relentless drift of his
thought. His eyes sought the window. It looked north. He liked the
view from Havnor across the hills to the tall, grey-headed mountain
Onn. Farther north, unseen, across all the width of the Great Island
and the Sea of Ea, was Enlad, his home.
Lying in bed he
could see only the sky, a clear summer night sky, the Heart of the
Swan riding high among lesser stars. His kingdom. The kingdom of
light, of life, where the stars blossomed like white flowers in the
east and drooped in their brightness to the west. He would not think
of that other realm where the stars stayed still, where there was no
power in a man's hand, and no right way to go because no way led
anywhere.
Lying gazing at the
stars, he turned his mind deliberately from those memories and from
the thought of Ged. He thought of Tenar: the sound of her voice, the
touch of her hand. Courtiers were ceremonious, cautious about how and
when they touched the king. She was not. She laid her hand on his,
laughing. She was bolder with him than his mother had been.
Rose, princess of
the House of Enlad, had died of a fever two years ago, while he was
on shipboard coming to make a royal visit to Berila on Enlad and the
isles south of it. He had not known of her death till he came home to
a city and a house in mourning.
His mother was
there now in the dark country, the dry country. If he came there and
passed her in the street she would not look at him. She would not
speak to him.
He clenched his
hands. He rearranged the cushions of his bed, tried to make himself
easy, tried to set his mind away from there, to think of things that
would keep him from going back there. To think of his mother living,
her voice, her dark eyes under dark arched brows, her delicate hands.
Or to think of
Tenar. He knew he had asked Tenar to come to Havnor not only to take
counsel from her but because she was the mother that remained to him.
He wanted that love, to give it and be given it. The ruthless love
that makes no allowances, no conditions. Tenar's eyes were grey, not
dark, but she looked right through him with a piercing tenderness
undeceived by anything he said or did.
He knew he did well
what he had been called to do. He knew he was good at playing king.
But only with his mother and with Tenar had he ever known beyond any
self-doubt what it was to be king.
Tenar had known him
since he was a very young man, not yet crowned. She had loved him
then and ever since, for his sake, for Ged's sake, and for her own.
He was to her the son who never breaks your heart.
But she thought he
might yet manage to, if he kept on being so rageful and dishonest
about this poor girl from Hur-at-Hur.
She attended the
final audience of the emissaries from Awabath. Lebannen had asked her
to be there, and she was glad to come. Finding Kargs at the court
when she came there at the beginning of summer, she had expected them
to shun her or at least to eye her askance: the renegade priestess
who with the thieving Hawk Mage had stolen the Ring of Erreth-Akbe
from the treasury of the Tombs of Atuan and traitorously fled with it
to Havnor. It was her doing that the Archipelago had a king again.
The Kargs might well hold it against her.
And Thol of
Hur-at-Hur had restored the worship of the Twin Gods and the Nameless
Ones, whose greatest temple Tenar had despoiled. Her treason had been
not only political but religious.
Yet that was long
ago, forty years and more, almost the stuff of legend; and statesmen
remember things selectively. Thol's ambassador had begged the honor
of an audience with her and had greeted her with elaborately pious
respect, some of which she thought was real. He called her Lady Arha,
the Eaten One, the One Ever Reborn. She had not been called by those
names for years, and they sounded very strange to her. But it gave
her a keen, rueful pleasure to hear her native tongue and to find she
could still speak it.
So she came to bid
the ambassador and his company goodbye. She asked him to assure the
High King of the Kargs that his daughter was well, and she looked
admiringly a last time at the tall, rawboned men with their pale,
braided hair, their plumed headdresses, their court armor of silver
mesh interwoven with feathers. When she lived in the Kargad Lands she
had seen few men of her own race. Only women and eunuchs had lived at
the Place of the Tombs.
After the ceremony
she escaped into the gardens of the palace. The summer night was warm
and restless, flowering shrubs of the gardens stirring in the night
wind. The sounds of the city outside the palace walls were like the
murmur of a quiet sea. A couple of young courtiers were walking
entwined under the arbors; not to disturb them, Tenar walked among
the fountains and the roses at the other end of the garden.
Lebannen had left
the audience scowling again. What was wrong with him? So far as she
knew, he had never before rebelled against the obligations of his
position. Certainly he knew that a king must marry and has little
real choice as to whom he marries. He knew that a king who does not
obey his people is a tyrant. He knew his people wanted a queen,
wanted heirs to the throne. But he had done nothing about it. Women
of the court had been happy to gossip to Tenar about his several
mistresses, none of whom had lost anything by being known as the
king's lover. He had certainly managed all that quite well, but he
couldn't expect to do so forever. Why was he so enraged by King
Thol's offering him a perfectly appropriate solution?
Imperfectly
appropriate, perhaps. The princess was something of a problem.
Tenar was going to
have to try to teach the girl Hardic. And to find ladies willing to
instruct her in the manners of the Archipelago and the etiquette of
the court—something she certainly wasn't capable of herself.
She had more sympathy with the princess's ignorance than with the
courtiers' sophistication.
She resented
Lebannen's failure or inability to take the girl's point of view.
Couldn't he imagine what it was like for her? Brought up in the
women's quarters of a warlord's fortress in a remote desert land,
where she probably had never seen any man but her father and uncles
and some priests; suddenly carried off from that changeless poverty
and rigidity of life, by strangers, on a long and frightening sea
voyage; abandoned among people whom she knew of only as irreligious
and bloodthirsty monsters who dwelt on the far edge of the world, not
truly human at all because they were wizards who could turn into
animals and birds—And she was to marry one of them!
Tenar had been able
to leave her own people and come to live among the monsters and
wizards of the West because she had been with Ged, whom she loved and
trusted. Even so it had not been easy; often her courage had failed.
For all the welcome the people of Havnor had given her, the crowds
and cheering and flowers and praise, the sweet names they called her,
the White Lady, the Peace Bringer, Tenar of the Ring—for all
that, she had cowered in her room in the palace those nights long
ago, in misery because she was so lonely, and nobody spoke her
language, and she didn't know any of the things they all knew. As
soon as the rejoicings were over and the Ring was in its place she
had begged Ged to take her away, and he had kept his promise,
slipping away with her to Gont. There she had lived in the Old Mage's
house as Ogion's ward and pupil, learning how to be an Archipelagan,
till she saw the way she wanted to follow for herself as a woman
grown.
She had been
younger than this girl when she came to Havnor with the Ring. But she
had not grown up powerless, as the princess had. Though her power as
the One Priestess had been mostly ceremonial, nominal, she had taken
real control of her fate when she broke with the grim ways of her
upbringing and won freedom for her prisoner and herself. But the
daughter of a warlord would have control over only trivial things.
When her father made himself king she would be called princess, she
would be given richer clothing, more slaves, more eunuchs, more
jewelry, until she herself was given in marriage; but she would have
no say in any of it. All she ever saw of the world outside the
women's quarters would be through window slits in thick walls,
through layers of red veiling.
Tenar counted
herself lucky not to have been born on so backward and barbaric an
island as Hur-at-Hur, never to have worn the feyag. But she knew what
it was to grow up in the grip of an iron tradition. It behooved her
to do what she could to help the princess, so long as she was in
Havnor. But she didn't intend to stay here long.
Strolling in the
garden, watching the fountains glimmer in starlight, she thought
about how and when she could go home.
She did not mind
the formalities of court life or the knowledge that under the
civility simmered a stew of ambitions, rivalries, passions,
complicities, collusions. She had grown up with rituals and hypocrisy
and hidden politics, and none of it frightened or worried her. She
was simply homesick. She wanted to be back on Gont, with Ged, in
their house.
She had come to
Havnor because Lebannen sent for her and Tehanu, and Ged if he would
come; but Ged wouldn't come, and Tehanu wouldn't come without her.
That did frighten and worry her. Could her daughter not break free
from her? It was Tehanu's counsel Lebannen needed, not hers. But her
daughter clung to her, as ill at ease, as out of place in the court
of Havnor as the girl from Hur-at-Hur was, and like her, silent, in
hiding.
So Tenar must play
nursemaid, tutor, and companion now to both of them, two scared girls
who didn't know how to take hold of their power, while she wanted no
power on earth except the freedom to go home where she belonged and
help Ged with the garden.
She wished they
could grow white roses like these, at home. Their scent was so sweet
in the night air. But it was too windy on the Overfell, and the sun
was too strong in summer. And probably the goats would eat the roses.
She went back
indoors at last and made her way through the eastern wing to the
suite of rooms she shared with Tehanu. Her daughter was asleep, for
it was late. A flame no bigger than a pearl burned on the wick of a
tiny alabaster lamp. The high rooms were soft, shadowy. She blew out
the lamp, got into bed, and soon sank towards sleep.
She was walking
along a narrow, high-vaulted corridor of stone. She carried the
alabaster lamp. Its faint oval of light died away into darkness in
front of her and behind her. She came to the door of a room that
opened off the corridor. Inside the room were people with the wings
of birds. Some had the heads of birds, hawks and vultures. They stood
or squatted motionless, not looking at her or at anything, with eyes
encircled with white and red. Their wings were like huge black cloaks
hanging down behind them. She knew they could not fly. They were so
mournful, so hopeless, and the air in the room was so foul that she
struggled to turn, to run away, but she could not move; and fighting
that paralysis, she woke.
There were the warm
shadows, the stars in the window, the scent of roses, the soft stir
of the city, Tehanu's breathing as she slept.
Tenar sat up to
shake off the remnants of the dream. It had been of the Painted Room
in the Labyrinth of the Tombs, where she had first met Ged face to
face, forty years ago. In the dream the paintings on the walls had
come to life. Only it was not life. It was the endless, timeless
unlife of those who died without rebirth: those accursed by the
Nameless Ones: infidels, westerners, sorcerers.
After you died you
were reborn. That was the sure knowledge in which she had been
brought up. When as a child she was taken to the Tombs to be Arha,
the Eaten One, they told her that she alone of all people had been
and would be reborn as herself, life after life. Sometimes she had
believed that, but not always, even when she was the priestess of the
Tombs, and never since. But she knew what all the people of the
Kargad Lands knew, that when they died they would return in a new
body, the lamp that guttered out flickering up again that same
instant elsewhere, in a woman's womb or the tiny egg of a minnow or a
windborne seed of grass, coming back to be, forgetful of the old
life, fresh for the new, life after life eternally.
Only those outcast
by the earth itself, by the Old Powers, the dark sorcerers of the
Hardic Lands, were not reborn. When they died—so said the
Kargs—they did not rejoin the living world, but went to a
dreary place of half being where, winged but flightless, neither bird
nor human, they must endure without hope. How the priestess Kossil
had relished telling her about the terrible fate of those boastful
enemies of the God-King, their souls doomed to be cast out of the
world of light forever!
But the afterlife
Ged had told her of, where he said his people went, that changeless
land of cold dust and shadow—was that any less dreary, any less
terrible?
Unanswerable
questions clamored in her mind: because she was no longer a Karg,
because she had betrayed the sacred place, must she go to that dry
land when she died? Must Ged go there? Would they pass each other
there, uncaring? That was not possible. But what if he must go there,
and she be reborn, so that their parting must be eternal?
She would not think
about all that. It was clear enough why she had dreamed of the
Painted Room, all these years after she had left all that behind her.
It had to do with seeing the ambassadors, speaking Kargish again, of
course. But still she lay upset, unnerved by the dream. She did not
want to go back to the nightmares of her youth. She wanted to be back
in the house on the Overfell, lying by Ged, hearing Tehanu's breath
while she slept. When he slept Ged lay still as a stone; but the fire
had left some damage in Tehanu's throat so there was a little
harshness always in her breathing, and Tenar had listened to that,
listened for it, night after night, year after year. That was life,
that was life returning, that dear sound, that slight harsh breath.
Listening to it,
she slept again at last. If she dreamed it was only of gulfs of air
and the colors of morning moving in the sky.
Alder woke very
early. His little companion had been restless all night, and so had
he. He was glad to get up and go to the window and sit sleepily
watching light come into the sky over the harbor, fishing boats set
out and the sails of ships loom from a low mist in the great bay, and
listening to the hum and bustle of the city making ready for the day.
About the time he began to wonder if he should venture into the
bewilderment of the palace to find what he was supposed to do, there
was a knock on his door. A man brought in a tray of fresh fruit and
bread, a jug of milk, and a small bowl of meat for the kitten. "I
will come to conduct you to the king's presence when the fifth hour
is told," he informed Alder solemnly, and then rather less
formally told him how to get down into the palace gardens if he
wanted a walk.
Alder knew of
course that there were six hours from midnight to noon and six hours
from noon to midnight, but had never heard the hours told, and
wondered what the man meant.
He learned,
presently, that here in Havnor four trumpeters went out on the high
balcony from which rose the highest tower of the palace, the one that
was topped with the slender steel blade of the hero's sword, and at
the fourth and fifth hours before noon, and at noon, and at the
first, second, and third hours after noon they blew their trumpets
one to the west, one to the north, one to the east, one to the south.
So the courtiers of the palace and the merchants and shippers of the
city could arrange their doings and meet their appointments at the
hour agreed. A boy he met walking in the gardens explained all this,
a small, thin boy in a tunic that was too long for him. He explained
that the trumpeters knew when to blow their trumpets because there
were great sand clocks in the tower, as well as the Pendulum of Ath
which hung down from high up in the tower and if set swinging just at
the hour would cease to swing just as the next hour began. And he
told Alder that the tunes the trumpeters played were all parts of the
Lament for Erreth-Akbe that King Maharion wrote when he came back
from Selidor, a different part for each hour, but only at noon did
they play the whole tune through. And if you wanted to be somewhere
at a certain hour, you should keep an eye on the balconies, because
the trumpeters always came out a few minutes early, and if the sun
was shining they held up their silver trumpets to flash and shine.
The boy was called Rody and he had come with his father, the Lord of
Metama on Ark, to stay a year in Havnor, and he went to school in the
palace, and he was nine, and he missed his mother and his sister.
Alder was back in
his room in time to meet his guide, less nervous than he might have
been. The conversation with the child had reminded him that the sons
of lords were children, that lords were men, and that it was not men
he need fear.
His guide brought
him through the palace corridors to a long, light room with windows
all along one wall, looking out over Havnor's towers and fantastic
bridges that arched over the canals and leapt from roof to roof and
balcony to balcony across the streets. He half saw that panorama as
he stood near the door, hesitant, not knowing if he should go forward
to the group of people at the far end of the room.
The king saw him
and came to him, greeted him kindly, led him to the others, and
introduced them one by one.
There was a woman
of fifty or so, small and very light-skinned, with greying hair and
large grey eyes: Tenar, the king said smiling: Tenar of the Ring. She
looked Alder in the eye and greeted him quietly.
There was a man of
about the king's age, dressed in velvet and airy linens, with jewels
on his belt and at his throat and a great ruby stud in his earlobe:
Shipmaster Tosla, said the king. Tosla's face, dark as old oak wood,
was keen and hard.
There was a
middle-aged man, simply dressed, with a steady look that made Alder
feel he could trust him: Prince Sege of the House of Havnor, said the
king.
There was a man of
forty or so who carried a wooden staff of his own height, by which
Alder knew him as a wizard of the School on Roke. He had a rather
worn face, fine hands, an aloof but courteous manner. Master Onyx,
said the king.
There was a woman
whom Alder took for a servant because she was very plainly dressed
and stayed outside the group, turned half away as if looking out the
windows. He saw the beautiful fall of her black hair, heavy and
glossy as falling water, as Lebannen led her forward. "Tehanu of
Gont," the king said, and his voice rang out like a challenge.
The woman looked
straight at Alder for a moment. She was young; the left side of her
face was smooth copper-rose, a dark bright eye under an arched
eyebrow. The right side had been destroyed and was ridged, slabby
scar, eyeless. Her right hand was like a raven's curled claw.
She put out her
hand to Alder, in the manner of the people of Ea and the Enlades, as
the others had done, but it was her left hand she held out. He
touched his hand to hers, palm to palm. Hers was hot, fever hot. She
looked at him again, an amazing glance from that one eye, bright,
frowning, fierce. Then she looked down again and stood back as if she
wished not to be one of them, wished not to be there.
"Master Alder
bears a message for you from your father the Hawk of Gont," the
king said, seeing the messenger stand wordless.
Tehanu did not lift
her head. The glossy black hair almost hid the ruin of her face.
"My lady,"
Alder said, dry-mouthed and husky-voiced, "he bade me ask you
two questions." He paused, only because he had to wet his lips
and get his breath in a moment of panic that he had forgotten what he
was to say; but the pause became a waiting silence.
Tehanu said, in a
voice hoarser than his, "Ask them."
"He said to
ask first: Who are those who go to the dry land? And as I took my
leave of him, he said, Ask my daughter also: Will a dragon cross the
wait of stones?'"
Tehanu nodded her
head in acknowledgment and stepped back a little more, as if to carry
her riddles away with her, away from them.
"The dry
land," the king said, "and the dragons…"
His alert gaze went
from face to face.
"Come,"
he said, "let's sit and talk."
"Perhaps we
could talk down in the gardens?" said the little grey-eyed
woman, Tenar. The king agreed at once. Alder heard Tenar say to him
as they went, "She finds it hard to be indoors all day. She
wants the sky."
Gardeners brought
chairs for them in the shade of a huge old willow beside one of the
pools. Tehanu went to stand by the pool, gazing down into the green
water where a few big silver carp swam lazily. Clearly she wanted to
think over her father's message, not to talk, though she could hear
what they said.
When the others
were all settled, the king had Alder tell his story yet again. Their
silence as they listened was compassionate, and he was able to speak
without constraint or hurry. When he was done, they remained silent a
while, and then the wizard Onyx asked him one question: "Did you
dream last night?"
Alder said he had
had no dream he could recall.
"I did,"
Onyx said. "I dreamed of the Summoner who was my teacher in the
School on Roke. They say of him that he died twice: because he came
back from that country across the wall."
"I dreamed of
the spirits that are not reborn," Tenar said, very low.
Prince Sege said,
"All night I thought I heard voices down in the city streets,
voices I knew from my childhood, calling as they used to do. But when
I listened, it was only watchmen or drunken sailors shouting."
"I never
dream," said Tosla.
"I didn't
dream of that country," the king said. "I remembered it.
And couldn't cease remembering it."
He looked at the
silent woman, Tehanu, but she only looked down into the pond and did
not speak.
No one else spoke;
and Alder could not stand it. "If I am a plague bringer, you
must send me away!" he said.
The wizard Onyx
spoke, not imperiously but with finality. "If Roke sent you to
Gont, and Gont sent you to Havnor, Havnor is where you should be."
"Many heads
make light thinking," said Tosla, sardonic.
Lebannen said,
"Let's put dreams aside for a while. Our guest needs to know
what we were concerned about before he came—why I begged Tenar
and Tehanu to come, earlier this summer, and summoned Tosla from his
voyaging to take counsel with us. Will you tell Alder of this matter,
Tosla?"
The dark-faced man
nodded. The ruby in his ear gleamed like a drop of blood.
"The matter is
dragons," he said. "In the West Reach for some years now
they've come to farms and villages on Ully and Usidero, flying low,
seizing the roofs of houses with their talons, shaking them,
terrifying the people. In the Toringates they've come twice now at
harvest time and set the fields burning with their breath, and burnt
haystacks and set the thatch of houses afire. They haven't struck at
people, but people have died in the fires. They haven't attacked the
houses of the lords of those islands, seeking after treasure, the way
they did in the Dark Years, but only the villages and the fields. The
same word came from a merchantman who'd been southwest as far as
Simly trading for grain: dragons had come and burnt the crop just as
they were harvesting.
"Then, last
winter in Semel, two dragons settled on the summit of the volcano,
Mount Andanden."
"Ah,"
said Onyx, and at the king's inquiring glance: "The wizard
Seppel of Paln tells me that mountain was a most sacred place to the
dragons, where they came to drink fire from the earth in ancient
days."
"Well, they're
back," said Tosla. "And they come down harrying the herds
and flocks that are the wealth of the people there, not hurting the
beasts but frightening them so they break loose and run wild. The
people say they're young dragons, black and thin, without much fire
yet.
"And in Paln,
there are dragons living now in the mountains of the north part of
the island, wild country without farms. Hunters used to go there to
hunt mountain sheep and catch falcons to tame, but they've been
driven out by the dragons, and no one goes near the mountains now.
Maybe your Pelnish wizard knows about them?"
Onyx nodded. "He
says flights of them have been seen above the mountains like the
flights of wild geese."
"Between Paln
and Semel, and the Island of Havnor, is only the width of the Pelnish
Sea," said Prince Sege.
Alder was thinking
that it was less than a hundred miles from Semel to his own island,
Taon.
"Tosla set out
to the Dragons' Run in his ship the Tern" the king said.
"But got
barely in sight of the easternmost of those isles before a swarm of
the beasts came at me," Tosla said, with a hard grin. "They
harried me as they do the cattle and sheep, swooping down to singe my
sails, till I ran back where I came from. But that's nothing new."
Onyx nodded again.
"Nobody but a dragonlord has ever sailed the Dragons' Run."
"I have,"
the king said, and suddenly smiled a broad, boyish smile. "But I
was with a dragonlord… Now that's a time I've been thinking
about. When I was in the West Reach with the Archmage, seeking Cob
the necromancer, we passed Jessage, which lies even farther out than
Simly, and we saw burned fields there. And in the Dragons' Run, we
saw that they fought and killed one another like animals gone rabid."
After a time Prince
Sege asked, "Could it be that some of those dragons did not
recover from their madness in that evil time?"
"It's been
fifteen years and more," Onyx said. "But dragons live very
long. Maybe time passes differently for them." Alder noticed
that as the wizard spoke he glanced at Tehanu, standing apart from
them by the pool.
"Yet only
within the last year or two have they attacked people," said the
prince.
"That they
have not," Tosla said. "If a dragon wanted to destroy the
people of a farm or village, who'd stop it? They've been after
people's livelihood. Harvests, hayricks, farms, cattle. They're
saying, Begone—get out of the West!"
"But why are
they saying it with fire, with havoc?" the wizard demanded.
"They can speak! They speak the Language of the Making. Morred
and Erreth-Akbe talked with dragons. Our Archmage talked with them."
"Those we saw
in the Dragons' Run," the king said, "had lost the power of
speech. The breach Cob had made in the world was drawing their power
from them, as it did from us.
Only the great
dragon Orm Embar came to us and spoke to the Archmage, telling him to
go to Selidor…" He paused, his eyes far away. "And
even from Orm Embar speech was taken, before he died." Again he
looked away from them, a strange light in his face. "It was for
us Orm Embar died. He opened the way for us into the dark land."
They were all
silent for a while. Tenar's quiet voice broke the silence. "Once
Sparrowhawk said to me—let me see if I can remember how he said
it: that the dragon and the dragon's speech are one thing, one being.
That a dragon does not learn the Old Speech, but is it."
"As a tern is
flight. As a fish is swimming," Onyx said slowly. "Yes."
Tehanu was
listening, standing motionless by the pool. They all looked at her
now. The look on her mother's face was eager, urgent. Tehanu turned
her head away.
"How do you
make a dragon talk to you?" the king said. He said it lightly,
as if it were a pleasantry, but it was followed by another silence.
"Well," he said, "that's something I hope we can
learn. Now, Master Onyx, while we're speaking of dragons, will you
tell us your story of the girl who came to the School on Roke, for
none but me has heard it yet."
"A girl in the
School!" said Tosla, with a scoffing grin. "Things have
changed on Roke!"
"Indeed they
have," the wizard said, with a long cool look at the sailor.
"This was some eight years ago. She came from Way, disguised as
a young man, wanting to study the art magic. Of course her poor
disguise didn't fool the Doorkeeper. Yet he let her in, and he took
her part. At that time, the School was headed by the Master
Summoner—the man," and he hesitated a moment, "the
man of whom I told you I dreamed last night."
"Tell us
something of that man, if you will, Master Onyx," the king said.
"That was Thorion, who returned from death?"
"Yes. When the
Archmage had been long gone and no word came, we feared he was dead.
So the Summoner used his arts to go see if indeed he had crossed the
wall. He stayed long there, so the masters feared for him too. But at
last he woke, and said that the Archmage was there among the dead,
and would not return himself but had bade Thorion return to govern
Roke. Yet before long the dragon bore the Archmage Sparrowhawk living
to us, with my lord Lebannen… Then when the Archmage had
departed again, the Summoner fell down and lay as if life had gone
out of him. The Master Herbal, with all his art, believed him dead.
Yet as we made ready to bury him, he moved, and spoke, saying he had
come back to life to do what must be done. So, since we were not able
to choose a new Archmage, Thorion the Summoner governed the School."
He paused. "When the girl came, though the Doorkeeper had
admitted her, Thorion would not have her within the walls. He would
have nothing to do with her. But the Master Patterner took her to the
Grove, and she lived there some while at the edge of the trees, and
walked with him among them. He and the Doorkeeper, and the Herbal,
and Kurremkarmerruk the Namer, believed that there was a reason she
had come to Roke, that she was a messenger or an agent of some great
event, even if she herself didn't know it; and so they protected her.
The other masters followed Thorion, who said she brought only
dissension and ruin and should be driven out. I was a student then.
It was a sore trouble to us to know that our masters, masterless,
were quarreling."
"And over a
girl," said Tosla.
Onyx's look at him
this time was extremely cold. "Quite," he said. After a
minute he took up his story. "To be brief, then, when Thorion
sent a group of us to compel her to leave the island, she challenged
him to meet her that evening on Roke Knoll. He came, and summoned her
by her name to obey him: 'Irian,' he called her. But she said, 'I am
not only Irian,' and speaking, she changed. She became—she took
the form of a dragon. She touched Thorion and his body fell to dust.
Then she climbed the hill, and watching her, we didn't know whether
we saw a woman that burned like a fire, or a winged beast. But at the
summit we saw her clearly, a dragon like a flame of red and gold. And
she lifted up her wings and flew into the west."
His voice had grown
soft and his face was full of the remembered awe. Nobody spoke.
The wizard cleared
his throat. "Before she went up the hill the Namer asked her,
'Who are you?' She said she did not know her other name. The
Patterner spoke to her, asking where she would go and whether she
would come back. She said she was going beyond the west, to learn her
name from her own people, but if he called her she would come."
In the silence, a
hoarse, weak voice, like metal brushing on metal, spoke. Alder did
not understand the words and yet they seemed familiar, as if he could
almost remember what they meant.
Tehanu had come
close to the wizard and was standing by him, bending to him, tense as
a drawn bow. It was she who had spoken.
Startled and taken
aback, the wizard stared up at her, got to his feet, backed off a
step, and then controlling himself said, "Yes, those were her
words: My people, beyond the west."
"Call her. Oh,
call her," Tehanu whispered, reaching out both her hands to him.
Again he drew back involuntarily.
Tenar stood up and
murmured to her daughter, "What is it, what is it, Tehanu?"
Tehanu stared round
at them all. Alder felt as if he were a wraith she saw through. "Call
her here," she said. She looked at the king. "Can you call
her?"
"I have no
such power. Perhaps the Patterner of Roke—perhaps you
yourself—"
Tehanu shook her
head violently. "No, no, no, no," she whispered. "I am
not like her. I have no wings."
Lebannen looked at
Tenar as if for guidance. Tenar looked miserably at her daughter.
Tehanu turned round
and faced the king. "I'm sorry," she said, stiffly, in her
weak, harsh voice. "I have to be alone, sir. I will think about
what my father said. I will try to answer what he asked. But I have
to be alone, please."
Lebannen bowed to
her and glanced at Tenar, who went at once to her daughter and put an
arm about her; and they went away on the sunny path by the pools and
fountains.
The four men sat
down again and said nothing for a few minutes.
Lebannen said, "You
were right, Onyx," and to the others, "Master Onyx told me
this tale of the woman-dragon Irian after I told him something about
Tehanu. How as a child Tehanu summoned the dragon Kalessin to Gont,
and spoke with the dragon in the Old Speech, and Kalessin called her
daughter."
"Sire, this is
very strange, this is a strange time, when a dragon is a woman, and
when an untaught girl speaks in the Language of the Making!"
Onyx was deeply and obviously shaken, frightened. Alder saw that, and
wondered why he himself felt no such fear. Probably, he thought,
because he did not know enough to be afraid, or what to be afraid of.
"But there are
old stories," Tosla said. "Haven't you heard them on Roke?
Maybe your walls keep them out. They're only tales simple people
tell. Songs, even. There's a sailors' song, 'The Lass of Belilo,'
that tells how a sailor left a pretty girl weeping in every port,
until one of the pretty girls flew after his boat on wings of brass
and snatched him out of it and ate him."
Onyx looked at
Tosla with disgust. But Lebannen smiled and said, "The Woman of
Kemay… The Archmage's old master, Aihal, called Ogion, told
Tenar about her. She was an old village woman, and lived as such. She
invited Ogion into her cottage and served him fish soup. But she said
mankind and dragonkind had once been one. She herself was a dragon as
well as a woman. And being a mage, Ogion saw her as a dragon."
"As you saw
Irian, Onyx," said Lebannen.
Speaking stiffly
and addressing himself to the king only, Onyx said, "After Irian
left Roke, the Master Namer showed us passages in the most ancient
lore-books which had always been obscure, but which could be
understood to speak of beings both human and dragon. And of a quarrel
or great division among them. But none of this is clear to our
understanding."
"I hoped that
Tehanu might make it clear," Lebannen said. His voice was even,
so that Alder did not know whether he had given up or still held that
hope.
A man was hurrying
down the path to them, a greyheaded soldier of the king's guards.
Lebannen looked round, stood up, went to him. They conferred for a
minute, low-voiced. The soldier strode off again; the king turned
back to his companions. "Here is news," he said, the ring
of challenge in his voice again. "Over the west of Havnor there
have been great flights of dragons. They have set forests afire, and
a coaster's crew say people fleeing down to South Port told them the
town of Resbel is burning."
That night the
king's swiftest ship carried him and his party across the Bay of
Havnor, running fast before the magewind Onyx raised. They came into
the mouth of the Onneva River, under the shoulder of Mount Onn, at
daybreak. With them eleven horses were disembarked, fine, strong,
slender-legged creatures from the royal stables. Horses were rare on
all the islands but Havnor and Semel. Tehanu knew donkeys well enough
but had never seen a horse before. She had spent much of the night
with them and their handlers, helping control and calm them. They
were well-bred, mannerly horses but not used to sea voyages. When it
came time to mount them, there on the sands of the Onneva, Onyx was
fairly daunted, and had to be coached and encouraged by the handlers,
but Tehanu was up in the saddle as soon as the king. She put the
reins in her crippled hand and did not use them, seeming to
communicate with her mare by other means.
So the little
caravan set off due west into the foothills of tie Falierns, keeping
up a good pace. It was the swiftest way travel that Lebannen had at
his disposal; to coast clear around South Havnor would take too long.
They had the wizard Onyx with them to keep the weather favorable,
clear the path of any obstacles, and defend them from any harm short
dragon fire. Against the dragons, if they encountered them, they had
no defense at all, except perhaps Tehanu.
Taking counsel the
evening before with his advisors and the officers of his guard,
Lebannen had quickly concluded lat there was no way to fight the
dragons or protect the owns and fields from them: arrows were
useless, shields were useless. Only the greatest mages had ever been
able to defeat a dragon. He had no such mage in his service and new
of none now living, but he must defend his people as 3est he could,
and he knew no way to do it but to try to parley with the dragons.
His maiordomo had
been shocked when he set off for the apartment where Tenar and Tehanu
were: the king should send for those he wished to see, command them
to come to him. "Not if he's going to beg from them,"
Lebannen said.
He told the
startled maid who answered their door to ask if he might speak with
the White Lady and the Woman of Gont. So they were known to the
people of the palace and the city. That each bore her true name
openly, as the king did, was so rare a matter, so defiant of rule and
custom, of safety and propriety, that though people might know the
name they were reluctant to say it and preferred to speak around it.
He was admitted,
and having told them briefly the news he had received, said, "Tehanu,
it may be that you alone in my kingdom can help me. If you can call
to these dragons as you called to Kalessin, if you have any power
over them, if you can speak to them and ask why they war on my
people, will you do so?"
The young woman
shrank from his words, turning towards her mother.
But Tenar did not
offer her any shelter. She stood unmoving. After a while she said,
"Tehanu, long ago I told you: when a king speaks to you, you
answer. You were a child then, and didn't answer. You're not a child
now."
Tehanu took a step
back from them both. Like a child, she hung her head. "I can't
call to them," she said in her faint, harsh voice. "I don't
know them."
"Can you call
Kalessin?" Lebannen asked.
She shook her head.
"Too far away," she whispered. "I don't know where."
"But you are
Kalessin's daughter," Tenar said. "Can you not speak to
these dragons?"
She said
wretchedly, "I don't know."
Lebannen said, "If
there is any chance, Tehanu, that they'll talk to you, that you can
talk to them, I beg you to take that chance. For I can't fight them,
and don't know their language, and how can I find what they want of
us from creatures who can destroy me with a breath, with a look? Will
you speak for me, for us?"
She was silent.
Then, so faintly he could barely hear it, she said, "Yes."
"Then make
ready to travel with me. We leave by the fourth hour of the evening.
My people will bring you to the ship. I thank you. And I thank you,
Tenar!" he said, taking her hand a moment, but no longer, for he
had much to see to before he went.
When he came down
to the wharf, late and hurrying, there was the slender hooded figure.
The last horse to be led onboard was snorting and bracing its feet,
refusing to go up the gangplank. Tehanu seemed to be conferring with
the idler. Presently she took the horse's bridle and talked to it
little, and they went up the gangplank quietly together.
Ships are small,
crowded houses; Lebannen heard two of the hostlers talking softly on
the afterdeck towards mid-light. "She has the true hand,"
one said, and the other, a younger voice, "Aye, she does, but
she's horrible to look at, ain't she?" The first one said, "If
a horse don't mind it, why should you?" and the other, "I
don't know, but I do."
Now, as they rode
from the Onneva sands into the foothills, where the way widened,
Tosla brought his horse up beside Lebannen's. "She's to be our
interpreter, is she?" he said.
"If she can."
"Well, she's
braver than I'd have thought. If that happened to her the first time
she talked with a dragon, its likely to happen again."
"What do you
mean?"
"She was half
burnt to death."
"Not by a
dragon."
"Who then?"
"The people
she was born to."
"How was
that?" Tosla asked with a grimace.
"Tramps,
thieves. She was five or six years old. Whatever she did or they did,
it ended in her being beaten unconscious and shoved into their
campfire. Thinking, I suppose, she was dead or would die and it would
be taken for an accident. They made off. Villagers found her, and
Tenar took her in."
Tosla scratched his
ear. "There's a pretty tale of human kindness. So she's no
daughter of the old Archmage either? But then what do they mean
saying she's a dragons get?"
Lebannen had sailed
with Tosla, had fought beside him years ago in the siege of Sorra,
and knew him a brave, keen, coolheaded man. When Tosla's coarseness
chafed him he blamed his own thin skin. "I don't know what they
mean," he answered mildly. "All I know is, the dragon
called her daughter."
"That Roke
wizard of yours, that Onyx, is quick to say he's no use in this
matter. But he can speak the Old Tongue, can't he?"
"Yes. He could
wither you into ash with a few words of it. If he hasn't it's out of
respect for me, not you, I think."
Tosla nodded. "I
know that," he said. They rode all that day at as quick a pace
as the horses could keep, coming at nightfall to a little hill town
where the horses could be fed and rested and the riders could sleep
in variously uncomfortable beds. Those of them unused to riding now
discovered they could barely walk. The people there had heard nothing
about dragons, and were overwhelmed only by the terror and glory of a
whole party of rich strangers riding in and wanting oats and beds and
paying for them with silver and gold.
The riders set off
again long before dawn. It was nearly a hundred miles from the sands
of Onneva to Resbel. This second day would take them over the low
pass of the Faliern Mountains and down the western side. Yenay, one
of Lebannen's most trusted officers, rode well ahead of the others;
Tosla was rear guard; Lebannen led the main group. He was jogging
along half asleep in the dull quiet before dawn when hoofbeats coming
towards him woke him. Yenay had come riding back. Lebannen looked up
where the man was pointing.
They had just
emerged from woods on the crest of an open hillside and could see
through the clear half light all the way to the pass. The mountains
to either side of it massed black against the dull reddish glow of a
cloudy dawn.
But they were
looking west.
"That's nearer
than Resbel," Yenay said. "Fifteen miles, maybe."
Tehanus mare,
though small, was the finest of the lot, and had a strong conviction
that she should lead the others. If Tehanu didn't hold her back she
would keep sidling and overtaking till she was ahead of the line. The
mare came up at once when Lebannen reined in his big horse, and so
Tehanu was beside him now, looking where he looked.
"The forest is
burning," he said to her.
He could see only
the scarred side of her face, so she seemed to gaze blindly; but she
saw, and her claw hand that held the reins was trembling. The burned
child fears the fire, he thought.
What cruel,
cowardly folly had possessed him to tell this girl, "Come talk
to the dragons, save my skin!" and bring her straight into the
fire?
"We will turn
back," he said.
Tehanu raised her
good hand, pointing. "Look," she said. "Look!"
A spark from a
bonfire, a burning cinder rising over the black line of the pass, an
eagle of flame soaring, a dragon flying straight at them.
Tehanu stood up in
her stirrups and let out a piercing, scraping cry, like a sea bird's
or a hawk's scream, but it was a word, one word: "Medeu!"
The great creature
drew nearer with terrible speed, its long, thin wings beating almost
lazily; it had lost the reflection of fire and looked black or
bronze-colored in the growing light.
"Mind your
horses," Tehanu said in her cracked voice, and just then
Lebannen's grey gelding saw the dragon and started violently, tossing
its head and backing. He could control it, but behind him one of the
other horses let out a neigh of terror, and he heard them trampling
and the handlers' voices. The wizard Onyx came running up and stood
beside Lebannen's horse. Mounted or afoot, they stood and watched the
dragon come.
Again Tehanu cried
out that word. The dragon veered in its flight, slowed, came on,
stopped and hovered in the air about fifty feet from them.
"Medeu!"
Tehanu called, and the answer came like an echo prolonged:
"Me-de-uuu!"
"What does it
mean?" Lebannen asked, bending to Onyx.
"Sister,
brother," the wizard whispered.
Tehanu was off her
horse, had tossed the reins to Yenay, was walking forward down the
slight slope to where the dragon hovered, its long wings beating
quick and short like a hovering hawk's. But these wings were fifty
feet from tip to tip, and as they beat they made a sound like
kettledrums or rattles of brass. As she came closer to it, a little
curl of fire escaped from the dragon's long, long-toothed, open
mouth.
She held up her
hand. Not the slender brown hand but the burned one, the claw. The
scarring of her arm and shoulder kept her from raising it fully. She
could reach barely as high as her head.
The dragon sank a
little in the air, lowered its head, and touched her hand with its
lean, flared, scaled snout. Like a dog, an animal greeting and
sniffing, Lebannen thought; like a falcon stooping to the wrist; like
a king bowing to a queen.
Tehanu spoke, the
dragon spoke, both briefly, in their cymbal-shiver voices. Another
exchange, a pause; the dragon spoke at length. Onyx listened
intently. One more exchange of words. A wisp of smoke from the
dragon's nostrils; a stiff, imperious gesture of the woman's
crippled, withered hand. She spoke clearly two words.
"Bring her,"
the wizard translated in a whisper.
The dragon beat its
wings hard, lowered its long head, and hissed, spoke again, then
sprang up into the air, high over Tehanu, turned, wheeled once, and
set off like an arrow to the west.
"It called her
Daughter of the Eldest," the wizard whispered, as Tehanu stood
motionless, watching the dragon go.
She turned around,
looking small and fragile in that great sweep of hill and forest in
the grey dawn light. Leban-nen swung off his horse and hurried
forward to her. He thought to find her drained and terrified, he put
out his hand to help her walk, but she smiled at him. Her face, half
terrible half beautiful, shone with the red light of the unrisen sun.
"They won't
strike again. They will wait in the mountains," she said.
Then indeed she
looked around as if she did not know where she was, and when Lebannen
took her arm she let him do so; but the fire and the smile lingered
in her face, and she walked lightly.
While the hostlers
held the horses, already grazing on the dew-wet grass, Onyx, Tosla,
and Yenay came round her, though they kept a respectful distance.
Onyx said, "My Lady Tehanu, I have never seen so brave an act."
"Nor I,"
Tosla said.
"I was
afraid," Tehanu said, in her voice that carried no emotion. "But
I called him brother, and he called me sister."
"I could not
understand all you said," the wizard said. "I have no such
knowledge of the Old Speech as you. Will you tell us what passed
between you?"
She spoke slowly,
her eyes on the west where the dragon had flown. The dull red of the
distant fire was paling as the east grew bright. "I said, 'Why
are you burning the king's island?' And he said, 'It is time we have
our own lands again.' And I said, 'Did the Eldest bid you take them
with fire?'
Then he said that
the Eldest, Kalessin, had gone with Orm Irian beyond the west to fly
on the other wind. And he said the young dragons who remained here on
the winds of the world say men are oath breakers who stole the
dragons' lands. They tell one another that Kalessin will never
return, and they will wait no longer, but will drive men out of all
the western lands. But lately Orm Irian has returned, and is on Paln,
he said. And I told him to ask her to come. And he said she would
come to Kalessin's daughter."
From the window of
her room in the palace Tenar had watched the ship sail, carrying
Lebannen and her daughter away into the night. She had not gone down
to the wharf with Tehanu. It had been hard, very hard to refuse to
come with her on this journey. Tehanu had begged, she who never asked
for anything. She never cried, could not cry, but her breath had
caught sobbing: "But I can't go, I can't go alone! Come with me,
mother!"
"My love, my
heart, if I could spare you this fear I would, don't you see I can't?
I've done what I could do for you, my flame of fire, my star. The
king is right—only you, you alone, can do this."
"But if you
were just there, so I knew you were there—"
"I'm here, I'm
always here. What could I do there but be a burden? You must travel
fast, it will be a hard journey. I'd hold you back. And you might
fear for me. You don't need me. I'm no use to you. You must learn
that. You must go, Tehanu."
And she had turned
away from her child and begun sorting out the clothing Tehanu should
take, home clothes, not the fancy things they wore here in the
palace: her stout shoes, her good cloak If she wept while she did it,
she did not let her daughter see it.
Tehanu stood as if
bewildered, paralysed with fear. When Tenar gave her clothes to
change into, she obeyed. When the king's lieutenant, Yenay, knocked
and asked if he might conduct Mistress Tehanu down to the wharf, she
stared at him like a dumb animal.
"Go now,"
Tenar said. She embraced her and laid her hand on the great scar that
was half her face. "You are Kalessin's daughter as well as
mine."
The girl held her
very tightly for a long moment, let go, turned away without a word,
and followed Yenay out the door.
Tenar stood feeling
the chill of the night air where the heat of Tehanu's body and arms
had been.
She went over to
the window. Lights down on the dock, the coming and going of men, the
hoof clatter of horses being led down the steep streets above the
water. A tall ship was at the pier, a ship she knew, the Dolphin. She
watched from the window and saw Tehanu on the dock. She saw her go
aboard at last, leading a horse that had been balking, and saw
Lebannen follow her. She saw the mooring lines cast off, the docile
movement of the ship following the oared tug that towed her clear,
the sudden fall and flowering of the white sails in the darkness. The
light of the stern lantern trembled on the dark water, shrank slowly
to a tiny drop of brightness, and was gone.
Tenar went about
the room folding up the clothes Tehanu had worn, the silken shift and
overskirt; she picked up the light sandals and held them to her cheek
a while before she put them away.
She lay awake in
the wide bed and saw before her mind's eye over and over again the
same scene: a road, and Tehanu walking on it alone. And a knot, a
net, a black writhing coiling mass descending from the sky, dragons
swarming, fire licking and streaming from them at her, her hair
burning, her clothes burning—No, Tenar said, no! it will not
happen! She would force her mind away from that scene, until she saw
it again, the road, and Tehanu walking on it alone, and the black,
burning knot in the sky, coming closer.
When the first
light began to turn the room grey she slept at last, exhausted. She
dreamed that she was in the Old Mage's house on the Overfell, her
house, and she was glad beyond all words to be there. She took the
broom from behind the door to sweep the shining oaken floor, for Ged
had let it get dusty. But there was a door at the back of the house
that had not been there before. When she opened it she found a small,
low room with stone walls painted white. Ged was crouching in the
room, squatting with his arms on his knees and his hands hanging
limp. His head was not a man's head but small, black, and beaked, a
vulture's head. He said in a faint, hoarse voice, "Tenar, I have
no wings." And when he said that, such anger and terror rose up
in her that she woke, gasping, to see sunlight on the high wall of
her palace room and hear the sweet clear trumpets telling the fourth
hour of morning.
Breakfast was
brought. She ate a little and talked with Berry, the elderly servant
whom she had chosen from all the retinue of maids and ladies of honor
Lebannen had offered her. Berry was an intelligent, competent woman,
born in a village in inland Havnor, with whom Tenar got on better
than with most of the ladies of the court. They were civil and
respectful, but they didn't know what to do with her, how to talk to
a woman who was half Kargish priestess, half farmwife from Gont. She
saw that it was easier for them to be kind to Tehanu in her fierce
timidity. They could be sorry for her. They could not be sorry for
Tenar.
Berry, however,
could be and was, and she gave Tenar considerable comfort that
morning. "The king will bring her back safe and sound," she
said. "Why, do you think he'd take the girl into a danger he
couldn't get her out of? Never! Not him!" It was false comfort,
but Berry so passionately believed it to be true that Tenar had to
agree with her, which was a little solace in itself.
She needed
something to do, for Tehanu's absence was everywhere. She resolved to
go talk to the Kargish princess, to see if the girl was willing to
learn a word of Hardic, or at least to tell Tenar her name.
In the Kargad Lands
people did not have a true name that they kept secret, as the
speakers of Hardic did. Like use-names here, Kargish names often had
some meaning—Rose, Alder, Honor, Hope; or they were
traditional, often the name of an ancestor. People spoke them openly
and were proud of the antiquity of a name passed down from generation
to generation. She had been taken too young from her parents to know
why they had called her Tenar, but thought it might be for a
grandmother or great-grandmother. That name had been taken from her
when she was recognised as Arha, the Nameless One reborn, and she had
forgotten it till Ged gave it back to her. To her, as to him, it was
her true name; but it was not a word of the Old Speech; it gave no
one any power over her, and she had never concealed it.
She was puzzled now
why the princess did so. Her bondwomen called her only Princess, or
Lady, or Mistress; the ambassadors had talked about her as the High
Princess, Daughter of Thol, Lady of Hur-at-Hur, and so on. If all the
poor girl had was titles, it was time she had a name.
Tenar knew it was
not fitting for a guest of the king to go alone through the streets
of Havnor, and she knew Berry had duties in the palace, so she asked
for a servant to accompany her. She was provided with a charming
footman, or footboy, for he was only about fifteen, who looked after
her at the street crossings as if she were a doddering crone. She
liked walking in the city. She had already found and admitted to
herself, going to the River House, that it was easier without Tehanu
beside her. People would look at Tehanu and look away, and Tehanu
walked in stiff, suffering pride, hating their looks and their
looking away, and Tenar suffered with her, maybe more than she
herself did.
Now she was able to
loiter and watch the street shows, the market booths, the various
faces and clothing from all over the Archipelago, to go out of the
direct way to let her footboy show her a street where the painted
bridges from rooftop to rooftop made a kind of airy vaulted ceiling
high above them, from which red-flowering vines looped down in
festoons, and people put birdcages out the windows on gilt poles
among the flowers, so that it all seemed a garden in the middle of
the air. "Oh, I wish Tehanu could see this," she thought.
But she could not think of Tehanu, of where she might be.
The River House,
like the New Palace, dated from the reign of Queen Heru, five
centuries ago. It had been in ruins when Lebannen came to the throne;
he had rebuilt it with much care, and it was a lovely, peaceful
place, sparsely furnished, with dark, polished, uncarpeted floors.
Ranks of narrow door-windows slid aside to open up the whole side of
a room to a view of the willows and the river, and one could walk out
onto deep wooden balconies built over the water. Court ladies had
told Tenar that it had been the place the king liked best to slip
away to for a night of solitude or a night with a lover, which lent
even more significance, they hinted, to his housing the princess
there. Her own suspicion was that he had not wanted the princess
under the same roof with him and had simply named the only other
possible place for her, but maybe the court ladies were right.
Guards in their
fine harness recognised and let her pass, footmen announced her and
went off with her footboy to crack nuts and gossip, which seemed to
be the principal occupation of footmen, and ladies-in-waiting came to
greet her, grateful for any new face and gasping for more news of the
king's expedition against the dragons. Having run the whole gamut she
was admitted at last to the apartments of the princess.
On her two previous
visits she had been kept waiting some while in an anteroom, and then
the veiled bondwomen had brought her into an inner room, the only dim
room in the whole airy house, where the princess had stood in her
round-brimmed hat with the red veil hanging down all round it to the
floor, looking permanently fixed there, built in, exactly as if she
were a brick chimney, as Lady lyesa had said.
This time it was
different. As soon as she came into the anteroom there was shrieking
within and the sound of people running in various directions. The
princess burst through the door and with a wild cry flung her arms
around Tenar. Tenar was small, and the princess, a tall, vigorous
young woman full of emotion, knocked her right off her feet, but held
her up in strong arms. "Oh Lady Arha, Lady Arha, save me, save
me!" she was crying.
"Princess!
What's wrong?"
The princess was in
tears of terror or relief or both at once, and all Tenar could
understand of her laments and pleas was a babble of dragons and
sacrifice.
"There are no
dragons near Havnor," she said sternly, disengaging herself from
the girl, "and nobody is being sacrificed. What is all this
about? What have you been told?"
"The women
said the dragons were coming and they'd sacrifice a king's daughter
and not a goat because they're sorcerers and I was afraid." The
princess wiped her face, clenched her hands, and began trying to
master the panic she had been in. It had been real, ungovernable
terror, and Tenar was sorry for her. She did not let her pity show.
The girl needed to learn to hold on to her dignity.
"Your women
are ignorant and don't know enough Hardic to understand what people
tell them. And you don't know any Hardic at all. If you did you'd
know there's nothing to be afraid of. Do you see the people of the
house here rushing about weeping and screaming?"
The princess stared
at her. She wore no hat, no veils, and only a light shift-dress, for
it was a hot day. It was the first time Tenar had seen her except as
a dim form through the red veiling. Though the princess's eyes were
swollen with tears and her face blotched, she was magnificent:
tawny-haired, tawny-eyed, with round arms and full breasts and
slender waist, a woman in her first full beauty and strength.
"But none of
those people is going to be sacrificed," she said finally.
"Nobody is
going to be sacrificed."
"Then why are
the dragons coming?"
Tenar drew a deep
breath. "Princess," she said, "there are a great many
things we need to talk about. If you'll look at me as your friend—"
"I do,"
the princess said. She stepped forward and took Tenar's right arm in
a very strong grasp. "You are my friend, I have no other friend,
I will shed my blood for you."
Ridiculous as it
was, Tenar knew it was true.
She returned the
girl's grip as well as she could and said, "You are my friend.
Tell me your name."
The princess's eyes
got big. There was a little snot and blubber still on her upper lip.
Her lower lip trembled. She said, with a deep breath, "Seserakh."
"Seserakh: my
name is not Arha, but Tenar."
"Tenar,"
the girl said, and grasped her arm tighter.
"Now,"
Tenar said, trying to regain control of the situation, "I have
walked a long way and I'm thirsty. Please let's sit down, and may I
have some water to drink? And then we can talk."
"Yes,"
said the princess, and leapt out of the room like a hunting lioness.
There were shouts and cries from the inner rooms, and more sounds of
running. A bondwoman appeared, adjusting her veil shakily and
gibbering something in such thick dialect Tenar could not understand
her. "Speak in the accursed tongue!" shouted the princess
from within, and the woman pitifully squeaked out in Hardic, "To
sit? to drink? lady?"
Two chairs had been
set in the middle of the dark, stuffy room, facing each other.
Seserakh stood beside one of them.
"I should like
to sit outside, in the shade, over the water," Tenar said. "If
it please you, princess."
The princess
shouted, the women scuttled, the chairs were carried out onto the
deep balcony. They sat down side by side.
"That's
better," Tenar said. It was still strange to her to be speaking
Kargish. She had no difficulty with it at all, but she felt as if she
were not herself, were somebody else speaking, an actor enjoying her
role.
"You like the
water?" the princess asked. Her face had returned to its normal
color, that of heavy cream, and her eyes, no longer swollen, were
bluish gold, or blue with gold flecks.
"Yes. You
don't?"
"I hate it.
There was no water where I lived."
"A desert? I
lived in a desert too. Until I was sixteen. Then I crossed the sea
and came west. I love the water, the sea, the rivers."
"Oh, the sea,"
Seserakh said, shrinking and putting her head in her hands. "Oh
I hate it, I hate it. I vomited my soul out. Over and over and over.
Days and days and days. I never want to see the sea again." She
shot a quick glance through the willow boughs at the quiet, shallow
stream below them. "This river is all right," she said
distrustfully.
A woman brought a
tray with a pitcher and cups, and Tenar had a long drink of cool
water.
"Princess,"
she said, "we have a great deal to talk about. First: the
dragons are still a long way away, in the west. The king and my
daughter have gone to talk with them."
"To talk with
them?"
"Yes."
She had been going to say more, but she said, "Now please tell
me about the dragons in Hur-at-Hur."
Tenar had been told
as a child in Atuan that there were dragons in Hur-at-Hur. Dragons in
the mountains, brigands in the deserts. Hur-at-Hur was poor and far
away and nothing good came from it but opals and turquoises and cedar
logs.
Seserakh heaved a
deep sigh. Tears came into her eyes. "It makes me cry to think
about home," she said, with such pure simplicity of feeling that
tears came into Tenar's eyes too. "Well, the dragons live up in
the mountains. Two days, three days journey from Mesreth. It's all
rocks up there and nobody bothers the dragons and they don't bother
anybody. But once a year they come down, crawling down a certain way.
It's a path, all smooth dust, made by their bellies crawling along it
every year since time began. It's called the Dragons' Way." She
saw that Tenar was listening with deep attention, and went on. "It's
taboo to cross the Dragons' Way. You mustn't set foot on it at all.
You have to go clear round it, south of the Place of the Sacrifice.
They start crawling down it late in spring. On the fourth day of the
fifth month they've all arrived at the Place of the Sacrifice. None
of them is ever late. And everybody from Mesreth and the villages is
there waiting for them. And then, when they've all come down the
Dragons' Way, the priests begin the sacrifice. And that's…
Don't you have the spring sacrifice, in Atuan?"
Tenar shook her
head.
"Well, that's
why I got scared, you see, because it can be a human sacrifice. If
things weren't going well, they'd sacrifice a king's daughter.
Otherwise it would just be some ordinary girl. But they haven't done
even that for a long time. Not since I was little. Since my father
defeated all the other kings. Since then, they've only sacrificed a
she-goat and a ewe. And they catch the blood in bowls, and throw the
fat into the sacred fire, and call to the dragons. And the dragons
all come crawling up. They drink the blood and eat the fire."
She shut her eyes for a moment; so did Tenar. "Then they go back
up into the mountains, and we go back to Mesreth."
"How big are
the dragons?"
Seserakh put her
hands about a yard apart. "Sometimes bigger," she said.
"And they
can't fly? Or speak?"
"Oh, no. Their
wings are just little stubs. They make a kind of hissing. Animals
can't talk. But they're sacred animals. They're the sign of life,
because fire is life, and they eat fire and spit out fire. And
they're sacred because they come to the spring sacrifice. Even if no
people came, the dragons would come and gather at that place. We come
there because the dragons do. The priests always tell all about that
before the sacrifice."
Tenar absorbed this
for a while. "The dragons here in the west," she said, "are
large. Huge. And they can fly. They're animals, but they can speak.
And they are sacred. And dangerous."
"Well,"
the princess said, "dragons may be animals, but they're more
like us than the accursed-sorcerers are."
She said
"accursed-sorcerers" all as one word and without any
particular emphasis. Tenar remembered that phrase from her childhood.
It meant the Dark Folk, the Hardic people of the Archipelago.
"Why is that?"
"Because the
dragons are reborn! Like all the animals. Like us." Seserakh
looked at Tenar with frank curiosity. "I thought since you were
a priestess at the Most Sacred Place of the Tombs you'd know a lot
more about all that than I do."
"But we had no
dragons there," Tenar said. "I didn't learn anything about
them at all. Please, my friend, tell me."
"Well, let me
see if I can tell the story about it. It's a winter story. I guess
it's all right to tell it in summer here. Everything here is all
wrong anyway." She sighed. "Well, in the beginning, you
know, in the first time, we were all the same, all the people and the
animals, we did the same things. And then we learned how to die. And
so we learned how to be reborn. Maybe as one kind of being, maybe
another. But it doesn't matter so much because anyhow you'll die
again and get reborn again and get to be everything sooner or later."
Tenar nodded. So
far, the story was familiar to her.
"But the best
things to get reborn as are people and dragons, because those are the
sacred beings. So you try not to break the taboos, and you try to
observe the Precepts, so you have a better chance to be a person
again, or anyhow a dragon… If dragons here can talk and are so
big, I can see why that would be a reward. Being one of ours never
seemed like much to look forward to.
"But the story
is about the accursed-sorcerers discovering the Vedurnan. That was a
thing, I don't know what it was, that told some people that if they'd
agree never to die and never be reborn, they could learn how to do
sorcery. So they chose that, they chose the Vedurnan. And they went
off into the west with it. And it turned them dark. And they live
here. All these people here—they're the ones who chose the
Vedurnan. They live, and they can do their accursed sorceries, but
they can't die. Only their bodies die. The rest of them stays in a
dark place and never gets reborn. And they look like birds. But they
can't fly."
"Yes,"
Tenar whispered.
"You didn't
learn about that on Aruan?"
"No,"
Tenar said.
Her mind was
recalling the story the Woman of Kemay told Ogion: in the beginning
of time, mankind and the dragons had been one, but the dragons chose
wildness and freedom, and mankind chose wealth and power. A choice, a
separation. Was it the same story?
But the image in
Tenar's heart was of Ged squatting in a stone room, his head small,
black, beaked…
"The Vedurnan
isn't that ring, is it, that they kept talking about, that I'm going
to have to wear?"
Tenar tried to
force her mind away from the Painted Room and from last night's dream
to Seserakh's question.
"Ring?"
"Urthakby's
ring."
"Erreth-Akbe.
No. That ring is the Ring of Peace. And you'll wear it only if and
when you're King Lebannen's queen. And you'll be a lucky woman to be
that."
Seserakh's
expression was curious. It was not sullen or cynical. It was
hopeless, half humorous, patient, the expression of a woman decades
older. "There is no luck about it, dear friend Tenar," she
said. "I have to marry him. And so I will be lost."
"Why are you
lost if you marry him?"
"If I marry
him I have to give him my name. If he speaks my name, he steals my
soul. That's what the accursed-sorcerers do. So they always hide
their names. But if he steals my soul, I won't be able to die. I'll
have to live forever without my body, a bird that can't fly, and
never be reborn."
"That's why
you hid your name?"
"I gave it to
you, my friend."
"I honor the
gift, my friend," Tenar said energetically. "But you can
say your name to anybody you want, here. They can't steal your soul
with it. Believe me, Seserakh. And you can trust him. He doesn't—he
won't do you any harm."
The girl had caught
her hesitation. "But he wishes he could," she said. "Tenar
my friend, I know what I am, here.
In that big city
Awabath where my father is, I was a stupid ignorant desert woman.
Afeyagat. The city women sniggered and poked each other whenever they
saw me, the barefaced whores. And here it's worse. I can't understand
anybody and they can't understand me, and everything, everything is
different! I don't even know what the food is, it's sorcerer food, it
makes me dizzy. I don't know what the taboos are, there aren't any
priests to ask, only sorcerer women, all black and barefaced. And I
saw the way he looked at me. You can see out of the feyag, you know!
I saw his face. He's very handsome, he looks like a warrior, but he's
a black sorcerer and he hates me. Don't say he doesn't, because I
know he does. And I think when he learns my name he'll send my soul
to that place forever."
After a while,
gazing into the moving branches of the willows over the softly moving
water, feeling sad and weary, Tenar said, "What you need to do,
then, princess, is learn how to make him like you. What else can you
do?" Seserakh shrugged mournfully. "It would help if you
understood what he said."
"Bagabba-bagabba.
They all sound like that."
"And we sound
like that to them. Come on, princess, how can he like you if all you
can say to him is bagabba-bagabba? Look," and she held up her
hand, pointed to it with the other, and said the word first in
Kargish, then in Hardic.
Seserakh repeated
both words in a dutiful tone. After a few more body parts she
suddenly grasped the potentialities of translation. She sat up
straighter. "How do sorcerers say 'king'?"
“Agni. It's a
word of the Old Speech. My husband told me that."
She realised as she
spoke that it was foolish to bring up the existence of yet a third
language at this point; but that was not what caught the princess's
attention.
"You have a
husband?" Seserakh stared at her with luminous, leonine eyes,
and laughed aloud. "Oh, how wonderful! I thought you were a
priestess! Oh please, my friend, tell me about him! Is he a warrior?
Is he handsome? Do you love him?"
After the king went
dragon hunting, Alder had no idea what to do; he felt utterly
useless, unjustified in staying in the palace eating the king's food,
guilty for the trouble he had brought with him. He could not sit all
day in his room, so he went out into the streets, but the splendor
and activity of the city were daunting to him, and having no money or
purpose all he could do was walk till he was tired. He would come
back to the Palace of Maharion wondering if the stern-faced guards
would readmit him. The nearest he came to peace was in the palace
gardens. He hoped to meet Rody there again, but the child did not
appear, and perhaps that was as well. Alder thought that he should
not talk with people. The hands that reached to him from death would
reach out to them.
On the third day
after the king's departure he went down to walk among the garden
pools. The day had been very hot; the evening was still and sultry.
He brought Tug with him and let the little cat loose to stalk insects
under the bushes, while he sat on a bench near the big willow and
watched the silver-green glimmer of fat carp in the water. He felt
lonely and discouraged; he felt his defense against the voices and
the reaching hands was breaking down. What was the good of being
here, after all? Why not go into the dream once and for all, go down
that hill, be done with it? Nobody in the world would grieve for him,
and his death would spare them this sickness he had brought with him.
Surely they had enough to do fighting dragons. Maybe if he went there
he would see Lily.
If he was dead they
could not touch each other. The wizards said they would not even want
to. They said the dead forgot what it was to be alive. But Lily had
reached to him. At first, for a little while, maybe they would
remember life long enough to look at each other, to see each other,
even if they did not touch.
"Alder."
He looked up slowly
at the woman who stood near him. The small grey woman, Tenar. He saw
the concern in her face, but did not know why she was troubled. Then
he remembered that her daughter, the burned girl, had gone with the
king. Maybe there had been bad news. Maybe they were all dead.
"Are you ill,
Alder?" she asked.
He shook his head.
It was hard to talk. He understood now how easy it would be, in that
other land, not to speak. Not to meet people's eyes. Not to be
troubled.
She sat down on the
bench beside him. "You look troubled," she said.
He made a vague
gesture—it's all right, it's no matter.
"You were on
Gont. With my husband Sparrowhawk. How was he? Was he looking after
himself?"
"Yes,"
Alder said. He tried to answer more adequately. "He was the
kindest of hosts."
"I'm glad to
hear that," she said. "I worry about him. He keeps house as
well as I do, but still, I didn't like leaving him alone…
Please, would you tell me what he was doing while you were there?"
He told her that
Sparrowhawk had picked the plums and taken them to sell, that the two
of them had mended the fence, that Sparrowhawk had helped him sleep.
She listened
intently, seriously, as if these small matters were as weighty as the
strange events they had talked about here three days ago—the
dead calling to a living man, a girl becoming a dragon, dragons
setting fire to the islands of the west.
Indeed he did not
know what weighed more heavily after all, the great strange things or
the small common ones.
"I wish I
could go home," the woman said.
"I could wish
the same thing, but it would be in vain. I think I'll never go home
again." He did not know why he said it, but heard himself say it
and thought it was true.
She looked at him a
minute with her quiet grey eyes and asked no question.
"I could wish
my daughter would go home with me," she said, "but it would
be in vain, too. I know she must go on. I don't know where."
"Will you tell
me what gift it is that she has, what woman she is, that the king
sent for her, and took her with him to meet the dragons?"
"Oh, if I knew
what she is, I'd tell you," Tenar said, her voice full of grief
and love and bitterness. "She's not my daughter born, as you may
have guessed or known. She came to me a little child, saved from the
fire, but only barely and not wholly saved… When Sparrowhawk
came back to me she became his daughter too. And she kept both him
and me from a cruel death, by summoning a dragon, Kalessin, called
Eldest. And that dragon called her daughter. So she's the child of
many and none, spared no pain yet spared from the fire. Who she is in
truth I may never know. But I wish she were here now, safe with me!"
He wanted to
reassure her, but his own heart was too low.
"Tell me a
little more about your wife, Alder," she said.
"I cannot,"
he said at last into the silence that lay easily between them. "I
would if I could, Lady Tenar. There's such a heaviness in me, and a
dread and fear, tonight. I try to think of Lily, but there's only
that dark desert going down and down, and I can't see her in it. All
the memories I had of her, that were like water and breath to me,
have gone into that dry place. I have nothing left."
"I am sorry,"
she whispered, and they sat again in silence. The dusk was deepening.
It was windless, very warm. Lights in the palace shone through the
carved window screens and the still, hanging foliage of the willows.
"Something is
happening," Tenar said. "A great change in the world. Maybe
nothing we knew will be left to us."
Alder looked up
into the darkening sky. The towers of the palace stood clear against
it, their pale marble and alabaster catching all the light left in
the west. His eyes sought the sword blade mounted at the point of the
highest tower and he saw it, faint silver. "Look," he said.
At the sword's point, like a diamond or a drop of water, shone a
star. As they watched the star moved free of the sword, rising
straight above it.
There was a
commotion, in the palace or outside the walls; voices; a horn
sounded, a sharp imperative call.
"They've come
back," Tenar said, and stood up. Excitement had come into the
air, and Alder too stood up. Tenar hurried into the palace, from
which the harbor could be seen. But before he took Tug back inside,
Alder looked up again at the sword, now only a faint glimmer, and the
star riding bright above it.
dolphin came
sailing up the harbor in that windless summer night, leaning forward,
urgent, the magewind bellying out her sails. Nobody in the palace had
looked for the king to return so soon, but nothing was out of order
or unready when he came. The quay was instantly crowded with
courtiers, off-duty soldiers, and townspeople ready to greet him, and
song makers and harpers were waiting to hear how he had fought and
defeated dragons so they could make ballads about it.
They were
disappointed: the king and his party made straight for the palace,
and the guards and sailors from the ship said only, "They went
up into the country above On-neva Sands, and in two days they came
back. The wizard sent out a message bird to us, for we were down at
the Gates of the Bay by then, since we were going to meet them in
South Port. We came back and there they were awaiting us at the river
mouth, all unharmed. But we saw the smoke of forests afire over the
South Falierns."
Tenar was in the
crowd on the quay, and Tehanu went straight to her. They embraced
fiercely. But as they walked up the street among the lights and the
rejoicing voices, Tenar was still thinking, "It has changed. She
has changed. She'll never come home."
Lebannen walked
among his guards. Charged with tension and energy, he was regal,
warlike, radiant. "Erreth-Akbe," people called out, seeing
him, and "Son of Morred!" On the steps of the palace he
turned and faced them all. He had a strong voice to use when he
wanted it, and it rang out now silencing the tumult. "Listen,
people of Havnor! The Woman of Gont has spoken for us with a chief
among the dragons. They have pledged a truce. One of them will come
to us. A dragon will come here, to the City of Havnor, to the Palace
of Maharion. Not to destroy, but to parley. The time has come when
men and dragons must meet and talk. So I tell you: when the dragon
comes, do not fear it, do not fight it, do not flee it, but welcome
it in the Sign of Peace. Greet it as you would greet a great lord
come in peace from afar. And have no fear. For we are well protected
by the Sword of Erreth-Akbe, by the Ring of Elfarran, and by the Name
of Morred. And by my own name I promise you, so long as I live I will
defend this city and this realm!"
They listened in a
breathless hush. A burst of cheers and shouts followed on his words
as he turned and strode into the palace. "I thought it best to
give them some warning," he said in his usual quiet voice to
Tehanu, and she nodded. He spoke to her as to a comrade, and she
behaved as such. Tenar and the courtiers nearby saw this.
He ordered that his
full Council meet in the morning at the fourth hour, and then they
all dispersed, but he kept Tenar with him a minute while Tehanu went
on. "It's she who protects us," he said.
"Alone?"
"Don't fear
for her. She is the dragon's daughter, the dragon's sister. She goes
where we can't go. Don't fear for her, Tenar."
She bowed her head
in acceptance. "I thank you for bringing her safe back to me,"
she said. "For a while."
They were apart
from other people, in the corridor that led to the western apartments
of the palace. Tenar looked up at the king and said, "I've been
talking about dragons with the princess."
"The
princess," he said blankly.
"She has a
name. I can't tell it to you, since she believes you might use it to
destroy her soul."
He scowled.
"In Hur-at-Hur
there are dragons. Small, she says, and wingless, and they don't
speak. But they're sacred. The sacred sign and pledge of death and
rebirth. She reminded me that my people don't go where your people do
when they die. That dry land Alder tells of, it's not where we go.
The princess, and I, and the dragons."
Lebannen's face
changed from wary reserve to intense attention. "Ged's questions
to Tehanu," he said in a low voice. "Are these the
answers?"
"I know only
what the princess told me, or reminded me. I'll speak with Tehanu
about these things tonight."
He frowned,
pondering; then his face cleared. He stooped and kissed Tenar's
cheek, bidding her good night. He strode off and she watched him go.
He melted her heart, he dazzled her, but she was not blinded. "He's
still afraid of the princess," she thought.
The throne room was
the oldest room in the Palace of Maharion. It had been the hall of
Gemal Sea-Born, Prince of Ilien, who became king in Havnor and of
whose lineage came Queen Heru and her son Maharion. The Havnorian Lay
says:
A hundred warriors,
a hundred women sat in the great hall of Gemal Sea-Born at the kings
table, courtly in talk, handsome and generous gentry of Havnor, no
warriors braver, no women more beautiful.
Around this hall
for over a century Gemal's heirs had built an ever larger palace, and
lastly Heru and Maharion had raised above it the Tower of Alabaster,
the Tower of the Queen, the Tower of the Sword.
These still stood;
but though the people of Havnor had stoutly called it the New Palace
all through the long centuries since Maharion's death, it was old and
half in ruins when Lebannen came to the throne. He had rebuilt it
almost entirely, and richly. The merchants of the Inner Isles, in
their first joy at having a king and laws again to protect their
trading, had set his revenue high and offered him yet more money for
all such undertakings; for the first few years of his reign they had
not even complained that taxation was destroying their business and
would leave their children destitute. So he had been able to make the
New Palace new again, and splendid. But the throne room, once the
beamed ceiling was rebuilt, the stone walls replastered, the narrow,
high-set windows reglazed, he left in its old starkness.
Through the brief
false dynasties and the Dark Years of tyrants and usurpers and pirate
lords, through all the insults of time and ambition, the throne of
the kingdom had stood at the end of the long room: a wooden chair,
high-backed, on a plain dais. It had once been sheathed in gold. That
was long gone; the small golden nails had left rents in the wood
where they had been torn out. Its silken cushions and hangings had
been stolen or destroyed by moth and mouse and mold. Nothing showed
it to be what it was but the place where it stood and a shallow
carving on the back, a heron flying with a twig of rowan in its beak.
That was the crest of the House of Enlad.
The kings of that
house had come from Enlad to Havnor eight hundred years ago. Where
Morred's High Seat is, they said, the kingdom is.
Lebannen had it
cleaned, the decayed wood repaired and replaced, oiled and burnished
back to dark satin, but left it unpainted, ungilt, bare. Some of the
rich people who came to admire their expensive palace complained
about the throne room and the throne. "It looks like a barn,"
they said, and, "Is it Morred's High Seat or an old farmer's
chair?"
To which some said
the king had replied, "What is a kingdom without the barns that
feed it and the farmers to grow the grain?" Others said he had
replied, "Is my kingdom gauds of gilt and velvet or does it
stand by the strength of wood and stone?" Still others said he
had said nothing except that he liked it the way it was. And it being
his royal buttocks that sat on the uncushioned throne, his critics
did not get the last word on the matter.
Into that stern and
high-beamed hall, on a cool morning of late summer sea fog, filed the
King's Council: ninety-one men and women, a hundred if all had been
there. All had been chosen by the king, some to represent the great
noble and princely houses of the Inner Isles, pledged vassals of the
Crown; some to speak for the interests of other islands and parts of
the Archipelago; some because the king had found them or hoped to
find them useful and trustworthy counselors of state. There were
merchants, shippers, and factors of Havnor and the other great port
cities of the Sea of Ea and the Inmost Sea, splendid in their
conscious gravity and their dark robes of heavy silk. There were
masters from the workers' guilds, flexible and canny bargainers,
notable among them a pale-eyed, hard-handed woman, the chief of the
miners of Osskil. There were Roke wizards like Onyx, with grey cloaks
and wooden staffs. There was also a Pelnish wizard, called Master
Seppel, who carried no staff and of whom people mostly steered clear,
though he seemed mild enough. There were noblewomen, young and old,
from the kingdom's fiefs and principalities, some in silks of
Lorbanery and pearls from the Isles of Sand, and two Islandwomen,
stout, plain, and dignified, one from Iffish and one from Korp, to
speak for the people of the East Reach. There were some poets, some
learned people from the old colleges of Ea and the En-lades, and
several captains of soldiery or of the king's ships.
All these
councillors the king had chosen. At the end of two or three years he
would ask them to serve again or send them home with thanks and in
honor, and replace them. All laws and taxations, all judgments
brought before the throne, he discussed with them, taking their
counsel. They would then vote on his proposal, and only with the
consent of the majority was it enacted. There were those who said the
council was nothing but the king's pets and puppets, and so indeed it
might have been. He mostly got his way if he argued for it. Often he
expressed no opinion and let the council make the decision. Many
councillors had found that if they had enough facts to support their
opposition and made a good argument, they might sway the others and
even persuade the king. So debates within the various divisions and
special bodies of the council were often hotly contested, and even in
full session the king had several times been opposed, argued with,
and voted down. He was a good diplomat, but an indifferent
politician.
He found his
council served him well, and people of power had come to respect it.
Common folk did not pay much attention to it. They centered their
hopes and attention on the king's person. There were a thousand lays
and ballads about the son of Morred, the prince who rode the dragon
back from death to the shores of day, the hero of Sorra, wielder of
the Sword of Serriadh, the Rowan Tree, the Tall Ash of Enlad, the
well-loved king who ruled in the Sign of Peace. But it was hard going
to make songs about councillors debating shipping taxes.
Unsung, then, they
filed in and took their seats on the cushioned benches facing the
uncushioned throne. They stood again as the king came in. With him
came the Woman of Gont, whom most of them had seen before so that her
appearance caused no stir, and a slight man in rusty black. "Looks
like a village sorcerer," a merchant from Kamery said to a
shipwright from Way, who answered, "No doubt," in a
resigned, forgiving tone. The king was loved also by many of the
councillors, or at least liked; he had after all put power in their
hands, and even if they felt no obligation to be grateful him, they
respected his judgment.
The elderly Lady of
Ebea hurried in late, and Prince Sege, who presided over protocol,
told the council to be seated. They all sat down. "Hear the
king," Sege said, and they listened.
He told them, and
for many it was the first real news of these matters, about the
dragons' attacks on West Havnor, and how he had set out with the
Woman of Gont, Tehanu, to parley with them.
He kept them in
suspense while he spoke of the earlier attacks by dragons on the
islands of the west, and told them briefly Onyx's tale of the girl
who turned into a dragon on Roke Knoll, and reminded them that Tehanu
was claimed as daughter by Tenar of the Ring, by the onetime Archmage
of Roke, and by the dragon Kalessin, on whose back the king himself
had been borne from Selidor.
Then finally he
told them what had happened at the pass in the Faliern Mountains at
dawn three days ago.
He ended by saying,
"That dragon carried Tehanu's message to Orm Irian in Paln, who
then must make the long flight here, three hundred miles or more. But
dragons are swifter than any ship even with the magewind. We may look
for Orm Irian at any time."
Prince Sege asked
the first question, knowing the king would welcome it: "What do
you hope to gain, my lord, by parley with a dragon?"
The answer was
prompt: "More than we can ever gain by trying to fight it. It is
a hard thing to say, but it is the truth: against the anger of these
great creatures, if indeed they were to come against us in any
number, we have no true defense. Our wise men tell us there is maybe
one place that could stand against them, Roke Island. And on Roke
there is maybe one man who could face the wrath of even a single
dragon and not be destroyed. Therefore we must try to find out the
cause of their anger and, by removing it, make peace with them."
"They are
animals," said the old Lord of Felkway. "Men cannot reason
with animals, make peace with them."
"Have we not
the Sword of Erreth-Akbe, who slew the Great Dragon?" cried a
young councillor.
He was answered at
once by another: "And who slew Erreth-Akbe?"
Debate in the
council tended to be tumultuous, though Prince Sege kept strict rule,
not letting anyone interrupt another or speak for more than one turn
of the two-minute sandglass. Babblers and droners were cut off by a
crash of the prince's silver-tipped staff and his call to the next
speaker. So they talked and shouted back and forth at a fast pace,
and all the things that had to be said and many things that did not
need to be said were said, and refuted, and said again. Mostly they
argued that they should go to war, fight the dragons, defeat them.
"A band of
archers on one of the king's warships could bring them down like
ducks," cried a hot-blooded merchant from Wathort.
"Are we to
grovel before mindless beasts? Are there no heroes left among us?"
demanded the imperious Lady of O-tokne.
To that, Onyx made
a sharp reply: "Mindless? They speak the Language of the Making,
in the knowledge of which our art and power lies. They are beasts as
we are beasts. Men are animals that speak."
A ship's captain,
an old, far-traveled man, said, "Then isn't it you wizards who
should be talking with them? Since you know their speech, and maybe
share their powers? The king spoke of a young untaught girl who
turned into a dragon. But mages can take that form at will. Couldn't
the Masters of Roke speak with the dragons or fight with them, if
need be, evenly matched?"
The wizard from
Paln stood up. He was a short man with a soft voice. "To take
the form is to be the being, captain," he said politely. "A
mage can look like a dragon. But true Change is a risky art.
Especially now. A small change in the midst of great changes is like
a breath against the wind… But we have here among us one who
need use no art, and yet can speak for us to dragons better than any
man could do. If she will speak for us."
At that, Tehanu
stood up from her bench at the foot of the dais. "I will,"
she said. And sat down again.
That brought a
pause to the discussion for a minute, but soon they were all at it
again.
The king listened
and did not speak. He wanted to know the temper of his people.
The sweet silver
trumpets high on the Tower of the Sword played all their tune four
times, telling the sixth hour, noon. The king stood, and Prince Sege
declared a recess until the first hour of the afternoon.
A lunch of fresh
cheese and summer fruits and greens was set out in a room in Queen
Heru's Tower. There Lebannen invited Tehanu and Tenar, Alder, Sege,
and Onyx; and Onyx, with the king's permission, brought with him the
Pelnish wizard Seppel. They sat and ate together, talking little and
quietly. The windows looked over all the harbor and the north
shoreline of the bay fading off into a bluish haze that might be
either the remnants of the morning fog or smoke from the forest fires
in the west of the island.
Alder remained
bewildered at being included among the king's intimates and brought
into his councils. What had he to do with dragons? He could neither
fight with them nor talk with them. The idea of such mighty beings
was great and strange to him. At moments the boasts and challenges of
the councillors seemed to him like a yapping of dogs. He had seen a
young dog once on a beach barking and barking at the ocean, rushing
and snapping at the ebb wave, running back from the breaker with its
wet tail between its legs.
But he was glad to
be with Tenar, who put him at ease, and whom he liked for her
kindness and courage, and he found now that he was also at ease with
Tehanu.
Her disfigurement
made it seem that she had two faces. He could not see them both at
one time, only the one or the other. But he had got used to that and
it did not disquiet him. His mother's face had been half masked by
its wine-red birthmark. Tehanu's face reminded him of that.
She seemed less
restless and troubled than she had been. She sat quietly, and a
couple of times she spoke to Alder, sitting next to her, with a shy
comradeliness. He felt that, like him, she was there not by choice
but because she had forgone choice, driven to follow a way she did
not understand. Maybe her way and his went together, for a while at
least. The idea gave him courage. Knowing only that there was
something he had to do, something begun that must be finished, he
felt that whatever it might be, it would be better done with her than
without her. Perhaps she was drawn to him out of the same loneliness.
But her
conversation was not of such deep matters. "My father gave you a
kitten," she said to him as they left the table. "Was it
one of Aunty Moss's?"
He nodded, and she
asked, "The grey one?"
"Yes."
"That was the
best cat of the litter."
"She's getting
fat, here."
Tehanu hesitated
and then said timidly, "I think it's a he."
Alder found himself
smiling. "He's a good companion. A sailor named him Tug."
"Tug,"
she said, and looked satisfied.
"Tehanu,"
the king said. He had sat down beside Tenar in the deep window seat.
"I didn't call on you in council today to speak of the questions
Lord Sparrowhawk asked you. It was not the time. Is it the place?"
Alder watched her.
She considered before answering. She glanced once at her mother, who
made no answering sign.
"I'd rather
speak to you here," she said in her hoarse voice. "And
maybe to the Princess of Hur-at-Hur."
After a brief pause
the king said pleasantly, "Shall I send for her?"
"No, I can go
see her. Afterward. I haven't much to say, really. My father asked,
Who goes to the dry land when they die? And my mother and I talked
about it. And we thought, people go there, but do the beasts? Do
birds fly there? Are there trees, does the grass grow? Alder, you've
seen it."
Taken by surprise,
he could say only, "There… there's grass, on the hither
side of the wall, but it seems dead. Beyond that I don't know."
Tehanu looked at
the king. "You walked across that land, my lord."
"I saw no
beast, or bird, or growing thing."
Alder spoke again:
"Lord Sparrowhawk said: dust, rock."
"I think no
beings go there at death but human beings," Tehanu said. "But
not all of them." Again she looked at her mother, and did not
look away.
Tenar spoke. "The
Kargish people are like the animals." Her voice was dry and let
no feeling be heard. "They die to be reborn."
"That is
superstition," Onyx said. "Forgive me, Lady Tenar, but you
yourself—" He paused.
"I no longer
believe," Tenar said, "that I am or was, as they told me,
Arha forever reborn, a single soul reincarnated endlessly and so
immortal. I do believe that when I die I will, like any mortal being,
rejoin the greater being of the world. Like the grass, the trees, the
animals. Men are only animals that speak, sir, as you said this
morning."
"But we can
speak the Language of the Making," the wizard protested. "By
learning the words by which Segoy made the world, the very speech of
life, we teach our souls to conquer death."
"That place
where nothing is but dust and shadows, is that your conquest?"
Her voice was not dry now, and her eyes flashed.
Onyx stood
indignant but wordless. The king intervened. "Lord Sparrowhawk
asked a second question," he said. "Can a dragon cross the
wall of stones?" He looked at Tehanu.
"It's answered
in the first answer," she said, "if dragons are only
animals that speak, and animals don't go there. Has a mage ever seen
a dragon there? Or you, my lord?" She looked first at Onyx, then
at Lebannen. Onyx pondered only a moment before he said, "No."
The king looked
amazed. "How is it I never thought of that?" he said. "No,
we saw none. I think there are no dragons there."
"My lord,"
Alder said, louder than he had ever said anything in the palace,
"there is a dragon here." He was standing facing the
window, and he pointed at it.
They all turned. In
the sky above the Bay of Havnor they saw a dragon flying from the
west. Its long, slow-beating, vaned wings shone red-gold. A curl of
smoke drifted behind it for a moment in the hazy summer air.
"Now,"
the king said, "what room do I make ready for this guest?"
He spoke as if
amused, bemused. But the instant he saw the dragon turn and come
wheeling in towards the Tower of the Sword, he ran from the room and
down the stairs, startling and outstripping the guards in the halls
and at the doors, so that he came out first and alone on the terrace
under the white tower.
The terrace was the
roof of a banquet hall, a wide expanse of marble with a low
balustrade, the Sword Tower rising directly over it and the Queen's
Tower nearby. The dragon had alighted on the pavement and was furling
its wings with a loud metallic rattle as the king came out. Where it
came down its talons had scratched grooves in the marble.
The long,
gold-mailed head swung round. The dragon looked at the king.
The king looked
down and did not meet its eyes. But he stood straight and spoke
clearly. "Orm Irian, welcome. I am Lebannen."
"Agni
Lebannen," said the great hissing voice, greeting him as Orm
Embar had greeted him long ago, in the farthest west, before he was a
king.
Behind him, Onyx
and Tehanu had run out onto the terrace along with several guards.
One guard had his sword out, and Lebannen saw, in a window of the
Queen's Tower, another with drawn bow and notched arrow aimed at the
dragon's breast. "Put down your weapons!" he shouted in a
voice that made the towers ring, and the guard obeyed in such haste
that he nearly dropped his sword, but the archer lowered his bow
reluctantly, finding it hard to leave his lord defenseless.
"Medeu,"
Tehanu whispered, coming up beside Lebannen, her gaze unwavering on
the dragon. The great creature's head swung round again and the
immense amber eye in a socket of shining, wrinkled scales gazed back,
unblinking.
The dragon spoke.
Onyx,
understanding, murmured to the king what it said and what Tehanu
replied. "Kalessin's daughter, my sister," it said. "You
do not fly."
"I cannot
change, sister," Tehanu said.
"Shall I?"
"For a while,
if you will."
Then those on the
terrace and in the windows of the towers saw the strangest thing they
might ever see however long they lived in a world of sorceries and
wonders. They saw the dragon, the huge creature whose scaled belly
and thorny tail dragged and stretched half across the breadth of the
terrace, and whose red-horned head reared up twice the height of the
king—they saw it lower that big head, and tremble so that its
wings rattled like cymbals, and not smoke but a mist breathed out of
its deep nostrils, clouding its shape, so that it became cloudy like
thin fog or worn glass; and then it was gone. The midday sun beat
down on the scored, scarred, white pavement. There was no dragon.
There was a woman. She stood some ten paces from Tehanu and the king.
She stood where the heart of the dragon might have been.
She was young,
tall, and strongly built, dark, dark-haired, wearing a farm woman's
shift and trousers, barefoot. She stood motionless, as if bewildered.
She looked down at her body. She lifted up her hand and looked at it.
"The little thing!" she said, in the common speech, and she
laughed. She looked at Tehanu. "It's like putting on the shoes I
wore when I was five," she said.
The two women moved
towards each other. With a certain stateliness, like that of armed
warriors saluting or ships meeting at sea, they embraced. They held
each other lightly, but for some moments. They drew apart, and both
turned to face the king.
"Lady Irian,"
he said, and bowed.
She looked a little
nonplussed and made a kind of country curtsey. When she looked up he
saw her eyes were the color of amber. He looked instantly away.
"I'll do you
no harm in this guise," she said, with a broad, white smile.
"Your majesty," she added uncomfortably, trying to be
polite.
He bowed again. It
was he that was nonplussed now. He looked at Tehanu, and round at
Tenar, who had come out onto the terrace with Alder. Nobody said
anything.
Irian's eyes went
to Onyx, standing in his grey cloak just behind the king, and her
face lighted up again. "Sir," she said, "are you from
Roke Island? Do you know the Lord Patterner?"
Onyx bowed or
nodded. He too kept his eyes from hers.
"Is he well?
Does he walk among his trees?"
Again the wizard
bowed.
"And the
Doorkeeper, and the Herbal, and Kurremkarmerruk? They befriended me,
they stood by me. If you go back there, greet them with my love and
honor, if you please."
"I will,"
the wizard said.
"My mother is
here," Tehanu said softly to Irian. "Tenar of Atuan."
"Tenar of
Gont," Lebannen said, with a certain ring to his voice.
Looking with open
wonder at Tenar, Irian said, "It was you that brought the Rune
Ring from the land of the Hoary Men, along with the Archmage?"
"It was,"
Tenar said, staring with equal frankness at Irian.
Above them on the
balcony that encircled the Tower of the Sword near its summit there
was movement: the trumpeters had come out to sound the hour, but at
the moment all four of them were gathered on the south side
overlooking the terrace, peering down to see the dragon. There were
faces in every window of the palace towers, and the thrum of voices
down in the streets could be heard like a tide coming in.
"When they
sound the first hour," Lebannen said, "the council will
gather again. The councillors will have seen you come, my lady, or
heard of your coming. So if it please you, I think it best that we go
straight among them and let them behold you. And if you'll speak to
them I promise you they'll listen."
"Very well,"
Irian said. For a moment there was a ponderous, reptilian impassivity
in her. When she moved, that vanished, and she seemed only a tall
young woman who stepped forward quite awkwardly, saying with a smile
to Tehanu, "I feel as if I'll float up like a spark, there's no
weight to me!"
The four trumpets
up in the tower sounded to west, north, east, south in turn, one
phrase of the lament a king five hundred years ago had made for the
death of his friend.
For a moment the
king now remembered the face of that man, Erreth-Akbe, as he stood on
the beach of Selidor, dark-eyed, sorrowful, mortally wounded, among
the bones of the dragon who had killed him. Lebannen felt it strange
that he should think of such faraway things at such a moment; and yet
it was not strange, for the living and the dead, men and dragons, all
were drawing together to some event he could not see.
He paused until
Irian and Tehanu came up to him. As he walked on into the palace with
them he said, "Lady Irian, there are many things I would ask
you, but what my people fear and what the council will desire to know
is whether your people intend to make war on us, and why."
She nodded, a
heavy, decisive nod. "I will tell them what I know."
When they came to
the curtained doorway behind the dais, the throne room was all in
confusion, an uproar of voices, so that the crash of Prince Sege's
staff was barely heard at first. Then silence came suddenly on them
and they all turned to see the king come in with the dragon.
Lebannen did not
sit but stood before the throne, and Irian stood to his left.
"Hear the
king," Sege said into that dead silence.
The king said,
"Councillors! This is a day that will long be told and sung.
Your sons' daughters and your daughters' sons will say, 'I am the
grandchild of one who was of the Dragon Council!' So honor her whose
presence honors us. Hear Orm Irian."
Some of those who
were at the Dragon Council said afterwards that if they looked
straight at her she seemed only a tall woman standing there, but if
they looked aside what they saw in the corner of their eye was a vast
shimmer of smoky gold that dwarfed king and throne. And many of them,
knowing a man must not look into a dragon's eye, did look aside; but
they stole glimpses too. The women looked at her, some thinking her
plain, some beautiful, some pitying her for having to go barefoot in
the palace. And a few councillors, not having rightly understood,
wondered who the woman was, and when the dragon would be coming.
All the time she
spoke, that complete silence endured. Though her voice had the
lightness of most women's voices, it filled the high hall easily. She
spoke slowly and formally, as if she were translating in her mind
from the older speech.
"My name was
Irian, of the Domain of Old Iria on Way. I am Orm Irian now.
Kalessin, the Eldest, calls me daughter. I am sister to Orm Embar,
whom the king knew, and grandchild of Orm, who killed the king's
companion Erreth-Akbe and was killed by him. I am here because my
sister Tehanu called to me.
"When Orm
Embar died on Selidor, destroying the mortal body of the wizard Cob,
Kalessin came from beyond the west and brought the king and the great
mage to Roke. Then returning to the Dragons' Run, the Eldest called
the people of the west, whose speech had been taken from them by Cob,
and who were still bewildered. Kalessin said to them, 'You let evil
turn you into evil. You have been mad. You are sane again, but so
long as the winds blow from the east you can never be what you were,
free of both good and evil.'
"Kalessin
said: 'Long ago we chose. We chose freedom. Men chose the yoke. We
chose fire and the wind. They chose water and the earth. We chose the
west, and they the east.'
"And Kalessin
said: 'But always among us some envy them their wealth, and always
among them some envy us our liberty. So it was that evil came into us
and will come into us again, until we choose again, and forever, to
be free. Soon I am going beyond the west to fly on the other wind. I
will lead you there, or wait for you, if you will come.'
"Then some of
the dragons said to Kalessin, 'Men in their envy of us long ago stole
half our realm beyond the west from us and made walls of spells to
keep us out of it. So now let us drive them into the farthest east,
and take back the islands! Men and dragons cannot share the wind.'
"Then Kalessin
said, 'Once we were one people. And in sign of that, in every
generation of men, one or two are born who are dragons also. And in
every generation of our people, longer than the quick lives of men,
one of us is born who is also human. Of these one is now living in
the Inner Isles. And there is one of them living there now who is a
dragon. These two are the messengers, the bringers of choice. There
will be no more such born to us or to them. For the balance changes.'
"And Kalessin
said to them: 'Choose. Come with me to fly on the far side of the
world, on the other wind. Or stay and put on the yoke of good and
evil. Or dwindle into dumb beasts.' And at the last Kalessin said:
'The last to make the choice will be Tehanu. After her there will be
no choosing. There will be no way west. Only the forest will be, as
it is always, at the center.'"
The people of the
King's Council were still as stones, listening. Irian stood moveless,
gazing as if through them, as she spoke.
"After some
years had passed, Kalessin flew beyond the west. Some followed, some
did not. When I came to join my people, I followed Kalessin. But I go
there and come back, so long as the winds will bear me.
"The
disposition of my people is jealous and irate. Those who stayed here
on the winds of the world began to fly in bands or singly to the
isles of men, saying again, 'They stole half our realm. Now we will
take all the west of their realm, and drive them out of it, so they
cannot bring their good and evil to us any more. We will not put our
necks into their yoke.'
"But they did
not try to kill the islanders, because they remembered being mad,
when dragon killed dragon. They hate you, but they will not kill you
unless you try to kill them.
"So one of
these bands has come now to this island, Havnor, that we call the
Cold Hill. The dragon who came before them and spoke to Tehanu is my
brother Ammaud. They seek to drive you into the east, but Ammaud,
like me, enacts the will of Kalessin, seeking to free my people from
the yoke you wear. If he and I and the children of Kalessin can
prevent harm to your people and ours, we will do so. But dragons have
no king, and obey no one, and will fly where they will. For a while
they will do as my brother and I ask in Kalessin's name. But not for
long. And they fear nothing in the world, except your wizardries of
death."
That last word rang
heavily in the great hall in the silence that followed Irian's voice.
The king spoke,
thanking Irian. He said, "You honor us with your truth-speaking.
By my name, we will speak truth to you. I beg you to tell me,
daughter of Kalessin who bore me to my kingdom, what it is you say
the dragons fear? I thought they feared nothing in the world or out
of it."
"We fear your
spells of immortality," she said bluntly.
"Of
immortality?" Lebannen hesitated. "I am no wizard. Master
Onyx, speak for me, if the daughter of Kalessin will permit."
Onyx stood up.
Irian looked at him with cold, impartial eyes, and nodded.
"Lady Irian,"
the wizard said, "we make no spells of immortality. Only the
wizard Cob sought to make himself immortal, perverting our art to do
so." He spoke slowly and with evident care, searching his mind
as he spoke. "Our Archmage, with my lord the king, and with the
aid of Orm Embar, destroyed Cob and the evil he had done. And the
Archmage gave all his power up to heal the world, restoring the
Equilibrium. No other wizard in our lifetime has sought to—"
He stopped short.
Irian looked
straight at him. He looked down.
"The wizard I
destroyed," she said, "the Summoner of Roke, Thorion—what
was it he sought?"
Onyx, stricken,
said nothing.
"He came back
from death," she said. "But not living, as the Archmage and
the king did. He was dead, but he came back across the wall by his
arts—by your arts—you men of Roke! How are we to trust
anything you say? You have unmade the balance of the world. Can you
restore it?"
Onyx looked at the
king. He was openly distressed. "My lord, I cannot think that
this is the place to discuss such matters—before all men—until
we know what we are talking about, and what we must do…"
"Roke keeps
its secrets," Irian said with calm scorn.
"But on Roke—"
Tehanu said, not standing; her weak voice died away. Prince Sege and
the king both looked at her and motioned her to speak.
She stood up. At
first she kept the left side of her face to the councillors, all
sitting motionless on their benches, like stones with eyes.
"On Roke is
the Immanent Grove," she said. "Isn't that what Kalessin
meant, sister, speaking of the forest that is at the center?"
Turning to Irian, she showed the people watching her the whole ruin
of her face; but she had forgotten them. "Maybe we need to go
there," she said. "To the center of things."
Irian smiled. "I'll
go there," she said.
They both looked at
the king.
"Before I send
you to Roke, or go with you," he said slowly, "I must know
what is at stake. Master Onyx, I'm sorry that matters so grave and
chancy force us to debate our course so openly. But I trust my
councillors to support me as I find and hold the course. What the
council needs to know is that our islands need not fear attack from
the People of the West—that the truce, at least, holds."
"It holds,"
Irian said.
"Can you say
how long?"
"A half year?"
she offered, carelessly, as if she had said, "A day or two."
"We will hold
the truce a half year, in hope of peace to follow. Am I right to say,
Lady Irian, that to have peace with us, your people want to know that
our wizards' meddling with the… laws of life and death will
not endanger them?"
"Endanger all
of us," Irian said. "Yes."
Lebannen considered
this and then said, in his most royal, affable, urbane manner, "Then
I believe I should come to Roke with you." He turned to the
benches. "Councillors, with the truce declared, we must seek the
peace. I'll go wherever I must on that quest, ruling as I do in the
Sign of El-farran's Ring. If you see any hindrance to this journey,
speak here and now. For it may be that the balance of power within
the Archipelago, as well as the Equilibrium of the whole, is in
question. And if I go, I must go now. Autumn is near, and it's not a
short voyage to Roke Island."
The stones with
eyes sat there for a long minute, all staring, none speaking. Then
Prince Sege said, "Go, my lord king, go with our hope and trust,
and the magewind in your sails." There was a little murmur of
assent from the councillors: Yes, yes, hear him.
Sege asked for
further questions or debate; nobody spoke. He closed the session.
Leaving the throne
room with him, Lebannen said, "Thank you, Sege," and the
old prince said, "Between you and the dragon, Lebannen, what
could the poor souls say?"
Many matters had to
be settled and arrangements made before the king could leave his
capital; there was also the question of who should go with him to
Roke. Irian and Tehanu, of course, and Tehanu wanted her mother with
her. Onyx said that Alder should by all means go with them, and also
the Pelnish wizard Seppel, for the Lore of Paln had much to do with
these matters of crossing between life and death. The king chose
Tosla to captain the Dolphin, as he had done before. Prince Sege
would look after affairs of state in the king's absence, with a
selected group of councillors, as he also had done before.
So it was all
settled, or so Lebannen thought, until Tenar came to him two days
before they were to sail and said, "You'll be talking of war and
peace with the dragons, and of matters even beyond that, Irian says,
matters that concern the balance of all things in Earthsea. The
people of the Kargad Lands should hear these discussions and have a
voice in them."
"You will be
their representative."
"Not I. I am
not a subject of the High King. The only person here who can
represent his people is his daughter."
Lebannen took a
step away from her, turned partly from her, and at last said in a
voice stifled by the effort to speak without anger, "You know
that she is completely unfitted for such a journey."
"I know
nothing of the kind."
"She has no
education."
"She's
intelligent, practical, and courageous. She's aware of what her
station requires of her. She hasn't been trained to rule, but then
what can she learn boxed up there in the River House with her
servants and some court ladies?"
"To speak the
language, in the first place!"
"She's doing
that. I'll interpret for her when she needs it."
After a brief pause
Lebannen spoke carefully: "I understand your concern for her
people. I will consider what can be done. But the princess has no
place on this voyage."
"Tehanu and
Irian both say she should come with us. Master Onyx says that, like
Alder of Taon, her being sent here at this time cannot be an
accident."
Lebannen walked
farther away. His tone remained stiffly patient and polite: "I
cannot permit it. Her ignorance and inexperience would make her a
serious burden. And I can't put her at risk. Relationships with her
father—"
"In her
ignorance, as you call it, she showed us how to answer Ged's
questions. You are as disrespectful of her as her father is. You
speak of her as of a mindless thing." Tenar's face was pale with
anger. "If you're afraid to put her at risk, ask her to take it
herself."
Again there was a
silence. Lebannen spoke with the same wooden calmness, not looking
directly at her. "If you and Tehanu and Orm Irian believe this
woman should come with us to Roke, and Onyx agrees with you, I accept
your judgment, though I believe it is mistaken. Please tell her that
if she wishes to come, she may do so."
"It is you who
should tell her that."
He stood silent.
Then he walked out of the room without a word.
He passed close by
Tenar, and though he did not look at her he saw her clearly. She
looked old and strained, and her hands trembled. He was sorry for
her, ashamed of his rudeness to her, relieved that no one else had
witnessed the scene; but these feelings were mere sparks in the huge
darkness of his anger at her, at the princess, at everyone and
everything that laid this false obligation, this grotesque duty on
him. As he went out of the room he tugged open the collar of his
shirt as if it were choking him.
His majordomo, a
slow and steady man called Thoroughgood, was not expecting him to
return so soon or through that door and jumped up, staring and
startled. Lebannen returned his stare icily and said, "Send for
the High Princess to attend me here in the afternoon."
"The High
Princess?"
"Is there more
than one of them? Are you unaware that the High King's daughter is
our guest?"
Amazed,
Thoroughgood stammered an apology, which Lebannen interrupted: "I
shall go to the River House myself." And he strode on out,
pursued, impeded, and gradually controlled by the majordomo's
attempts to slow him down long enough for a suitable retinue to be
gathered, horses to be brought from the stables, the petitioners
waiting for audience in the Long Room to be put off till afternoon,
and so on. All his obligations, all his duties, all the trappery and
trammel, rites and hypocrisies that made him king pulled at him,
sucking and tugging him down like quicksand into suffocation.
When his horse was
brought across the stable yard to him, he swung up into the saddle so
abruptly that the horse caught his mood and backed and reared,
driving back the hostlers and attendants. To see the circle widen out
around him gave Lebannen a harsh satisfaction. He set the horse
straight for the gateway without waiting for the men in his retinue
to mount. He led them at a sharp trot through the streets of the
city, far ahead of them, aware of the dilemma of the young officer
who was supposed to precede him calling, "Way for the king!"
but who had been left behind him and now did not dare ride past him.
It was near noon;
the streets and squares of Havnor were hot and bright and mostly
deserted. Hearing the clatter of hooves, people hurried to the
doorways of little dark shops to stare and recognise and salute the
king. Women sitting in their windows fanning themselves and gossiping
across the way looked down and waved, and one of them threw a flower
down at him. His horse's hooves rang on the bricks of a broad,
sunbaked square that lay empty except for a curly-tailed dog trotting
away on three legs, unconcerned with royalty. Out of the square the
king took a narrow passage that led to the paved way beside the
Serrenen, and followed it in the shadow of the willows under the old
city wall to River House.
The ride had
changed his temper somewhat. The heat and silence and beauty of the
city, the sense of multitudinous life behind walls and shutters, the
smile of the woman who had tossed a flower, the petty satisfaction of
keeping ahead of all his guardians and pomp makers, then finally the
scent and coolness of the river ride and the shady courtyard of the
house where he had known days and nights of peace and pleasure, all
took him a little distance from his anger. He felt estranged from
himself, no longer possessed but emptied.
The first riders of
his retinue were just coming into the courtyard as he swung off his
horse, which was glad to stand in the shade. He went into the house,
dropping among dozing footmen like a stone into a glassy pond,
causing quick-widening circles of dismay and panic. He said, "Tell
the princess that I am here."
Lady Opal of the
Old Demesne of Ilien, currently in charge of the princess's
ladies-in-waiting, appeared promptly, greeted him graciously, offered
him refreshment, behaved quite as if his visit were no surprise at
all. This suavity half placated, half irritated him. Endless
hypocrisy! But what was Lady Opal to do—gawp like a stranded
fish (as a very young lady-in-waiting was doing) because the king had
finally and unexpectedly come to see the princess?
"I'm so sorry
Mistress Tenar isn't here at present," she said. "It's so
much easier to converse with the princess with her help. But the
princess is making admirable progress in the language."
Lebannen had
forgotten the problem of language. He accepted the cool drink offered
him and said nothing. Lady Opal made small talk with the assistance
of the other ladies, getting very little from the king. He had begun
to realise that he would probably be expected to speak with the
princess in the company of all her ladies, as was only proper.
Whatever he had intended to say to her, it had become impossible to
say anything. He was just about to get up and excuse himself, when a
woman whose head and shoulders were hidden by a red circular veil
appeared in the doorway, fell plop on her knees, and said, "Please?
King? Princess? Please?"
"The princess
will receive you in her chambers, sire," Lady Opal interpreted.
She waved to a footman, who escorted him upstairs, along a hall,
through an anteroom, through a large, dark room that seemed to be
crammed absolutely full of women in red veils, and out onto a balcony
over the river. There stood the figure he remembered: the immobile
cylinder of red and gold.
The breeze from the
water made the veils tremble and shimmer, so that the figure did not
appear solid but delicate, moving, shivering, like the willow
foliage. It seemed to shrink, to shorten. She was making her courtesy
to him. He bowed to her. They both straightened up and stood in
silence.
"Princess,"
Lebannen said, with a feeling of unreality, hearing his own voice, "I
am here to ask you to come with us to Roke Island."
She said nothing.
He saw the fine red veils part in an oval as she spread them with her
hands. Long-fingered, golden-skinned hands, held apart to reveal her
face in the red shadow. He could not see her features clearly. She
was nearly as tall as he, and her eyes looked straight at him.
"My friend
Tenar," she said, "say: king to see king, face and face. I
say: yes. I will."
Half understanding,
Lebannen bowed again. "You honor me, my lady."
"Yes,"
she said. "I honor you."
He hesitated. This
was a different ground entirely. Her ground.
She stood there
straight and still, the gold edging of her veils shivering, her eyes
looking at him out of the shadow.
"Tenar, and
Tehanu, and Orm Irian, agree that it would be well if the Princess of
the Kargad Lands were with us on Roke Island. So I ask you to come
with us."
"To come."
"To Roke
Island."
"On ship,"
she said, and suddenly made a little moaning plaintive noise. Then
she said, "I will. I will to come."
He did not know
what to say. He said, "Thank you, my lady."
She nodded once,
equal to equal.
He bowed. He left
her as he had been taught to leave the presence of his father the
prince at formal occasions in the court of Enlad, not turning his
back but stepping backwards.
She stood facing
him, still holding her veil parted till he reached the doorway. Then
she dropped her hands, and the veils closed, and he heard her gasp
and breathe out hard as if in release from an act of will sustained
almost past endurance.
Courageous, Tenar
had called her. He did not understand, but he knew that he been in
the presence of courage. All the anger that had filled him, brought
him here, was gone, vanished. He had not been sucked down and
suffocated, but brought up short in front of a rock, a high place in
clear air, a truth.
He went out through
the room full of murmuring, perfumed, veiled women who shrank back
from him into the darkness. Downstairs, he chatted a little with Lady
Opal and the others, and had a kind word for the gawping
twelve-year-old lady-in-waiting. He spoke pleasantly to the men of
his retinue waiting for him in the courtyard. He quietly mounted his
tall grey horse. He rode quietly, thoughtfully, back to the Palace of
Maharion.
Alder heard with
fatalistic acceptance that he was to sail back to Roke. His waking
life had become so strange to him, more dreamlike than his dreams,
that he had little will to question or protest. If he was fated to
sail from island to island the rest of his life, so be it; he knew
there was no such thing as going home for him now. At least he would
be in the company of the ladies Tenar and Tehanu, who put his heart
at ease. And the wizard Onyx had also shown him kindness.
Alder was a shy man
and Onyx a deeply reserved one, and there was all the difference of
their knowledge and status to be bridged; but Onyx had come to him
several times simply to talk as one man of the art to another,
showing a respect for Alder's opinion that puzzled his modesty. But
Alder could not withhold his trust; and so when the time to depart
was near at hand, he took to Onyx the question that had been worrying
him.
"It's the
little cat," he said with embarrassment. "I don't feel
right about taking him. Keeping him cooped up so long. It's unnatural
for a young creature. And I think, what would become of him?”
Onyx did not ask
what he meant. He asked only, "He still helps you keep from the
wall of stones?"
"Well, often
he does."
Onyx pondered. "You
need some protection, till we get to Roke. I have thought…
Have you spoken with the wizard Seppel here?"
"The man from
Paln," Alder said, with a slight unease in his voice.
Paln, the greatest
island west of Havnor, had the reputation of being an uncanny place.
The Pelnish spoke Hardic with a peculiar accent, using many words of
their own. Their lords had in ancient times refused fealty to the
kings of Enlad and Havnor. Their wizards did not go to Roke for their
training. The Pelnish Lore, which called upon the Old Powers of the
Earth, was widely believed to be dangerous if not sinister. Long ago
the Grey Mage of Paln had brought ruin on his island by summoning the
souls of the dead to advise him and his lords, and that tale was part
of the education of every sorcerer: "The living should not take
counsel of the dead." There had been more than one duel in
wizardry between a man of Roke and a man of Paln; in one such combat
two centuries ago a plague had been loosed on the people of Paln and
Semel that had left half the towns and farmlands desolate. And
fifteen years ago, when the wizard Cob had used the Pelnish Lore to
cross between life and death, the Archmage Sparrowhawk had spent all
his own power to defeat him and heal the evil he had done.
Alder, like almost
everyone else at court and in the King's Council, had politely
avoided the wizard Seppel.
"I've asked
the king to bring him with us to Roke," said Onyx.
Alder blinked.
"They know
more than we do about these matters," Onyx said. "Most of
our art of Summoning comes from the Pelnish Lore. Thorion was a
master of it… The Summoner of Roke now, Brand of Venway, won't
use any part of his craft that draws from that lore. Misused, it has
brought only harm. But it may be only our ignorance that's led us to
use it wrongly. It goes back to very ancient times; there may be
knowledge in it we've lost. Seppel is a wise man and mage. I think he
should be with us. And I think he might help you, if you can trust
him."
"If he has
your trust," Alder said, "he has mine."
When Alder spoke
with the silver tongue of Taon, Onyx was likely to smile a little
drily. "Your judgment's as good as mine, Alder, in this
business," he said. "Or better. I hope you use it. But I'll
take you to him."
So they went down
into the city together. Seppel's lodging was in an old part of town
near the shipyards, just off Boatwright Street; there was a little
colony of Pelnish folk there, brought in to work in the king's yards,
for they were great shipbuilders. The houses were ancient, crowded
close, with the bridges between roof and roof that gave Havnor Great
Port a second, airy web of streets high above its paved ones.
Seppel's rooms, up
three flights of stairs, were dark and close in the heat of this late
summer. He took them up one more steep flight onto the roof. It was
joined to other roofs by a bridge on each side, so that there was a
regular crossroads and thoroughfare across it. Awnings were set up by
the low parapets, and the breeze from the harbor cooled the shaded
air. There they sat on striped canvas mats in the corner that was
Seppel's bit of the roof, and he gave them a cool, slightly bitter
tea to drink.
He was a short man
of about fifty, round-bodied, with small hands and feet, hair that
was a little curly and unruly, and what was rare among men of the
Archipelago, a beard, clipped short, on his dark cheeks and jaw. His
manners were pleasant. He spoke in a clipped, singing accent, softly.
He and Onyx talked,
and Alder listened for a good while to them. His mind drifted when
they spoke about people and matters of which he knew nothing. He
looked out over the roofs and awnings, the roof gardens and the
arched and carven bridges, northward to Mount Onn, a great pale-grey
dome above the hazy hills of summer. He came back to himself hearing
the Pelnish wizard say, "It may be that even the Archmage could
not wholly heal the wound in the world."
The wound in the
world, Alder thought: yes. He looked more intently at Seppel, and
Seppel glanced at him. For all the soft look of the man his eyes were
sharp.
"Maybe it's
not only our desire to live forever that has kept the wound open,"
Seppel said, "but the desire of the dead to die."
Again Alder heard
the strange words and felt that he recognised them without
understanding them. Again Seppel glanced at him as if seeking a
response.
Alder said nothing,
nor did Onyx speak. Seppel said at last, "When you stand at the
bourne, Master Alder, what is it they ask of you?"
"To be free,"
Alder replied, his voice only a whisper.
"Free,"
Onyx murmured.
Silence again. Two
girls and a boy ran past across the roofway, laughing and calling,
"Down at the next!"—playing one of the endless games
of chase children made with their city's maze of streets and canals
and stairs and bridges.
"Maybe it was
a bad bargain from the beginning," Seppel said, and when Onyx
looked a question at him he said, "Verio nadan."
Alder knew the
words were in the Old Speech, but he did not know their meaning.
He looked at Onyx,
whose face was very grave. Onyx said only, "Well, I hope we can
come to the truth of these things, and soon."
"On the hill
where truth is," Seppel said.
"I'm glad
you'll be with us there. Meanwhile, here is Alder summoned to the
bourne night after night and seeking some reprieve. I said that you
might know a way to help him."
"And you would
accept the touch of the wizardry of Paln?" Seppel asked Alder.
His tone was softly ironic. His eyes were bright and hard as jet.
Alder's lips were
dry. "Master," he said, "we say on my island, the man
drowning doesn't ask what the rope cost. If you can keep me from that
place even for a night, you'll have my heart's thanks, little as that
is worth in return for such a gift."
Onyx looked at him
with a slight, amused, unreproving smile.
Seppel did not
smile at all. "Thanks are rare, in my trade," he said. "I
would do a good deal for them. I think I can help you, Master Alder.
But I have to tell you the rope is a costly one."
Alder bowed his
head.
"You come to
the bourne in dream, not by your own will, that is so?"
"So I
believe."
"Wisely said."
Seppel's keen glance approved him. "Who knows his own will
clearly? But if it is in dream you go there, I can keep you from that
dream—for a while. And at a cost, as I said."
Alder looked his
question.
"Your power."
Alder did not
understand him at first. Then he said, "My gift, you mean? My
art?"
Seppel nodded.
"I'm only a
mender," Alder said after a little time. "It's not a great
power to give up."
Onyx made as if to
protest, but looked at Alder's face and said nothing.
"It is your
living," Seppel said.
"It was my
life, once. But that's gone."
"Maybe your
gift will come back to you, when what must happen has happened. I
cannot promise that. I will try to restore what I can of what I take
from you. But we're all walking in the night, now, on ground we don't
know. When the day comes we may know where we are, or we may not.
Now, if I spare you your dream, at that price, will you thank me?"
"I will,"
Alder said. "What's the little good of my gift, against the
great evil my ignorance could do? If you spare me the fear I live in
now, the fear that I may do that evil, I'll thank you till the end of
my life."
Seppel drew a deep
breath. "I've always heard that the harps of Taon play true,"
he said. He looked at Onyx. "And Roke has no objection?" he
asked, with a return to his mild ironic tone.
Onyx shook his
head, but he now looked very grave.
"Then we will
go to the cave at Aurun. Tonight if you like."
"Why there?"
Onyx asked.
"Because it's
not I but the Earth that will help Alder. Aurun is a sacred place,
full of power. Although the people of Havnor have forgotten that, and
use it only to defile it."
Onyx managed to
have a private word with Alder before they followed Seppel
downstairs. "You need not go through with this, Alder," he
said. "I thought I trusted Seppel, but I don't know, now."
"I'll trust
him," Alder said. He understood Onyx's doubts, but he had meant
what he said, that he would do anything to be free of the fear of
doing some dreadful wrong. Each time he had been drawn back in dream
to that wall of stones, he felt that something was trying to come
into the world through him, that it would do so if he listened to the
dead calling to him, and each time he heard them, he was weaker and
it was harder to resist their call.
The three men went
a long way through the city streets in the heat of the late
afternoon. They came out into the countryside south of the city,
where rough ridgy hills ran down to the bay, a poor bit of country
for this rich island: swampy lowland between the ridges, a little
arable land on their rocky backs. The wall of the city here was very
old, built of great unmortared rocks taken from the hills, and beyond
it were no suburbs and few farms.
They walked along a
rough road that zigzagged up the first ridge and followed its crest
eastward towards the higher hills. Up there, where they could see all
the city lying in a golden haze northward, to their left, the road
widened out into a maze of footpaths. Going straight forward they
came suddenly to a great crack in the ground, a black gap twenty feet
wide or more, right across their way.
It was as if the
spine of rock had been cracked apart by a wrenching of the earth and
had never healed again. The western sunlight streaming over the lips
of the cave lighted the vertical rock faces a little way down, but
below that was darkness.
There was a tannery
in the valley under the ridge, south of it. The tanners had brought
their wastes up here and dumped them into the crack, carelessly, so
that all around it was a litter of rancid scraps of half-cured
leather and a stink of rot and urine. There was another smell from
the depths of the cave as they approached the sheer edge: a cold,
sharp, earthy air that made Alder draw back.
"I grieve for
this, I grieve for this!" the wizard of Paln said aloud, looking
around at the rubbish and down at the roofs of the tannery with a
strange expression. But he spoke to Alder after a while in his usual
mild way: "This is the cave or cleft called Aurun, that we know
from our most ancient maps in Paln, where it is also called the Lips
of Paor. It used to speak to the people here, when they first came
here from the west. A long time ago. Men have changed. But it is what
it was then. Here you can lay down your burden, if that is what you
want."
"What must I
do?" Alder said.
Seppel led him to
the south end of the great split in the ground, where it narrowed
back together in fissured ridges of rock. He told him to lie facedown
where he could gaze into the depth of darkness stretching down and
down away from him. "Hold to the earth," he said. "That
is all you must do. Even if it moves, hold to it."
Alder lay there
staring down between the walls of stone. He felt rocks jabbing his
chest and hip as he lay on them; he heard Seppel begin to chant in a
high voice in words he knew were the Language of the Making; he felt
the warmth of the sun across his shoulders, and smelled the carrion
stink of the tannery. Then the breath of the cave blew up out of the
depths with a hollow sharpness that took his own breath away and made
his head spin. The darkness moved up towards him. The ground moved
under him, rocked and shook, and he held on to it, hearing the high
voice sing, breathing the breath of the earth. The darkness rose up
and took him. He lost the sun.
When he came back,
the sun was low in the west, a red ball in the haze over the western
shores of the bay. He saw that. He saw Seppel sitting nearby on the
ground, looking tired and forlorn, his black shadow long on the rocky
ground among the long shadows of the rocks.
"There you
are," Onyx said.
Alder realised that
he was lying on his back, his head on Onyx's knees, a rock digging
into his backbone. He sat up, dizzy, apologising.
They set off as
soon as he could walk, for they had some miles to go and it was clear
that neither he nor Seppel would be able to keep a fast pace. Full
night had fallen when they came by Boatwright Street. Seppel bade
them farewell, looking searchingly at Alder as they stood in the
light from a tavern door nearby. "I did as you asked me,"
he said, with that same unhappy look.
"I thank you
for it," Alder said, and put out his right hand to the wizard in
the manner of the people of the En-lades. After a moment Seppel
touched it with his hand; and so they parted.
Alder was so tired
he could barely make his legs move. The sharp, strange taste of the
air from the cave was still in his mouth and throat, making him feel
light, light-headed, hollow. When at last they came to the palace,
Onyx wanted to see him to his room, but Alder said he was well and
only needed to rest.
He came into his
room and Tug came dancing and tail-waving to greet him. "Ah, I
don't need you now," Alder said, bending down to stroke the
sleek grey back. Tears came into his eyes. It was only that he was
very tired. He lay down on the bed, and the cat jumped up and curled
up purring on his shoulder.
And he slept:
black, blank sleep with no dream he could remember, no voice calling
his name, no hill of dry grass, no dim wall of stones, nothing.
Walking in the
gardens of the palace in the evening before they were to sail south,
Tenar was heavyhearted and anxious. She did not want to be setting
off to Roke, the Isle of the Wise, the Isle of the Wizards.
(Accursed-sorcerers, a voice in her mind said in Kargish.) What had
she to do there? What possible use could she be? She wanted to go
home to Gont, to Ged. To her own house, her own work, her own dear
man.
She had estranged
Lebannen. She had lost him. He was polite, affable, and unforgiving.
How men feared
women! she thought, walking among the late-flowering roses. Not as
individuals, but women when they talked together, worked together,
spoke up for one another—then men saw plots, cabals,
constraints, traps being laid.
Of course they were
right. Women were likely, as women, to take the next generations
part, not this one's; they wove the links men saw as chains, the
bonds men saw as bondage. She and Seserakh were indeed in league
against him and ready to betray him, if he truly was nothing unless
he was independent. If he was only air and fire, no weight of earth
to him, no patient water…
But that was not
Lebannen so much as Tehanu. Unearthly, her Tehanu, the winged soul
that had come to stay with her a while and was soon, she knew, to
leave her. From fire to fire.
And Irian, with
whom Tehanu would go. What had that bright, fierce creature to do
with an old house that needed sweeping, an old man who needed looking
after? How could Irian understand such things? What was it to her, a
dragon, that a man should undertake his duty, marry, have children,
wear the yoke of earth?
Seeing herself
alone and useless among beings of high, inhuman destiny, Tenar gave
in altogether to homesickness.
Homesickness not
for Gont only. Why should she not be in league with Seserakh, who
might be a princess as she herself had been a priestess, but who was
not going to go flying off on fiery wings, being deeply and entirely
a. woman of the earth? And she spoke Tenars own language! Tenar had
dutifully tutored her in Hardic, had been delighted with her
quickness to learn, and realised only now that the true delight had
been just to speak Kargish with her, hearing and saying words that
held in them all her lost childhood.
As she came to the
walk that led to the fish ponds beneath the willows, she saw Alder.
With him was a small boy. They were talking quietly, soberly. She was
always glad to see Alder. She pitied him for the pain and fear he was
in and honored his patience in bearing it. She liked his honest,
handsome face, and his silver tongue. What was the harm in adding a
grace note or two to ordinary speech? Ged had trusted him.
Pausing at a
distance so as not to disturb the conversation, she saw him and the
child kneel down on the path, looking into the bushes. Presently
Alder's little grey cat emerged from under a bush. It paid no
attention to them, but set off across the grass, paw by paw, belly
low and eyes alight, hunting a moth.
"You can let
him stay out all night, if you like," Alder said to the child.
"He can't stray or come to harm here. He has a great taste for
the open air. But this is like all Havnor to him, you see, these
great gardens. Or you can give him his freedom in the mornings. And
then, if you like, he can sleep with you."
"I would like
that," the boy said, shyly decisive.
"Then he needs
his box of sand in your room, you know. And a bowl of drinking water,
never to go dry."
"And food."
"Yes, indeed;
once a day. Not too much of it. He's a bit greedy. Inclined to think
Segoy made the islands so that Tug could fill his belly."
"Does he catch
fish in the pond?" The cat was now near one of the carp pools,
sitting on the grass looking about; the moth had flown.
"He likes to
watch them."
"I do too,"
the boy said. They got up and walked together towards the pools.
Tenar was moved to
tenderness. There was an innocence to Alder, but it was a man's
innocence, not childish. He should have had children of his own. He
would have been a good father to them.
She thought of her
own children, and of the little grandchildren—though Apple's
eldest, Pippin, was it possible? was Pippin about to be twelve? She
would be named this year or next! Oh, it was time to go home. It was
time to visit Middle Valley, take a nameday present to her
granddaughter and toys to the babies, make sure Spark in his
restlessness wasn't overpruning the pear trees again, sit a while and
talk with her kind daughter Apple… Apple's true name was
Hayohe, the name Ogion had given her… The thought of Ogion
came as always with a pang of love and longing. She saw the
hearthplace of the house at Re Albi. She saw Ged sitting there at the
hearth. She saw him turn his dark face to ask her a question. She
answered it, aloud, in the gardens of the New Palace of Havnor
hundreds of miles from that hearth: "As soon as I can!"
In the morning, the
bright summer morning, they all went down from the palace to go
aboard the Dolphin. The people of the City of Havnor made it a
festival, swarming afoot in the streets and on the wharves, choking
the canals with the little poled boats they called chips, dotting the
great bay with sailboats and dinghies all flying bright flags; and
flags and pennants flew from the towers of the great houses and the
banner poles on bridges high and low. Passing among these cheerful
crowds, Tenar thought of the day long ago she and Ged came sailing
into Havnor, bringing home the Rune of Peace, Elfarran's Ring. That
Ring had been on her arm, and she had held it up so the silver would
flash in the sunlight and the people could see it, and they had
cheered and held out their arms to her as if they all wanted to
embrace her. It made her smile to think of that. She was smiling as
she went up the gangplank and bowed to Lebannen.
He greeted her with
the traditional formality of a ship's master: "Mistress Tenar,
be welcome aboard." She replied, moved by she knew not what
impulse, "I thank you, son of Elfarran."
He looked at her
for a moment, startled by that name. But Tehanu followed close after
her, and he repeated the formal greeting: "Mistress Tehanu, be
welcome aboard."
Tenar went on
towards the prow of the ship, remembering a corner there near a
capstan where a passenger could be out of the way of the hardworking
sailors and yet see all that happened on the crowded deck and outside
the ship too.
There was a
commotion in the main street leading to the dock: the High Princess
was arriving. Tenar saw with satisfaction that Lebannen, or perhaps
his majordomo, had arranged for the princess's arrival to be
fittingly magnificent. Mounted escorts opened a way through the
crowds, their horses snorting and clattering in fine style. Tall red
plumes, such as Kargish warriors wore on their helmets, waved from
the top of the closed, gilt-bedizened carriage that had brought the
princess across the city and on the headstalls of the four grey
horses that drew it. A band of musicians waiting on the waterside
struck up with trumpet, tambour, and tambourine. And the people,
discovering that they had a princess to cheer and peer at, cheered
loudly, and pressed as close as the horsemen and foot guards would
allow them, gaping and full of praises and somewhat random greetings.
"Hail the Queen of the Kargs!" some of them shouted, and
others, "She ain't," and others, "Look at em all in
red, fine as rubies, which one is her?" and others, "Long
live the Princess!"
Tenar saw
Seserakh—veiled of course from hat to foot, but unmistakable by
her height and bearing—descend from the carriage and sail,
stately as a ship herself, towards the gangplank. Two of her
shorter-veiled attendants trotted close behind her, followed by Lady
Opal of Ilien. Tenar's heart sank. Lebannen had decreed that no
servants or followers were to be taken on this journey. It was not a
cruise or pleasure trip, he had said sternly, and those aboard must
have good reason to be aboard. Had Seserakh not understood that? Or
did she so cling to her silly countrywomen that she meant to defy the
king? That would be a most unfortunate beginning of the voyage.
But at the foot of
the gangplank the gold-rippling red cylinder stopped and turned. It
put forth hands, gold-skinned hands shining with gold rings. The
princess embraced her handmaidens, clearly bidding them farewell. She
also embraced Lady Opal in the approved stately manner of royalty and
nobility in public. Then Lady Opal herded the handmaidens back
towards the carriage, while the princess turned again to the
gangplank.
There was a pause.
Tenar could see that featureless column of red and gold take a deep
breath. It drew itself up taller.
It proceeded up the
gangplank, slowly, for the tide had been rising and the angle was
steep, but with an unhesitant dignity that kept the crowds ashore
silent, fascinated, watching.
It attained the
deck and stopped there, facing the king.
"High Princess
of the Kargad Lands, be welcome aboard," Lebannen said in a
ringing voice. At that the crowds burst out—"Hurrah for
the Princess! Long live the Queen! Well walked, Reddy!"
Lebannen said
something to the princess which the cheering made inaudible to
others. The red column turned to the crowd on the waterside and
bowed, stiff-backed but gracious.
Tehanu had waited
for her near where the king stood, and now came forward and spoke to
her and led her to the aft cabin of the ship, where the heavy,
soft-flowing red and golden veils disappeared. The crowd cheered and
called more wildly than ever. "Come back, Princess! Where's
Reddy? Where's our lady? Where's the Queen?"
Tenar looked down
the length of the ship at the king. Through her misgivings and
heaviness of heart, unruly laughter welled up in her. She thought,
Poor boy, what will you do now? They've fallen in love with her the
first chance they got to see her, even though they can't see her…
Oh, Lebannen, we're all in league against you!
dolphin was a
fair-sized ship, fitted out to carry a king in some state and
comfort; but first and foremost she was made to sail, to fly with the
wind, to take him where he needed to go as quickly as could be.
Accommodations were cramped enough when it was only the crew and
officers, the king and a few companions aboard. On this voyage to
Roke, accommodations were jammed. The crew, to be sure, were in no
more than usual discomfort, sleeping down in the three-foot-high
kennel of the foreward hold; but the officers had to share one
wretched black closet under the forecastle. As for the passengers,
all four women were in what was normally the king's cabin, which ran
the narrow width of the sterncastle of the ship, while the cabin
beneath it, usually occupied by the ship's master and one or two
other officers, was shared by the king, the two wizards, the
sorcerer, and Tosla. The probability of misery and bad temper was,
Tenar thought, limitless. The first and most urgent probability,
however, was that the High Princess was going to be sick. They were
sailing down the Great Bay with the mildest following wind, the water
calm, the ship gliding along like a swan on a pond; but Seserakh
cowered on her bunk, crying out in despair whenever she looked out
through her veils and caught sight of the sunny, peaceful vista of
unexcited water, the mild white wake of the ship, through the broad
stern windows. "It will go up and down," she moaned in
Kargish.
"It is not
going up and down at all," Tenar said. "Use your head,
princess!"
"It is my
stomach not my head," Seserakh whimpered.
"Nobody could
possibly be seasick in this weather. You are simply afraid."
"Mother,"
Tehanu protested, understanding the tone if not the words. "Don't
scold her. It's miserable to be sick."
"She is not
sick!" Tenar said. She was absolutely convinced of the truth of
what she said. "Seserakh, you are not sick. You are afraid of
being sick. Get hold of yourself. Come out on deck. Fresh air will
make all the difference. Fresh air and courage."
"Oh my
friend," Seserakh murmured in Hardic. "Make me courage!"
Tenar was a little
taken aback. "You have to make it yourself, princess," she
said. Then, relenting, "Come on, just try it out on deck for a
minute. Tehanu, see if you can persuade her. Think what she'll suffer
if we do meet some weather!"
Between them they
got Seserakh to her feet and into her cylinder of red veiling,
without which she could not of course appear before the eyes of men;
they coaxed and wheedled her to creep out of the cabin, onto the bit
of deck to the side of it, in the shade, where they could all sit in
a row on the bone-white, impeccable decking and look out at the blue
and shining sea.
Seserakh parted her
veils enough that she could see straight in front of her; but she
mostly looked at her lap, with an occasional, brief, terrified glance
at the water, after which she shut her eyes and then looked down at
her lap again.
Tenar and Tehanu
talked a little, pointing out ships that passed, birds, an island.
"It's lovely. I forgot how I like to sail!" Tenar said.
"I like it if
I can forget the water," said Tehanu. "It's like flying."
"Ah, you
dragons," Tenar said.
It was spoken
lightly, but it was not lightly said. It was the first time she had
ever said anything of the kind to her adopted daughter. She was aware
that Tehanu had turned her head to look at her with her seeing eye.
Tenar's heart beat heavily. "Air and fire," she said.
Tehanu said
nothing. But her hand, the brown slender hand, not the claw, reached
out and took hold of Tenar's hand and held it tightly.
"I don't know
what I am, mother," she whispered in her voice that was seldom
more than a whisper.
"I do,"
Tenar said. And her heart beat heavier and harder than before.
"I'm not like
Irian," Tehanu said. She was trying to comfort her mother, to
reassure her, but there was longing in her voice, yearning jealousy,
profound desire.
"Wait, wait
and find out," her mother replied, finding it hard to speak.
"You'll know what to do… what you are… when the
time comes."
They were talking
so softly that the princess could not hear what they said, if she
could understand it. They had forgotten her. But she had caught the
name Irian, and parting her veils with her long hands and turning to
them, her eyes looking out bright from the warm red shadow, she
asked, "Irian, she is?"
"Somewhere
forward—up there—" Tenar waved at the rest of the
ship.
"She makes
herself courage. Ah?"
After a moment
Tenar said, "She doesn't need to make it, I think. She's
fearless."
"Ah,"
said the princess.
Her bright eyes
were gazing out of shadow all the length of the ship, to the prow,
where Irian stood beside Lebannen. The king was pointing ahead,
gesturing, talking with animation. He laughed, and Irian, standing by
him, as tall as he, laughed too.
"Barefaced,"
Seserakh muttered in Kargish. And then in Hardic, thoughtfully,
almost inaudibly, "Fearless."
She closed her
veils and sat featureless, unmoving.
The long shores of
Havnor were blue behind them. Mount Onn floated faint and high in the
north. The black basalt columns of the Isle of Omer towered off the
ship's right side as she worked across the Ebavnor Straits towards
the Inmost Sea. The sun was bright, the wind fresh, another fine day.
All the women were sitting under the sailcloth awning the sailors had
rigged for them beside the aftercabin. Women brought good luck to a
ship, and the sailors couldn't do enough for them in the way of
ingenious little comforts and amenities. Because wizards could bring
good luck or, equally, bad luck to a ship, the sailors also treated
the wizards very well; their awning was rigged in a corner of the
quarterdeck, where they had a good view forward. The women had velvet
cushions to sit on (provided by the king's forethought, or his
majordomo's); the wizards had packets of sailcloth, which did very
well.
Alder found himself
treated as and considered to be one of the wizards. He could do
nothing about it, though it embarrassed him lest Onyx and Seppel
should think he was claiming equality with them, and it also troubled
him because he was now not even a sorcerer. His gift was gone. He had
no power at all. He knew it as surely as he would have known the loss
of his sight, the paralysis of his hand. He could not have mended a
broken pitcher now, unless with glue; and he would have done it
badly, because he had never had to do it.
And beyond the
craft he had lost was something else, something larger than the
craft, that was gone. Its loss left him, as his wife's death had, in
a blankness in which no joy, no new thing was or would ever be.
Nothing could happen, nothing could change.
Not having known of
this larger aspect of his gift till he lost it, he pondered on it,
wondering about its nature. It was like knowing the way to go, he
thought, like knowing the direction of home. Not a thing one could
identify or even say much about, but a connection on which everything
else depended. Without it he was desolate. He was useless.
But at least he did
no harm. His dreams were fleeting, meaningless. They never took him
to those dreary moorlands, the hill of dead grass, the wall. No
voices called him to the dark.
He thought often of
Sparrowhawk, wishing he could talk with him: the Archmage who had
spent all his power, and having been great among the great, now lived
his life out poor and disregarded. Yet the king longed to show him
honor; so Sparrowhawk's poverty was by choice. Perhaps, Alder
thought, riches or high estate would have been only shameful to a man
who had lost his true wealth, his way.
Onyx clearly
regretted having led Alder to make this trade or bargain. He had
always been entirely civil to Alder, but he now treated him with
regard and compunction, while his manner to the wizard of Paln had
become a little distant. Alder himself felt no resentment towards
Seppel and no distrust of his intentions. The Old Powers were the Old
Powers. You used them at your risk. Seppel had told him what he must
pay, and he had paid it. He had not understood quite how much there
was to pay; but that was not Seppel's fault. It was his own, for
never having valued his gift at its true worth.
So he sat with the
two wizards, thinking of himself as false coin to their gold, but
listening to them with all his mind; for they trusted him and spoke
freely, and their talk was an education he had never dreamed of as a
sorcerer.
Sitting there in
the bright pale shade of the canvas awning, they talked of a bargain,
a greater bargain than the one he had made to stop his dreams. Onyx
said more than once the words of the Old Speech Seppel had spoken on
the rooftop: Verw nadan. As they talked, little by little Alder
gathered that the meaning of those words was something like a choice,
a division, making two things of one. Far, far back in time, before
the Kings of Enlad, before the writing of Hardic, maybe before there
was a Hardic tongue, when there was only the Language of the Making,
it seemed that people had made some kind of choice, given up one
great power or possession to gain another.
The wizards' talk
of this was hard to follow, not so much because they hid anything but
because they themselves were groping after things lost in the cloudy
past, the time before memory. Words of the Old Speech came into their
talk of necessity, and sometimes Onyx spoke entirely in that tongue.
But Seppel would answer him in Hardic. Seppel was sparing with the
words of the Making. Once he held up his hand to stop Onyx from going
on, and at the Roke wizard's look of surprise and question, said
mildly, "Spellwords act."
Alder's teacher
Gannet, too, had called the words of the Old Speech spellwords. "Each
is a deed of power," he had said. "True word makes truth
be." Gannet had been stingy with the spellwords he knew,
speaking them only at need, and when he wrote any rune but the common
ones that were used to write Hardic, he erased it almost as he
finished it. Most sorcerers were similarly careful, either to guard
their knowledge for themselves or because they respected the power of
the Language of the Making. Even Seppel, wizard as he was, with a far
wider knowledge and understanding of those words, preferred not to
use them in conversation, but to keep to ordinary language which, if
it allowed lies and errors, also permitted uncertainty and
retraction.
Perhaps that had
been part of the great choice men made in ancient times: to give up
the innate knowledge of the Old Speech, which they once shared with
the dragons. Had they done so, Alder wondered, in order to have a
language of their own, a language suited to mankind, in which they
could lie, cheat, swindle, and invent wonders that never had been and
would never be?
The dragons spoke
no speech but the Old Speech. Yet it was always said that dragons
lied. Was it so? he wondered. If spellwords were true, how could even
a dragon use them to lie?
Seppel and Onyx had
come to one of the long, easy, thoughtful pauses in their
conversation. Seeing that Onyx was, in fact, at least half asleep,
Alder asked the Pelnish wizard softly, "Is it true that dragons
can tell untruth in the true words?"
The Pelnishman
smiled. "That—so we say on Paln—is the very question
Ath asked Orm a thousand years ago, in the ruins of Ontuego. 'Can a
dragon lie?' the mage asked. And Orm replied, 'No,' and then breathed
on him, burning him to ashes… But are we to believe the story,
since it was only Orm who could have told it?"
Infinite are the
arguments of mages, Alder said to himself, but not aloud.
Onyx had gone
definitely to sleep, his head tilted back against the bulkhead, his
grave, tense face relaxed.
Seppel spoke, his
voice even quieter than usual. "Alder, I hope you do not regret
what we did at Aurun. I know our friend thinks I did not warn you
clearly enough."
Alder said without
hesitation, "I am content."
Seppel inclined his
dark head.
Alder said
presently, "I know that we try to keep the Equilibrium. But the
Powers of the Earth keep their own account."
"And theirs is
a justice that is hard for men to understand."
"That's it. I
try to see why it was just that, my craft, I mean, that I must give
up to free myself from that dream. What has the one to do with the
other?"
Seppel did not
answer for a while, and then it was with a question. "It was not
by your craft that you came to the wall of stones?"
"Never,"
Alder said with certainty. "I had no more power to go there if I
willed it than I had to prevent myself from going."
"So how did
you come there?"
"My wife
called me, and my heart went to her."
A longer pause. The
wizard said, "Other men have lost beloved wives."
"So I said to
my Lord Sparrowhawk. And he said: that's true, and yet the bond
between true lovers is as close as we come to what endures forever."
"Across the
wall of stones, no bond endures."
Alder looked at the
wizard, the swarthy, soft, keen-eyed face. "Why is it so?"
he said.
"Death is the
bond breaker."
"Then why do
the dead not die?"
Seppel stared at
him, taken aback.
"I'm sorry,"
Alder said. "I misspeak in my ignorance. What I mean is this:
death breaks the bond of soul with body, and the body dies. It goes
back to the earth. But the spirit must go to that dark place, and
wear a semblance of the body, and endure there—for how long?
Forever? In the dust and dusk there, without light, or love, or cheer
at all? I cannot bear to think of Lily in that place. Why must she be
there? Why can she not be—" his voice stumbled—"be
free?"
"Because the
wind does not blow there," Seppel said. His look was very
strange, his voice harsh. "It was stopped from blowing, by the
art of man."
He continued to
stare at Alder but only gradually did he begin to see him. The
expression in his eyes and face changed. He looked away, up the
beautiful white curve of the foresail, full of the breath of the
northwest wind. He glanced back at Alder. "You know as much as I
do of this matter, my friend," he said with almost his usual
softness. "But you know it in your body, your blood, in the
pulse of your heart. And I know only words. Old words… So we
had better get to Roke, where maybe the wise men will be able to tell
us what we need to know. Or if they cannot, the dragons will,
perhaps. Or maybe it will be you who shows us the way."
"That would be
the blind man who led the seers to the cliff's edge, indeed!"
Alder said with a laugh.
"Ah, but we're
at the cliff's edge already, with our eyes shut," said the
wizard of Paln.
Lebannen found the
ship too small to contain the enormous restlessness that filled him.
The women sat under their little awning and the wizards sat under
theirs like ducks in a row, but he paced up and down, impatient with
the narrow confines of the deck. He felt it was his impatience and
not the wind that sent Dolphin running so fast to the south, but
never fast enough. He wanted the journey over.
"Remember the
fleet on the way to Wathort?" Tosla said joining him while he
stood near the steersman, studying the chart and the clear sea before
them. "That was a grand sight. Thirty ships aline!"
"I wish it was
Wathort we were bound for," Lebannen said.
"I never did
like Roke," Tosla agreed. "Not an honest wind or current
for twenty miles off that shore, but only wizards' brew. And the
rocks north of it never in the same place twice. And the town full of
cheats and shape-shifters." He spat, competently, to leeward.
"I'd rather meet old Gore and his slavers again!"
Lebannen nodded,
but said nothing. That was often the pleasure of Tosla's company: he
said what Lebannen felt it was better that he himself not say.
"Who was the
dumb man, the mute," Tosla asked, "the one that killed
Falcon on the wall?"
"Egre. Pirate
turned slave taker."
"That's it. He
knew you, there at Sorra. Went right for you. I always wondered how."
"Because he
took me as a slave once."
It was not easy to
surprise Tosla, but the seaman looked at him with his mouth open,
evidently not believing him but not able to say so, and so with
nothing to say. Lebannen enjoyed the effect for a minute and then
took pity on him.
"When the
Archmage took me hunting after Cob, we went south, first. A man in
Hort Town betrayed us to the slave takers. They knocked the Archmage
on the head, and I ran off thinking I could lead them away from him.
But it was me they were after—I was salable. I woke up chained
in a galley bound for Sowl. He rescued me before the next night
passed. The irons fell off us all like bits of dead leaves. And he
told Egre not to speak again until he found something worth saying…
He came to that galley like a great light over the water… I
never knew what he was till then."
Tosla mulled this
over a while. "He unchained all the slaves? Why didn't the
others kill Egre?"
"Maybe they
took him on to Sowl and sold him," Lebannen said.
Tosla mulled a
while longer. "So that's why you were so keen to do away with
the slave trade."
"One reason."
"Doesn't
improve the character, as a rule," Tosla observed. He studied
the chart of the Inmost Sea tacked on the board to the steersman's
left. "Island of Way," he remarked. "Where the dragon
woman's from."
"You keep
clear of her, I notice."
Tosla pursed his
lips, though he did not whistle, being aboard ship. "You know
that song I mentioned, about the Lass of Belilo? Well, I never
thought of it as anything but a tale. Until I saw her."
"I doubt she'd
eat you, Tosla."
"It would be a
glorious death," the sailor said, rather sourly.
The king laughed.
"Don't push
your own luck," said Tosla.
"No fear."
"You and she
were talking there so free and easy. Like making yourself easy with a
volcano, to my mind… But I'll tell you, I wouldn't mind seeing
a bit more of that present the Kargs sent you. There's a sight worth
seeing in there, to judge by the feet. But how do you get it out of
the tent? The feet are grand, but I'd like a bit more ankle, to begin
with."
Lebannen felt his
face turn grim, and turned aside to keep Tosla from seeing it.
"If anybody
gave me a package like that," Tosla said, staring out over the
sea, "I'd open it."
Lebannen could not
restrain a slight movement of impatience. Tosla saw it; he was quick.
He grinned his wry grin and said no more.
The ship's master
had come out on deck, and Lebannen engaged him in talk. "Looks a
bit thick ahead?" he said, and the master nodded: "Thunder
squalls to the south and west there. We'll be in them tonight."
The sea grew
choppier as the afternoon drew on, the benign sunlight took on a
brassy tinge, and gusts of wind blew from one quarter then another.
Tenar had told Lebannen that the princess was afraid of the sea and
of seasickness, and he glanced back once or twice at the aftercabin,
expecting to see no red-veiled form among the ducks in a row. But it
was Tenar and Tehanu who had gone in; the princess was still there,
and Irian was sitting beside her. They were talking earnestly. What
on earth did a dragon woman from Way have to talk about with a harem
woman from Hur-at-Hur? What language had they in common? The question
seemed so much in need of answering to Lebannen that he walked aft.
When he got there
Irian looked up at him and smiled. She had a strong, open face, a
broad smile; she went barefoot by choice, was careless about her
dress, let the wind tangle her hair; altogether she seemed no more
than a handsome, hot-hearted, intelligent, untaught countrywoman,
till you saw her eyes. They were the color of smoky amber, and when
she looked straight at Lebannen, as she was doing now, he could not
meet them. He looked down.
He had made it
clear that there was to be no courtly ceremony on the ship, no bows
and courtesies, nobody was to leap up when he came near; but the
princess had got to her feet. They were, as Tosla had observed,
beautiful feet, not small, but high-arched, strong, and fine. He
looked at them, the two slender feet on the white wood of the deck.
He looked up from them and saw that the princess was doing as she had
done the last time he faced her: parting her veils so that he, though
no one else, could see her face. He was a little staggered by the
stern, almost tragic beauty of the face in that red shadow.
"Is—is
everything all right, princess?" he asked, stammering, a thing
he very seldom did.
She said, "My
friend Tenar said, breathe wind."
"Yes," he
said, rather at random.
"Is there
anything your wizards could do for her, do you think, maybe?"
said Irian, unfolding her long limbs and standing up too. She and the
princess were both tall women. Lebannen was trying to make out what
color the princess's eyes were, since he was able to look at them.
They were blue, he thought, but like blue opals they held other
colors in them, or maybe it was the sunlight coming through the red
of her veils.—"Do for her?"
"She wants
very much not to be seasick. She had a terrible time of it coming
from the Kargish places."
"I will not to
fear," the princess said. She gazed straight at him as if
challenging him to—what?
"Of course,"
he said, "of course. I'll ask Onyx. I'm sure there's something
he can do." He made a sketchy bow to them both and went off
hurriedly to find the wizard.
Onyx and Seppel
conferred and then consulted Alder. A spell against seasickness was
more in the province of sorcerers, menders, healers, than of learned
and powerful wizards. Alder could not do anything himself at present,
of course, but he might remember a charm…? He did not, having
never dreamed of going to sea until his troubles began. Seppel
confessed that he himself always got seasick in small boats or rough
weather. Onyx finally went to the aftercabin and begged the
princess's pardon: he himself had no skill to help her, and nothing
to offer her but—apologetically—a charm or talisman one
of the sailors hearing of her plight—the sailors heard
everything—had pressed upon him to give her.
The princess's
long-fingered hand emerged from the red and gold veils. The wizard
placed in it a queer little black-and-white object: dried seaweed
braided round a bird's breastbone. "A petrel, because they ride
the storm," Onyx said, shamefaced.
The princess bowed
her unseen head and murmured thanks in Kargish. The fetish
disappeared within her veils. She withdrew to the cabin. Onyx,
meeting the king quite nearby, apologised to him. The ship was
pitching energetically now in hard, erratic gusts on a choppy sea,
and he said, "I could, you know, sire, say a word to the winds…"
Lebannen knew well
that there were two schools of thought concerning weatherworking: the
old-fashioned one, that of the Bagmen who ordered the winds to serve
their ships as shepherds order their dogs to run here and there, and
the newfangled notion—a few centuries old at most—of the
Roke School, that the magewind might be raised at real need, but it
was best to let the world's winds blow. He knew that Onyx was a
devout upholder of the way of Roke. "Use your own judgment,
Onyx," he said. "If it seems we're in for a really bad
night… But if it's no more than a few squalls…"
Onyx looked up at
the masthead, where already a wisp or two of fallow fire had
flickered in the cloud-darkened dusk. Thunder rumbled grandly in the
blackness before them, all across the south. Behind them the last of
the daylight fell wan, tremulous across the waves. "Very well,"
he said, rather dismally, and went below to the small and crowded
cabin.
Lebannen stayed out
of that cabin almost entirely, sleeping on deck when he slept at all.
Tonight was not one for sleep for anybody on the Dolphin. It was not
a single squall, but a chain of violent late-summer storms boiling up
out of the southwest, and between the terrific commotion of the
lightning-dazzled sea, the thunder crashes that seemed about to knock
the ship apart, and the crazy storm gusts that kept her pitching and
rolling and taking queer jumps, it was a long night and a loud one.
Onyx consulted
Lebannen once: Should he say a word to the wind? Lebannen looked to
the master, who shrugged. He and his crew were busy enough, but
unconcerned. The ship was in no trouble. As for the womenfolk, they
were reported to be sitting up in their cabin, gambling. Irian and
the princess had come out on deck earlier, but it was hard to stay
afoot at times and they had seen they were in the crew's way, so they
had retired. The report that they were gambling came from the cook's
boy, who had been sent to see if they wanted anything to eat. They
had wanted whatever he could bring.
Lebannen found
himself possessed by the same intense curiosity he had felt in the
afternoon. There was no doubt the lamps were all alight in the stern
cabin, for the glow of them streamed out golden on the foam and race
of the ship's wake. About midnight, he went aft and knocked.
Irian opened the
door. After the dazzle and blackness of the storm the lamplight in
the cabin seemed warm and steady, though the swinging lamps cast
swinging shadows; and he was confusedly aware of colors, the soft,
various colors of the women's clothes, their skin, brown or pale or
gold, their hair, black or grey or tawny, their eyes—the
princess's eyes staring at him, startled, as she snatched up a scarf
or some cloth to hold before her face.
"Oh! We
thought it was the cook's boy!" Irian said with a laugh.
Tehanu looked at
him and said in her shy, comradely way, "Is there trouble?"
He realised that he
was standing in the doorway staring at them like some speechless
messenger of doom.
"No—None
at all—Are you getting on all right? I'm sorry it's been so
rough—"
"We don't hold
you answerable for the weather," Tenar said. "Nobody could
sleep, so the princess and I have been teaching the others Kargish
gambling."
He saw five-sided
ivory dice-sticks scattered over the table, probably Tosla's.
"We've been
betting islands," Irian said. "But Tehanu and I are losing.
The Kargs have already won Ark and Ilien."
The princess had
lowered the scarf; she sat facing Lebannen resolutely, extremely
tense, as a young swordsman might face him before a fencing match. In
the warmth of the cabin they were all bare-armed and barefoot, but
her consciousness of her uncovered face drew his consciousness as a
magnet draws a pin.
"I'm sorry
it's been so rough," he said again, idiotically, and closed the
door. As he turned away he heard them all laughing.
He went to stand by
the steersman. Looking into the gusty, rainy darkness lit by fitful,
distant lightning, he could still see everything in the stern cabin,
the black fall of Tehanu's hair, Tenar's affectionate, teasing smile,
the dice on the table, the princess's round arms, honey-colored like
the lamplight, her throat in the shadow of her hair, though he did
not remember looking at her arms and throat but only at her face, at
her eyes full of defiance, despair. What was the girl afraid of? Did
she think he wanted to hurt her?
A star or two was
shining out high in the south. He went to his crowded cabin, slung a
hammock, for the bunks were full, and slept for a few hours. He woke
before dawn, restless as ever, and went up on deck.
The day came as
bright and calm as if no storm had ever been. Lebannen stood at the
forward rail and saw the first sunlight strike across the water, and
an old song came into his mind:
O my joy! Before
bright Ea was, before Segoy Bade the islands be, The morning
wind blew on the sea. 0 my joy, be free!
It was a fragment
of a ballad or lullaby from his childhood. He could remember no more
of it. The rune was sweet. He sang it softly and let the wind take
the words from his lips.
Tenar emerged from
the cabin and, seeing him, came to him. "Good morning, my dear
lord," she said, and he greeted her fondly, with some memory
that he had been angry at her but not knowing why he had been or how
he could have been.
"Did you Kargs
win Havnor last night?" he asked.
"No, you may
keep Havnor. We went to bed. All the young ones are still there,
lolling. Shall we—what is it? lift Roke today?"
"Raise Roke?
No, not till early tomorrow. But before noon we should be in Thwil
Harbor. If they let us come to the island."
"What do you
mean?"
"Roke defends
itself from unwelcome visitors."
"Oh: Ged told
me about that. He was on a ship trying to sail back there, and they
sent the wind against him, the Roke wind he called it."
"Against him?
"It was a long
time ago." She smiled with pleasure at his incredulity, his
unwillingness that any affront should ever have been offered to Ged.
"When he was a boy who had meddled with the darkness. That's
what he said."
"When he was a
man he still meddled with it."
"He doesn't
now," Tenar said, serene.
"No, it's we
who have to." His face had grown somber. "I wish I knew
what we're meddling with. I am certain that things are drawing to
some great chance or change—as Ogion foretold—as Ged told
Alder. And I am certain that Roke is where we need to be to meet it.
But beyond that, no certainty, nothing. I don't know what it is we
face. When Ged took me into the dark land, we knew our enemy. When I
took the fleet to Sorra, I knew what the evil was I wanted to undo.
But now—Are the dragons our enemies or our allies? What has
gone wrong? What is it we must do or undo? Will the Masters of Roke
be able to tell us? Or will they turn their wind against us?"
"Fearing—?"
"Fearing the
dragon. The one they know. Or the one they don't know…"
Tenar's face was
sober too, but gradually it broke into a smile. "What a ragbag
you are bringing them, to be sure!" she said. "A sorcerer
with nightmares, a wizard from Paln, two dragons, and two Kargs. The
only respectable passengers on this ship are you and Onyx."
Lebannen could not
laugh. "If only he were with us," he said.
Tenar put her hand
on his arm. She started to speak and then did not.
He laid his hand
over hers. They stood silent thus for some time, side by side,
looking out at the dancing sea.
"The princess
has something she wants to tell you before we come to Roke,"
Tenar said. "It's a story from Hur-at-Hur. Off there in their
desert they remember things. I think this goes back before anything I
ever heard except the story of the Woman of Kemay. It has to do with
dragons… It would be kind of you to invite her, so that she
doesn't have to ask."
Aware of the care
and caution with which she spoke, he felt a moment of impatience, a
flick of shame. He watched, far south across the sea, the course of a
galley bound for Kamery or Way, the faint, tiny flash of the lifted
sweeps. He said, "Of course. About noon?"
"Thank you."
About noon, he sent
a young seaman to the stern cabin to request the princess to join the
king on the foredeck. She emerged at once, and the ship being only
about fifty feet long, he could observe her entire progress towards
him: not a long walk, though perhaps for her it was a long one. For
it was not a featureless red cylinder that approached him but a tall
young woman. She wore soft white trousers, a long shirt of dull red,
a gold circlet that held a very thin red veil over her face and head.
The veil fluttered in the sea wind. The young sailor led her round
the various obstacles and up and down the descents and ascents of the
crowded, cumbered, narrow deck. She walked slowly and proudly. She
was barefoot. Every eye in the ship was on her.
She arrived on the
foredeck and stood still. Lebannen bowed. "Your presence honors
us, princess." She performed a deep, straight-backed courtesy
and said, "Thank you."
"You were not
ill last night, I hope?" She put her hand on the charm she wore
on the cord round her neck, a small bone tied with black, showing it
to him. "Kerez akath akatharwa erevi," she said. He knew
the word akath in Kargish meant sorcerer or sorcery.
There were eyes
everywhere, eyes in hatchways, eyes up in the rigging, eyes that were
like augurs, like gimlets.
"Come forward,
if you will. We may see Roke Island soon," he said, though there
was not the remotest chance of seeing a glimmer of Roke till dawn.
With a hand under her elbow though not actually touching her, he
guided her up the steep slant of the deck to the forepeak, where
between a capstan, the slant of the bowsprit, and the port rail was a
little triangle of decking that—when a sailor had scurried away
with the cable he was mending—they had quite to themselves.
They were as visible as ever to the rest of the ship, but they could
turn their backs on it: as much privacy as royalty can hope for.
When they had
gained this tiny haven, the princess turned to him and pushed back
the veil from her face. He had intended to ask what he could do for
her, but the question seemed both inadequate and irrelevant. He said
nothing.
She said, "Lord
King. In Hur-at-Hur I am feyagat. In Roke Island I am to be king's
daughter of Kargad. To be this, I am not feyagat. I am bare face. If
it please you."
After a moment he
said, "Yes. Yes, princess. This is—this is well done."
"It please
you?"
"Very much.
Yes. I thank you, princess."
"Barrezu,"
she said, a regal acceptance of his thanks. Her dignity abashed him.
Her face had been flaming red when she first put back the veil; there
was no color in it now. But she stood straight and still, and
gathered up her forces for another speech.
"Too,"
she said. "Also. My friend Tenar."
"Our friend
Tenar," he said with a smile.
"Our friend
Tenar. She says I am to tell King Lebannen of the Vedurnan."
He repeated the
word.
"Long ago long
ago—Karg people, sorcery people, dragon people, hah? Yes?—All
people one, all speak one—one—Oh! Wuluah mekrevt!"
"One
language?"
"Hah! Yes! One
language!" In her passionate attempt to speak Hardic, to tell
him what she wanted to tell him, she was losing her
self-consciousness; her face and eyes shone. "But then, dragon
people say: Let go, let go all things. Fly!—But we people, we
say: No, keep. Keep all things. Dwell!—So we go apart, hah?
dragon people and we people? So they make the Vedurnan. These to let
go—these to keep. Yes? But to keep all things, we must to let
go that language. That dragon people language."
"The Old
Speech?"
"Yes! So we
people, we let go that Old Speech language, and keep all things. And
dragon people let go all things, but keep that, keep that language.
Hah? Seyneha? This is the Vedurnan." Her beautiful, large, long
hands gestured eloquently and she watched his face with eager hope of
understanding. "We go east, east, east. Dragon people go west,
west. We dwell, they fly. Some dragon come east with us, but not keep
the language, forget, and forget to fly. Like Karg people. Karg
people speak Karg language, not dragon language. All keep the
Vedurnan, east, west. Seyneha? But in—"
At a loss, she
brought her hands together from her "east" and "west,"
and Lebannen said, "In the middle?"
"Hah, yes! In
the middle!" She laughed with the pleasure of getting the word.
"In the middle—you! Sorcery people! Hah? You, middle
people, speak Hardic language but too, also, keep to speak Old Speech
language. You learn it. Like I learn Hardic, hah? Learn to speak.
Then, then—this is the bad. The bad thing. Then you say, in
that sorcery language, in that Old Speech language, you say: We will
not to die. And it is so. And the Vedurnan is broken." Her eyes
were like blue fire. After a moment she asked, "Seyneha?"
"I'm not sure
I understand."
"You keep
life. You keep. Too long. You never to let go. But to die—"
She threw her hands out in a great opening gesture as if she threw
something away, into the air, across
The water.
He shook his head
regretfully.
"Ah," she
said. She thought a minute, but no words came. Defeated, she moved
her hands palms down in a graceful pantomime of relinquishment. "I
must to learn more words," she said.
"Princess, the
Master Patterner of Roke, the Master of the Grove—" He
watched her for comprehension, and began again. "On Roke Island,
there is a man, a great mage, who is a Karg. You can tell him what
you have told me—in your own language."
She listened
intently and nodded. She said, "The friend of Irian. I will in
my heart to talk to this man." Her face was bright with the
thought.
That touched
Lebannen. He said, "I'm sorry you have been lonely here,
princess."
She looked at him,
alert and luminous, but did not reply.
"I hope, as
time goes on—as you learn the language—"
"I learn
quick," she said. He did not know if it was a statement or a
prediction.
They were looking
straight at each other.
She resumed her
stately attitude and spoke formally, as she had at the beginning: "I
thank you to listen, Lord King." She dipped her head and
shielded her eyes in a formal sign of respect and made the deep
knee-bend courtesy again, speaking some formula in Kargish.
"Please,"
he said, "tell me what you said."
She paused,
hesitated, thought, and replied, "Your—your, ah—small
kings?—sons! Sons, your sons, let them to be dragons and kings
of dragons. Hah?" She smiled radiantly, let the veil fall over
her face, backed away four steps, turned and departed, lithe and
sure-footed down the length of the ship. Lebannen stood as if last
night's lightning had struck him at last.
The last night of
the sea voyage was calm, warm, starless. Dolphin moved with a long,
easy rocking over the smooth swells southward. It was easy to sleep,
and the people slept, and sleeping dreamed.
Alder dreamed of a
little animal that came in the dark and touched his hand. He could
not see what it was, and when he reached out to it, it was gone,
lost. Again he felt the small, velvet muzzle touch his hand. He half
roused, and the dream slipped from him, but the piercing ache of loss
was in his heart.
In the bunk below
him, Seppel dreamed that he was in his own house in Ferao on Paln,
reading an old lore-book from the Dark Time, content with his work;
but he was interrupted. Someone wanted to see him. "It will only
take a minute," he told himself, and went to speak to the
caller. It was a woman; her hair was dark with a glint of red in it,
her face was beautiful and full of trouble. "You must send him
to me," she said. "You will send him to me, won't you?"
He thought: I don't know who she means, but I must pretend I do, and
he said, "That will not be easy, you know." At that the
woman drew her hand back and he saw that she held a stone, a heavy
stone. Startled, he thought she meant to throw it at him or strike
him down with it, and recoiling from her, he woke in the darkness of
the cabin. He lay listening to the breathing of the other sleepers
and the whisper of the sea along the ship's side.
In his bunk on the
other side of the small cabin, Onyx lay on his back gazing into the
dark; he thought his eyes were open, he thought he was awake, but he
thought that many small, thin cords had been tied around his arms and
legs and hands and head, and that all these cords ran out into the
darkness, over land and sea, over the curve of the world: and the
cords were drawing him, tugging him, so that he and the ship he was
in and all its passengers were being pulled gently, gently to the
place where the sea dried up, where the ship would go aground
silently on blind sands. But he could not speak or do anything
because the cords tied shut his jaws, his eyelids.
Lebannen had come
down to the cabin to sleep for a while, wanting to be fresh at dawn
when they might raise Roke Island. He slept quickly and deeply, and
his dreams fleeted and changed: a high green hill above the sea—a
woman who smiled and, lifting her hand, showed him she could make the
sun rise—a claimant in his court of justice in Havnor from whom
he learned to his horror and shame that half the people of the
kingdom were starving to death in locked rooms beneath houses—a
child who cried out to him, "Come to me!" but he could not
find the child—As he slept, his right hand held the rock in the
little amulet bag at his throat, clenched it tight.
In the deck cabin
above these dreamers, the women dreamed. Seserakh walked up into the
mountains, the beautiful dear desert mountains of her home. But she
was walking on the forbidden way, the dragon path. Human feet must
not walk that path, must not even cross it. The dust of it was smooth
and warm under her bare soles, and though she knew she must not walk
on it, she walked on, until she looked up and saw that the mountains
were not those she knew, but were black, jagged precipices which she
could never climb. Yet she must climb them.
Irian flew joyous
on the storm wind, but the storm sent loops of lightning up over her
wings, drawing her down and down towards the clouds, and as she was
pulled nearer and nearer she saw they were not clouds but black
rocks, a black and jagged mountain range. Her wings were tied to her
sides by cords of lightning, and she fell.
Tehanu crawled
through a tunnel deep underground. There was not enough air to
breathe and the tunnel grew narrower as she crawled. She could not
turn back. But the glimmering roots of trees, growing down through
the dirt into the tunnel, gave her handholds sometimes by which she
could pull herself on into the dark.
Tenar climbed up
the steps of the Throne of the Nameless Ones in the sacred Place of
Atuan. She was very small and the steps were very high, so that she
could climb them only laboriously. But when she reached the fourth
step she did not pause and turn around, as the priestesses had told
her she must do. She went on. She climbed the next step, and the
next, and the next, in dust so thick it had obliterated the steps and
she must feel for the levels where no foot had ever trodden. She went
hastily, because behind the empty throne Ged had left something or
lost something, something of great importance to myriads of people,
and she had to find it. Only she did not know what it was. "A
stone, a stone," she told herself. But behind the throne, when
she crawled there at last, was only dust, owls' droppings and dust.
In the alcove of
the Old Mage's house on the Overfell of Gont, Ged dreamed that he was
Archmage. He was talking with his friend Thorion as they walked the
corridor of runes towards the meeting room of the Masters of the
School. "I had no power at all," he told Thorion earnestly,
"for years and years." The Summoner smiled and said, "That
was only a dream, you know." But Ged was troubled by the long
black wings that trailed behind him through the corridor; he shrugged
his shoulders, trying to lift the wings, but they dragged on the
floor like empty sacks. "Do you have wings?" he asked
Thorion, who said, "Oh, yes," complacently, showing him how
his wings were tied tight against his back and legs by many small,
thin cords. "I am well yoked," he said.
Among the trees of
the Immanent Grove on Roke Island, Azver the Patterner slept as he
often did in summer in an open glade near the eastern edge of the
wood, where he could look up and see the stars through the leaves.
There his sleep was light, transparent, his mind moving from thought
to dream and back, guided by the movements of the stars and leaves as
they changed places in their dance. But tonight there were no stars,
and the leaves hung still. He looked up into the lightless sky and
saw through the clouds. In the high black sky were stars: small,
bright, and still. They did not move. He knew there would be no
sunrise.—He sat up then, awake, gazing into the faint, soft
light that always hung in the aisles of the trees. His heart beat
slow and hard.
In the Great House
the young men, sleeping, turned and cried out, dreaming that they
must go fight an army on a plain of dust, but the warriors they must
fight were old men, old women, weak, sick people, weeping children.
The Masters of Roke
dreamed that a ship was sailing towards them over the sea, heavy
laden, low in the water. One dreamed that the freight of the ship was
black rocks. Another dreamed she carried burning fire. Another
dreamed that her cargo was dreams.
The seven masters
who slept in the Great House woke, one and then another, in their
stone sleeping cells, made a little werelight, and got up. They found
the Doorkeeper already afoot and waiting at the door. "The king
will come," he said with a smile, "at daybreak."
"Roke knoll,"
Tosla said, gazing forward at the far, faint, unmoving wave in the
southwest above the twilit waves. Lebannen, standing beside him, said
nothing. The cloud cover had dispersed, and the sky arched its pure
uncolored dome over the great circle of the waters.
The ship's master
joined them. "A fair dawn," he said, whispering in the
silence.
The east brightened
slowly to yellow. Lebannen glanced aft. Two of the women were afoot,
standing at the rail outside their cabin; tall women, barefoot,
silent, gazing east.
The top of the
round green hill caught the sunlight first. It was broad daylight
when they sailed in between the headlands of Thwil Bay. Everyone
aboard was on deck, watching. But still they spoke little and softly.
The wind died down
within the harbor. It was so still the water reflected the little
town that rose above the bay and the walls of the Great House that
rose above the town. The ship glided on slower, still slower.
Lebannen glanced at
the ship's master and at Onyx. The master nodded. The wizard moved
his hands up and outward slowly in a spell and murmured a word.
The ship glided on
softly, not slowing until she came alongside the longest of the
docks. Then the master spoke, and the great sail was furled while men
aboard tossed the lines to men on the dock, shouting, and the silence
was broken.
There were people
on the quay to welcome them, townsfolk gathering, and a group of
young men from the School, among them a big, deep-chested,
dark-skinned man who held a heavy staff that matched his own height.
"Welcome to Roke, King of the Western Lands," he said,
coming forward as the gangplank was run out and made fast. "And
welcome to all your company."
The young men with
him and all the townsfolk called out hail and greeting to the king,
and Lebannen answered them merrily as he came down the gangplank. He
greeted the Master Summoner, and they spoke a while.
Those watching
could see that despite his words of welcome, the Master Summoner's
frowning gaze went to the ship again and again, to the women who
stood at the rail, and that his answers did not satisfy the king.
When Lebannen left
him and came back up into the ship, Irian came forward to meet him.
"Lord King," she said, "you may tell the masters that
I don't want to enter their house—this time. I wouldn't enter
it if they asked me."
Lebannen's face was
extremely stern. "It is the Master Patterner who asks you to
come to him, to the Grove," he said. At that Irian laughed,
radiant. "I knew he would," she said. "And Tehanu will
come with me."
"And my
mother," Tehanu whispered. He looked at Tenar; she nodded.
"So be it,"
he said. "And the rest of us will be lodged in the Great House,
unless any of us prefer another place."
"By your
leave, my lord," Seppel said, "I too will ask the
hospitality of the Master Patterner."
"Seppel,
that's not necessary," Onyx said harshly. "Come with me to
my house."
The Pelnish wizard
made a little placating gesture. "No reflection on your friends,
my friend," he said. "But I have longed all my life to walk
in the Immanent Grove. And I would be easier there."
"It may be
that the doors of the Great House are shut to me, as they were
before," Alder said, hesitant; and now Onyx's sallow face was
red with shame.
The princess's
veiled head had turned from face to face as she eagerly listened,
trying to understand what was said. Now she spoke: "Please, my
Lord King, I will to be with my friend Tenar? My friend Tehanu? And
Irian? And to speak to that Karg?"
Lebannen looked at
them all, glanced back to the Master Summoner standing massively at
the foot of the gangplank, and laughed. He spoke from the rail, in
his clear, affable voice: "My people have been cooped up in
ship's cabins, Summoner, and it would seem they long for grass
underfoot and leaves above their heads. If we all beg the Patterner
to take us in, and he agrees, will you forgive our seeming slight to
the hospitality of the Great House for a time at least?"
After a pause the
Summoner bowed stiffly.
A short, stocky man
had come up beside him on the dock, and was looking up smiling at
Lebannen. He lifted his staff of silvery wood.
"Sire,"
he said, "I took you about the Great House once, a long time
ago, and told you lies about everything."
"Gamble!"
said Lebannen. They met midway on the gangplank and embraced, and
talking, went down onto the dock.
Onyx was the first
to follow; he greeted the Summoner gravely and with ceremony, then
turned to the man called Gamble. "Are you Windkey now?" he
demanded, and when Gamble laughed and said yes, he also embraced him,
saying, "A master well made!" Taking Gamble a little aside,
he talked with him, eager and frowning.
Lebannen looked up
to the ship to signal the others to come ashore, and as they came
down one by one he introduced them to the two Masters of Roke, Brand
the Summoner and Gamble the Windkey.
On most islands of
the Archipelago people did not touch palms in greeting as was the way
of Enlad, but only bowed the head or held both palms open before the
heart, as if in offering. When Irian and the Summoner met, neither
bowed or made any gesture. They stood stiff with their hands at their
sides.
The princess made
her deep, straight-backed courtesy.
Tenar made the
conventional gesture, and the Summoner returned it.
"The Woman of
Gont, the daughter of the Archmage, Tehanu," Lebannen said.
Tehanu dipped her head and made the conventional gesture. But the
Master Summoner stared at her, gasped, and stepped back as if he had
been struck.
"Mistress
Tehanu," said Gamble quickly, coming forward between her and the
Summoner, "we welcome you to Roke—for your father's sake,
and your mother's, and your own. I hope your voyage was a pleasant
one?"
She looked at him
in confusion, and ducked, hiding her face, rather than bowed; but she
managed to whisper some kind of answer.
Lebannen, his face
a bronze mask of calm composure, said, "Yes, it was a good
voyage, Gamble, though the end of it is still in doubt. Shall we walk
up through the town, now, Tenar—Tehanu—Princess—Orm
Irian?" He looked at each as he spoke, saying the last name with
particular clarity.
He set off with
Tenar, and the others followed. As Seserakh came down the gangplank,
she resolutely swept back the red veils from her face.
Gamble walked with
Onyx, Alder with Seppel. Tosla stayed with the ship. The last to
leave the quay was Brand the Summoner, walking alone and heavily.
Tenar had asked ged
about the Grove more than once, liking to hear him describe it. "It
seems like any grove of trees, when you see it first. Not very large.
The fields come right up to it on the north and east, and there are
hills to the south and usually to the west… It looks like
nothing much. But it draws your eye. And sometimes, from up on Roke
Knoll, you can see that it's a forest, going on and on. You try to
make out where it ends, but you can't. It goes off into the west…
And when you walk in it, it seems ordinary again, though the trees
are mostly a kind that grows only there. Tall, with brown trunks,
something like an oak, something like a chestnut."
"What are they
called?"
Ged laughed.
"Arhada, in the Old Speech. Trees… The trees of the
Grove, in Hardic… Their leaves don't all turn in autumn, but
some at every season, so the foliage is always green with a gold
light in it. Even on a dark day those trees seem to hold some
sunlight. And in the night, it's never quite dark under them. There's
a kind of glimmer in the leaves, like moonlight or starlight. Willows
grow there, and oak, and fir, other kinds; but as you go deeper in,
it's more and more only the trees of the Grove. And the roots of
those go down deeper than the island. Some are huge trees, some
slender, but you don't see many fallen, nor many saplings. They live
a long, long time." His voice had grown soft, dreamy. "You
can walk and walk in their shadow, in their light, and never come to
the end of them."
"But is Roke
so large an island?"
He looked at her
peacefully, smiling. "The forests here on Gont Mountain are that
forest," he said. "All forests are."
And now she saw the
Grove. Following Lebannen, they had come up through the devious
streets of Thwil Town, gathering a flock of townsfolk and children
come out to see and greet their king. These cheerful followers
dropped away little by little as the travelers left the town on a
lane between hedges and farms, which petered out into a footpath past
the high, round hill, Roke Knoll.
Ged had told her of
the Knoll, too. There, he said, all magic is strong; there all things
take their true nature. "There," he said, "our
wizardry and the Old Powers of the Earth meet, and are one."
The wind blew in
the high, half-dry grass on the hill. A donkey colt galloped off
stiff-legged across a stubble field, flicking and flirting its tail.
Cattle walked in slow procession along a fence that crossed a little
stream. And there were trees ahead, dark trees, shadowy.
They followed
Lebannen through a stile and over a footbridge to a sunlit meadow at
the edge of the wood. A small, decrepit house stood near the stream.
Irian broke from their group, ran across the grass to the house, and
patted the door frame as one would pat and greet a beloved horse or
dog after long absence. "Dear house!" she said. And turning
to the others, smiling, "I lived here," she said, "when
I was Dragonfly."
She looked round,
searching the eaves of the wood, and then ran forward again. "Azver!"
she called.
A man had come out
of the shadow of the trees into the sunlight. His hair shone in it
like silver gilt. He stood still as Irian ran to him. He lifted his
hands to her, and she caught them in hers. "I won't burn you, I
won't burn you this time," she was saying, laughing and crying,
though without tears. "I'm keeping my fires out!"
They drew each
other close and stood face to face, and he said to her, "Daughter
of Kalessin, welcome home."
"My sister is
with me, Azver," she said.
He turned his
face—a light-skinned, hard, Kargish face, Tenar saw—and
looked straight at Tehanu. He came to her. He dropped on both his
knees before her. "Hama Gondun!" he said, and again,
"Daughter of Kalessin."
Tehanu stood
motionless for a moment. Slowly she put out her hand to him—her
right hand, the burnt hand, the claw. He took it, bowed his head, and
kissed it.
"My honor is
that I was your prophet, Woman of Gont," he said, with a kind of
exulting tenderness.
Then, rising, he
turned at last to Lebannen, made his bow, and said, "My king, be
welcome."
"It's a joy to
me to see you again, Patterner! But I bring a crowd into your
solitude."
"My solitude
is crowded already," said the Patterner. "A few live souls
might keep the balance."
His eyes, pale
grey-blue-green, glanced round among them. He suddenly smiled, a
smile of great warmth, surprising on his hard face. "But here
are women of my own people," he said in Kargish, and came to
Tenar and Seserakh, who stood side by side.
"I am Tenar of
Atuan—of Gont," she said. "With me is the High
Princess of the Kargad Lands."
He made a proper
bow. Seserakh made her stiff courtesy, but her words poured out,
tumultuous, in Kargish—"Oh, Lord Priest, I'm glad you're
here! If it weren't for my friend Tenar I would have gone mad,
thinking nobody was left in the world that could talk like a human
being except the idiot women they sent with me from Awabath—but
I am learning to speak as they do—and I am learning courage,
Tenar is my friend and teacher—But last night I broke taboo! I
broke taboo! Oh, Lord Priest, please tell me what I must do to atone!
I walked on the Dragons' Way!"
"But you were
aboard the ship, princess," said Tenar ("I dreamed,"
Seserakh said, impatient), "and the Lord Patterner is not a
priest but an—a sorcerer—"
"Princess,"
said Azver the Patterner, "I think we're all walking on the
Dragons' Way. And all taboos may well be shaken or broken. Not only
in dream. We'll speak of this later, under the trees. Have no fear.
But let me greet my friends, if you will?"
Seserakh nodded
regally, and he turned away to greet Alder and Onyx.
The princess
watched him. "He is a warrior," she said to Tenar in
Kargish, with satisfaction. "Not a priest. Priests have no
friends."
They all moved on
slowly and came under the shadow of the trees.
Tenar looked up
into the arcades and groves of branches, the layers and galleries of
leaves. She saw oaks and a big hemmen tree, but most were the trees
of the Grove. Their oval leaves moved easily in the air, like the
leaves of aspen and poplar; some had yellowed, and there was a dapple
of gold and brown on the ground at their roots, but the foliage in
the morning light was the green of summer, full of shadows and deep
light.
The Patterner led
them along a path among the trees. As they went, Tenar thought again
about Ged, remembering his voice as he told her about this place. She
felt nearer him than she had been since she and Tehanu left him in
the dooryard of their house in the early summer and walked down to
Gont Port to take the king's ship to Havnor. She knew Ged had lived
here with the Patterner of long ago, and had walked here with Azver.
She knew the Grove was to him the central and sacred place, the heart
of peace. She felt that she might look up and see him at the end of
one of the long, sun-dappled glades. And that notion eased her heart.
For her dream of
the night before had troubled her, and when Seserakh burst out with
her dream of breaking taboo, Tenar had been deeply startled. She too
had broken taboo in her dream, transgressed. She had climbed the last
three stairs of the Empty Throne, the forbidden steps. The Place of
the Tombs on Atuan was long ago and far away, and maybe the
earthquake had left no throne or steps there at all in the temple
where her name had been taken from her: but the Old Powers of the
Earth were there, and they were here. They were not changed or moved.
They were the earthquake, and the earth. Their justice was not man's
justice. As she had walked by the round hill, Roke Knoll, she knew
she walked where all the powers met.
She had defied
them, long ago, breaking free of the Tombs, stealing the treasure,
fleeing here to the West. But they were here. Under her feet. In the
roots of these trees, in the roots of the hill.
So, here in the
center where earth's powers met, the human powers had also met
together: a king, a princess, the masters of wizardry. And the
dragons.
And a
priestess-thief turned farmwife, and a village sorcerer with a broken
heart…
She looked round at
Alder. He was walking beside Tehanu. They were talking quietly.
Tehanu talked more readily with him than with anyone, even Irian, and
looked at ease when she was with him. It cheered Tenar to see them,
and she walked on under the great trees, letting her awareness slip
into a half trance of green light and moving leaves. She was sorry
when, after only a short way, the Patterner halted. She felt she
could walk forever in the Grove.
They gathered in a
grassy glade, open to the sky in the center where the branches did
not reach to meet. A tributary of the Thwilburn ran across one side
of it, willow and Alder growing along its course. Not far from the
stream was a low, lumpy house built of stone and sod, with a taller
lean-to against its wall made of withies and mats of woven reed. "My
winter palace, my summer palace," Azver said.
Both Onyx and
Lebannen stared at these small structures in surprise, and Irian
said, ''I never knew you had a house at all!"
"I didn't,"
said the Patterner. "But bones get old."
With a little
fetching and carrying from the ship, the house was soon furnished
with bedding for the women, and the lean-to for the men. Boys ran
back and forth to the eaves of the Grove with plentiful provisions
from the kitchens of the Great House. And late in the afternoon, the
Masters of Roke came at the invitation of the Patterner to meet with
the king's party.
"Is this where
they gather to choose the new Archmage?" Tenar asked Onyx, for
Ged had told her of that secret glade.
Onyx shook his
head. "I think not," he said. "The king would know,
for he was there when they last met. But maybe only the Patterner
could tell you. Because things change in this wood, you know. 'It is
not always where it is.' Nor are the ways through it ever quite the
same, I think."
"It should be
frightening," she said, "but I can't seem to be afraid."
Onyx smiled. "So
it is, here," he said.
She watched the
masters come into the glade, led by the big, bearlike Summoner and
Gamble the young weather-master. Onyx told her who the others were:
the Changer, the Chanter, the Herbal, the Hand: all grey-haired, the
Changer frail with age, using his wizard's staff as a walking stick.
The Doorkeeper, smooth-faced and almond-eyed, seemed neither young
nor old. The Namer, who came last, looked forty or so. His face was
calm and closed. He presented himself to the king, naming himself
Kurremkarmerruk.
At that Irian burst
out, indignant, "But you are not!"
He looked at her
and said evenly, "It is the Namer's name.
"Then my
Kurremkarmerruk is dead?"
He nodded.
"Oh," she
cried, "that's hard news to bear! He was my friend, when I had
few friends here!" She turned away and would not look at the
Namer, angry and tearless in her grief. She had greeted the Master
Herbal with affection, and the Doorkeeper, but she did not speak to
the others.
Tenar saw that they
watched Irian under their grey brows with uneasy looks.
From her they
looked at Tehanu; and looked away again; and glanced back, sidelong.
And Tenar began to wonder what they saw when they looked at Tehanu
and Irian. For these were men who saw with wizard's eyes.
So she bade herself
forgive the Summoner for his uncouth and unconcealed horror when he
first saw Tehanu. Maybe it had not been horror. Maybe it had been
awe.
When they were all
made known to one another and were seated in a circle, with cushions
and stump seats for those who needed them, the grass for carpet, and
sky and leaves for ceiling, the Patterner said in his voice that
still had some Kargish accent in it, "If it please him, my
fellow masters, we will hear the king."
Lebannen stood up.
As he spoke, Tenar watched him with irrepressible pride. He was so
beautiful, so wise in his youth! She did not follow all his words at
first, only the sense and passion of them.
He told the
masters, briefly and clearly, all the matter that had brought him to
Roke: the dragons and the dreams.
He ended, "It
seemed to us that night by night all these things draw together,
always more certainly, to some event, some end. It seemed to us that
here, on this ground, with your knowledge and power aiding us, we
might foresee and meet that event, not letting it overwhelm our
understanding. The wisest of our mages have foretold: a great change
is upon us. We must join together to learn what that change is, its
causes, its course, and how we may hope to turn it from conflict and
ruin to harmony and peace, in whose sign I rule."
Brand the Summoner
stood to answer him. After some stately politenesses, with a special
welcome to the High Princess, he said, "That the dreams of men,
and more than their dreams, forewarn us of dire changes, all the
masters and wizards of Roke agree. That there is a disturbance of the
deepset boundaries between death and life—transgressions of
those boundaries, and the threat of worse—we confirm. But that
these disturbances can be understood or controlled by any but the
masters of the art magic, we doubt. And very deeply do we doubt that
dragons, whose lives and death are wholly different from that of man,
can ever be trusted to submit their wild wrath and jealousy to serve
human good."
"Summoner,"
Lebannen said, before Irian could speak, "Orm Embar died for me
on Selidor. Kalessin bore me to my throne.—Here in this circle
are three peoples: the Kargish, the Hardic, and the People of the
West."
"They were all
one people, once," said the Namer in his level, toneless voice.
"But they are
not now," said the Summoner, each word heavy and separate. "Do
not misunderstand me because I speak hard truth, my Lord King! I
honor the truce you have sworn with the dragons. When the danger we
are in is past, Roke will aid Havnor in seeking lasting peace with
them. But the dragons have nothing to do with this crisis that is
upon us. Nor have the eastern peoples, who foreswore their immortal
souls when they forgot the Language of the Making."
"Es eyemra,"
said a soft, hissing voice: Tehanu, standing.
The Summoner stared
at her.
"Our
language," she repeated in Hardic, staring back at him.
Irian laughed. "Es
eyemra," she said.
"You are not
immortal," Tenar said to the Summoner. She had had no intention
of speaking. She did not stand up. The words broke from her like fire
from struck rock. " We are! We die to rejoin the undying world.
It was you who foreswore immortality."
Then they were all
still. The Patterner had made a small movement of his hands, a gentle
movement.
His face was
preoccupied, untroubled, as he studied a design of a few twigs and
leaves he had made on the grass where he sat, just in front of his
crossed legs. He looked up, looked round at them all. "I think
we will have to go there soon," he said.
After another
silence, Lebannen asked, "Go where, my lord?"
"Into the
dark," said the Patterner.
As Alder sat
listening to them speak, slowly the voices grew faint, fading, and
the warm late sunlight of late summer dimmed into darkness. Nothing
was left but the trees: tall blind presences between the blind earth
and the sky. The oldest living children of the earth. 0 Segoy, he
said in his heart: made and maker, let me come to you.
The darkness went
on and on, past the trees, past everything.
Against that
emptiness he saw the hill, the high hill that had been on their right
as they walked up out of the town. He saw the dust of the road, the
stones of the path, that led past that hill.
He turned now aside
from the path, leaving the others, and walked up the slope.
The grasses were
tall. The spent flower cases of spark-weed nodded among them. He came
on a narrow path and followed it up the steep hillside. Now I am
myself, he said in his heart. Segoy, the world is beautiful. Let me
come through it to you.
I can do again what
I was meant to do, he thought as he walked. I can mend what was
broken. I can rejoin.
He reached the top
of the hill. Standing there in the sun and wind among the nodding
grasses he saw on his right the fields, the roofs of the little town
and the big house, the bright bay and the sea beyond it. If he turned
he would see behind him in the west the trees of the endless forest,
fading on and on into blue distances. Before him the hill slope was
dim and grey, going down to the wall of stones and the darkness
beyond the wall, and the crowding, calling shadows at the wall. I
will come, he said to them. I will come!
Warmth fell across
his shoulders and his hands. Wind stirred in the leaves above his
head. Voices spoke, speaking, not calling, not crying out his name.
The Patterner's eyes were watching him across the circle of grass.
The Summoner too was watching him. He looked down, bewildered. He
tried to listen. He gathered his mind and listened.
The king was
speaking, using all his skill and strength to hold these fierce,
willful men and women to one purpose. "Let me try to tell you,
Masters of Roke, what I learned from the High Princess as we sailed
here. Princess, may I speak for you?"
Unveiled, she gazed
across the circle at him, and bowed grave permission.
"This is her
tale, then: long ago, the human and the dragon peoples were one kind,
speaking one language. But they sought different things, and so they
agreed to part—to go different ways. That agreement was called
the Vedurnan."
Onyx's head went
up, and Seppel's bright dark eyes widened. "Verw nadan," he
whispered.
"The human
beings went east, the dragons west. The humans gave up their
knowledge of the Language of the Making, and in exchange received all
skill and craft of hand, and ownership of all that hands can make.
The dragons let go all such things. But they kept the Old Speech."
"And their
wings," said Irian.
"And their
wings," Lebannen said. He had caught Azver's eye. "Patterner,
perhaps you can continue the story better than I?"
"The villagers
of Gont and Hur-at-Hur remember what the wise men of Roke and the
priests of Karego forget," Azver said. "Yes, as a child I
was told this tale, I think, or something like it. But the dragons
had been forgotten in it. It told how the Dark Folk of the
Archipelago broke their oath. We had all promised to forgo sorcery
and the language of sorcery, speaking only our common tongue. We
would name no names, and make no spells. We would trust to Segoy, to
the powers of the Earth our mother, mother of the Warrior Gods. But
the Dark Folk broke the covenant. They caught the Language of the
Making in their craft, writing it in runes. They kept it, taught it,
used it. They made spells with it, with the skill of their hands,
with false tongues speaking the true words. So the Kargish people can
never trust them. So says the tale."
Irian spoke: "Men
fear death as dragons do not. Men want to own life, possess it, as if
it were a jewel in a box. Those ancient mages craved everlasting
life. They learned to use true names to keep men from dying. But
those who cannot die can never be reborn."
"The name and
the dragon are one," said Kurremkarmerruk the Namer. "We
men lost our names at the verwnadan, but we learned how to regain
them. Name is self. Why should death change that?"
He looked at the
Summoner; but Brand sat heavy and grim, listening, not speaking.
"Say more of
this, Namer, if you will," the king said.
"I say what I
have half learned, half guessed, not from village tales but from the
most ancient records in the Isolate Tower. A thousand years before
the first kings of Enlad, there were men in Ea and Solea, the first
and greatest of the mages, the Rune Makers. It was they who learned
to write the Language of the Making. They made the runes, which the
dragons never learned. They taught us to give each soul its true
name: which is its truth, its self. And with their power they granted
to those who bear their true name life beyond the body's death."
"Life
immortal," Seppel's soft voice took the word. He spoke smiling a
little. "In a great land of rivers and mountains and beautiful
cities, where there is no suffering or pain, and where the self
endures, unchanged, unchanging, forever… That is the dream of
the ancient Lore of Paln."
"Where,"
the Summoner said, "where is that land?"
"On the other
wind," said Irian. "The west beyond the west." She
looked round at them all, scornful, irate. "Do you think we
dragons fly only on the winds of this world? Do you think our
freedom, for which we gave up all possessions, is no greater than
that of the mindless seagulls? That our realm is a few rocks at the
edge of your rich islands? You own the earth, you own the sea. But we
are the fire of sunlight, we fly the wind! You wanted land to own.
You wanted things to make and keep. And you have that. That was the
division, the verw nadan. But you were not content with your share.
You wanted not only your cares, but our freedom. You wanted the wind!
And by the spells and wizardries of those oath-breakers, you stole
half our realm from us, walled it away from life and light, so that
you could live there forever. Thieves, traitors!"
"Sister,"
Tehanu said. "These are not the men who stole from us. They are
those who pay the price."
A silence followed
her harsh, whispering voice. "What was the price?" said the
Namer. Tehanu looked at Irian. Irian hesitated, and then said in a
much subdued voice, "Greed puts out the sun. These are
Kalessin's words."
Azver the Patterner
spoke. As he spoke, he looked into the aisles of the trees across the
clearing, as if following the slight movements of the leaves. "The
ancients saw that the dragons' realm was not of the body only. That
they could fly… outside of time, it may be… And envying
that freedom, they followed the dragons' way into the west beyond the
west. There they claimed part of that realm as their own. A timeless
realm, where the self might be forever. But not in the body, as the
dragons were. Only in spirit could men be there… So they made
a wall which no living body could cross, neither man nor dragon. For
they feared the anger of the dragons. And their arts of naming laid a
great net of spells upon all the western lands, so that when the
people of the islands die, they would come to the west beyond the
west and live there in the spirit forever.
"But as the
wall was built and the spell laid, the wind ceased to blow, within
the wall. The sea withdrew. The springs ceased to run. The mountains
of sunrise became the mountains of the night. Those that died came to
a dark land, a dry land."
"I have walked
in that land," Lebannen said, low and unwillingly. "I do
not fear death, but I fear it."
There was a silence
among them.
"Cob, and
Thorion," the Summoner said in his rough, reluctant voice, "they
tried to break down that wall. To bring the dead back into life."
"Not into
life, master," Seppel said. "Still, like the Rune Makers,
they sought the bodiless, immortal self."
"Yet their
spells disturbed that place," the Summoner said, brooding. "So
the dragons began to remember the ancient wrong… And so the
souls of the dead come reaching now across the wall, yearning back to
life."
Alder stood up. He
said, "It is not life they yearn for. It is death. To be one
with the earth again. To rejoin it."
They all looked at
him, but he hardly knew it; his awareness was half with them, half in
the dry land. The grass beneath his feet was green and sunlit, was
dead and dim. The leaves of the trees trembled above him and the low
stone wall lay only a little distance from him, down the dark hill.
Of them all he saw only Tehanu; he could not see her clearly, but he
knew her, standing between him and the wall. He spoke to her. "They
built it, but they cannot unbuild it," he said. "Will you
help me, Tehanu?"
"I will,
Hara," she said.
A shadow rushed
between them, a great dark bulky strength, hiding her, seizing him,
holding him; he struggled, gasped for breath, could not draw breath,
saw red fire in the darkness, and saw nothing more.
They met in the
starlight at the edge of the glade, the king of the western lands and
the Master of Roke, the two powers of Earthsea.
"Will he
live?" the Summoner asked, and Lebannen answered, "The
healer says he is in no danger now."
"I did wrong,"
said the Summoner. "I am sorry for it."
"Why did you
summon him back?" the king asked, not reproving but wanting an
answer.
After a long time
the Summoner said, grimly, "Because I had the power to do it."
They paced along in
silence down an open path among the great trees. It was very dark to
either hand, but the starlight shone grey where they walked.
"I was wrong.
But it is not right to want to die," the Summoner said. The burr
of the East Reach was in his voice. He spoke low, almost pleadingly.
"For the very old, the very ill, it may be. But life is given
us. Surely it's wrong not to hold and treasure that great gift!"
"Death also is
given us," said the king.
Alder lay on a
pallet on the grass. He should lie out under the stars, the Patterner
had said, and the old Master Herbal had agreed to that. He lay
asleep, and Tehanu sat still beside him.
Tenar sat in the
doorway of the low stone house and watched her. The great stars of
late summer shone above the clearing: highest of them the star called
Tehanu, the Swan's Heart, the linchpin of the sky.
Seserakh came
quietly out of the house and sat down on the threshold beside her.
She had taken off the circlet that held her veil, leaving her mass of
tawny hair unbound.
"Oh my
friend," she murmured, "what will happen to us? The dead
are coming here. Do you feel them? Like the tide rising. Across that
wall. I think nobody can stop them. All the dead people, from the
graves of all the islands of the west, all the centuries…"
Tenar felt the
beating, the calling, in her head and in her blood. She knew now,
they all knew, what Alder had known. But she held to what she
trusted, even if trust had become mere hope. She said, "They are
only the dead, Seserakh. We built a false wall. It must be unbuilt.
But there is a true one."
Tehanu got up and
came softly over to them. She sat on the doorstep below them.
"He's all
right, he's sleeping," she whispered.
"Were you
there with him?" Tenar asked.
Tehanu nodded. "We
were at the wall."
"What did the
Summoner do?"
"Summoned
him—brought him back by force."
"Into life."
"Into life."
"I don't know
which I should fear more," Tenar said, "death or life. I
wish I could be done with fear."
Seserakh's face,
the wave of her warm hair, bent down to Tenar's shoulder for a moment
in a light caress. "You are brave, brave," she murmured.
"But oh! I fear the sea! and I fear death!"
Tehanu sat quietly.
In the faint soft light that hung among the trees, Tenar could see
how her daughter's slender hand lay crossed over her burnt and
twisted hand.
"I think,"
Tehanu said in her soft, strange voice, "that when I die, I can
breathe back the breath that made me live. I can give back to the
world all that I didn't do. All that I might have been and couldn't
be. All the choices I didn't make. All the things I lost and spent
and wasted. I can give them back to the world. To the lives that
haven't been lived yet. That will be my gift back to the world that
gave me the life I did live, the love I loved, the breath I
breathed."
She looked up at
the stars and sighed. "Not for a long time yet," she
whispered. Then she looked round at Tenar.
Seserakh stroked
Tenar's hair gently, rose, and went silently into the house.
"Before long,
I think, mother…"
"I know."
"I don't want
to leave you."
"You have to
leave me."
"I know."
They sat on in the
glimmering darkness of the Grove, silent.
"Look,"
Tehanu murmured. A shooting star crossed the sky, a quick,
slow-fading trail of light.
Five wizards sat in
starlight. "Look," one said, his hand following the trail
of the shooting star.
"The soul of a
dragon dying," said Azver the Patterner "So they say in
Karego-At."
"Do dragons
die?" asked Onyx, musing. "Not as we do I think."
"They don't
live as we do. They move between the worlds. So says Orm Irian. From
the world's wind to the other wind."
"As we sought
to do," said Seppel. "And failed."
Gamble looked at
him curiously. "Have you on Paln always known this tale, this
lore we have learned today—of the parting of dragon and
mankind, and the making of the dry land?"
"Not as we
heard it today. I was taught that the verw nadan was the first great
triumph of the art magic. And that the goal of wizardry was to
triumph over time and live forever… Hence the evils the
Pelnish Lore has done."
"At least you
kept the Mother knowledge we despised," Onyx said. "As your
people did, Azver."
"Well, you had
the sense to build your Great House here," the Patterner said,
smiling.
"But we built
it wrong," Onyx said. "All we build, we build wrong."
"So we must
knock it down," said Seppel.
"No,"
said Gamble. "We're not dragons. We do live in houses. We have
to have some walls, at least."
"So long as
the wind can blow through the windows," said Azver.
"And who will
come in the doors?" asked the Doorkeeper in his mild voice.
There was a pause.
A cricket trilled industriously somewhere across the glade, fell
silent, trilled again.
"Dragons?"
said Azver.
The Doorkeeper
shook his head. "I think maybe the division that was begun, and
then betrayed, will be completed at last," he said. "The
dragons will go free, and leave us here to the choice we made."
"The knowledge
of good and evil," said Onyx.
"The joy of
making, shaping," said Seppel. "Our mastery."
"And our
greed, our weakness, our fear," said Azver.
The cricket was
answered by another, closer to the stream. The two trills pulsed,
crossed, in and out of rhythm.
"What I fear,"
said Gamble, "so much that I fear to say it—is this: that
when the dragons go, our mastery will go with them. Our art. Our
magic."
The silence of the
others showed that they feared what he did. But the Doorkeeper spoke
at last, gently, but with some certainty. "No, I think not. They
are the Making, yes. But we learned the Making. We made it ours. It
can't be taken from us. To lose it we must forget it, throw it away."
"As my people
did," said Azver.
"Yet your
people remembered what the earth is, what life everlasting is,"
said Seppel. "While we forgot."
There was another
long silence among them.
"I could reach
my hand out to the wall," Gamble said in a very low voice, and
Seppel said, "They are near, they are very near."
"How are we to
know what we should do?" Onyx said.
Azver spoke into
the silence that followed the question.
"Once when my
lord the Archmage was here with me in the Grove, he said to me he had
spent his life learning how to choose to do what he had no choice but
to do."
"I wish he
were here now," said Onyx.
"He's done
with doing," the Doorkeeper murmured smiling.
"But we're
not. We sit here talking on the edge of the precipice—we all
know it." Onyx looked round at their starlit faces. "What
do the dead want of us?"
"What do the
dragons want of us?" said Gamble. "These women who are
dragons, dragons who are women—why are they here? Can we trust
them?"
"Have we a
choice?" said the Doorkeeper.
"I think not,"
said the Patterner. An edge of hardness, a sword's edge, had come
into his voice. "We can only follow."
"Follow the
dragons?" Gamble asked.
Azver shook his
head. "Alder."
"But he's no
guide, Patterner!" said Gamble. "A village mender?"
Onyx said, "Alder
has wisdom, but in his hands, not in his head. He follows his heart.
Certainly he doesn't seek to lead us."
"Yet he was
chosen from among us all."
"Who chose
him?" Seppel asked softly.
The Patterner
answered him: "The dead."
They sat silent.
The crickets' trill had ceased. Two tall figures came towards them
through the grass lit grey by starlight. "May Brand and I sit
with you a while?" Lebannen said. "There is no sleep
tonight."
On the doorstep of
the house on the Overfell, Ged sat watching the stars above the sea.
He had gone in to sleep an hour or more ago, but as he closed his
eyes he saw the hillside and heard the voices rising like a wave. He
got up at once and went outside, where he could see the stars move.
He was tired. His
eyes would close, and then he would be there by the wall of stones,
his heart cold with dread that he would be there forever, not knowing
the way back. At last, impatient and sick of fear, he got up again,
fetched a lantern from the house and lit it, and set off on the path
to Moss's house. Moss might or might not be frightened; she lived
pretty near the wall, these days. But Heather would be in a panic,
and Moss would not be able to soothe her. And since whatever had to
be done, it wasn't he who could do it this time, he could at least go
comfort the poor half-wit. He could tell her it was only dreams.
It was hard going
in the dark, the lantern throwing great shadows of small things
across the path. He walked slower than he would have liked to walk,
and stumbled sometimes.
He saw a light in
the widower's house, late as it was. A child wailed, over in the
village. Mother, mother, why are the people crying? Who are the
people crying, mother? There was no sleep there, either. There was
not much sleep anywhere in Earthsea, tonight, Ged thought. He grinned
a little as he thought it; for he had always liked that pause, that
fearful pause, the moment before things changed.
Alder woke. he lay
on earth and felt its depth beneath him. Above him the bright stars
burned, the stars of summer, moving between leaf and leaf with the
wind's blowing, moving from east to west with the world's turning. He
watched them a while before he let them go. Tehanu was waiting for
him on the hill.
"What must we
do, Hara?" she asked him.
"We have to
mend the world," he said. He smiled, because his heart had grown
light at last. "We have to break the wall."
"Can they help
us?" she asked, for the dead were gathered waiting down in the
darkness as countless as grass or sand or stars, silent now, a great,
dim beach of souls.
"No," he
said, "but maybe others can." He walked down the hill to
the wall. It was little more than waist-high here. He put his hands
on one of the stones of the coping row and tried to move it. It was
fixed fast, or was heavier than a stone should be; he could not lift
it, could not make it move at all.
Tehanu came beside
him. "Help me," he said. She put her hands on the stone,
the human hand and the burnt claw, gripping it as well as she could,
and gave a lifting tug as he did. The stone moved a little, then a
little more. "Push it!" she said, and together they pushed
it slowly out of place, grating hard on the rock beneath it, till it
fell on the far side of the wall with a dull heavy thump.
The next stone was
smaller; together they could lift it up out of its place. They let it
drop into the dust on the near side.
A tremor ran
through the ground under their feet then. Small chinking stones in
the wall rattled. And with a long sigh, the multitudes of the dead
came closer to the wall.
The patterner stood
up suddenly and stood listening. Leaves stormed all about the glade,
the trees of the Grove bowed and trembled as if under a great wind,
but there was no wind.
"Now it
changes," he said, and he walked away from them, into the
darkness under the trees.
The Summoner, the
Doorkeeper, and Seppel rose and followed him, quick and silent.
Gamble and Onyx followed more slowly after them.
Lebannen stood up;
he took a few steps after the others, hesitated, and hurried across
the glade to the low house of stone and sod. "Irian," he
said, stooping to the dark doorway. "Irian, will you take me
with you?"
She came out of the
house; she was smiling, and there was a kind of fiery brightness all
about her. "Come then, come quick," she said, and took his
hand. Her hand burned like a coal of fire as she lifted him into the
other wind.
After a little time
Seserakh came out of the house into the starlight, and after her came
Tenar. They stood and looked about them. Nothing moved; the trees
were still again.
"They are all
gone," Seserakh whispered. "On the Dragons' Way."
She took a step
forward, gazing into the dark.
"What are we
to do, Tenar?"
"We are to
keep the house," Tenar said.
"Oh!"
Seserakh whispered, dropping to her knees. She had seen Lebannen
lying near the doorway, stretched facedown in the grass. "He
isn't dead—I think—Oh, my dear Lord King, don't go, don't
die!"
"He's with
them. Stay with him. Keep him warm. Keep the house, Seserakh,"
Tenar said. She went to where Alder lay, his unseeing eyes turned to
the stars. She sat down by him, her hand on his. She waited.
Alder could
scarcely move the great stone his hands were on, but the Summoner was
beside him, stooping with his shoulder against it, and said, "Now!"
Together they pushed it till it overbalanced and dropped down with
that same heavy, final thump on the far side of the wall.
Others were there
now with him and Tehanu, wrenching at the stones, casting them down
beside the wall. Alder saw his own hands cast shadows for an instant
from a red gleam. Orm Irian, as he had seen her first, a great dragon
shape, had let out her fiery breath as she struggled to move a
boulder from the lowest rank of stones, deepset in the earth. Her
talons struck sparks and her thorned back arched, and the rock rolled
ponderously free, breaching the wall entirely in that place.
There was a vast,
soft cry among the shadows on the other side, like the sound of the
sea on a hollow shore. Their darkness surged up against the wall. But
Alder looked up and saw that it was no longer dark. Light moved in
that sky where the stars had never moved, quick sparks of fire far in
the dark west.
"Kalessin!"
That was Tehanu's
voice. He looked at her. She was gazing upward, westward. She had no
eye for earth.
She reached up her
arms. Fire ran along her hands, her arms, into her hair, into her
face and body, flamed up into great wings above her head, and lifted
her into the air, a creature all fire, blazing, beautiful.
She cried out
aloud, a clear, wordless cry. She flew high, headlong, fast, up into
the sky where the light was growing and a white wind had erased the
unmeaning stars.
From among the
hosts of the dead a few here and there, like her, rose up flickering
into dragons, and mounted on the wind.
Most came forward
afoot. They were not pressing, not crying out now, but walking with
unhurried certainty towards the fallen places in the wall: great
multitudes of men and women, who as they came to the broken wall did
not hesitate but stepped across it and were gone: a wisp of dust, a
breath that shone an instant in the ever-brightening light.
Alder watched them.
He still held in his hands, forgotten, a chinking stone he had
wrenched from the wall to loosen a larger rock. He watched the dead
go free. At last he saw her among them. He tossed the stone aside
then and stepped forward. "Lily," he said. She saw him and
smiled and held out her hand to him. He took her hand, and they
crossed together into the sunlight.
Lebannen stood by
the ruined wall and watched the dawn brighten in the east. There was
an east now, where there had been no direction, no way to go. There
was east and west, and light and motion. The very ground moved,
shook, shivering like a great animal, so that the wall of stones
beyond where they had broken it shuddered and slid into rubble. Fire
broke from the far, black peaks of the mountains called Paln, the
fire that burns in the heart of the world, the fire that feeds
dragons.
He looked into the
sky over those mountains and saw, as he and Ged had seen them once
above the western sea, the dragons flying on the wind of morning.
Three came wheeling
towards him where he stood among the others near the crest of the
hill, above the ruined wall. Two he knew, Orm Irian and Kalessin. The
third had bright mail, gold, with wings of gold. That one flew
highest and did not stoop down to them. Orm Irian played about her in
the air and they flew together, one chasing the other higher and
higher, till all at once the highest rays of the rising sun struck
Tehanu and she burned like her name, a great bright star.
Kalessin circled
again, flew low, and alighted hugely amid the ruins of the wall.
"Agni
Lebannen," said the dragon to the king.
"Eldest,"
the king said to the dragon.
"Aissadan verw
nadannan," said the vast, hissing voice, like a sea of cymbals.
Beside Lebannen,
Brand the Summoner of Roke stood planted solidly. He repeated the
dragon's words in the Speech of the Making, and then said them in
Hardic: "What was divided is divided."
The Patterner stood
near them, his hair bright in the brightening light. He said, "What
was built is broken. What was broken is made whole."
Then he looked up
yearning into the sky, at the gold dragon and the red-bronze one; but
they had flown almost out of sight, wheeling now in vast gyres over
the long, falling land, where empty shadow cities faded to nothing in
the light of day.
"Eldest,"
he said, and the long head swung slowly back to him.
"Will she
follow the way back through the forest, sometimes?" Azver asked
in the speech of dragons.
Kalessin's long,
fathomless, yellow eye regarded him. The enormous mouth seemed, like
the mouths of lizards, closed upon a smile. It did not speak.
Then ponderously
dragging its length along the wall so that stones still standing slid
and fell grating beneath its iron belly, Kalessin writhed away from
them, and with a rush and rattle of upraised wings pushed off from
the hillside and flew low over the land towards the mountains, whose
peaks now were bright with smoke and white steam, fire and sunlight.
"Come,
friends," said Seppel in his soft voice. "It's not yet our
time to go free."
Sunlight was in the
sky above the crowns of the highest trees, but the glade still held
the chill grey of dawn. Tenar sat with her hand on Alder's hand, her
face bowed down. She looked at the cold dew beading a grass blade,
how it hung in tiny, delicate drops along the blade, each drop
reflecting all the world.
Someone spoke her
name. She did not look up.
"He's gone,"
she said.
The Patterner knelt
by her. He touched Alder's face with a gentle hand.
He knelt there
silent a while. Then he said to Tenar in her language, "My lady,
I saw Tehanu. She flies golden on the other wind."
Tenar glanced up at
him. His face was white and worn, but there was a shadow of glory in
his eyes.
She struggled and
then said, speaking roughly and almost inaudibly, "Whole?"
He nodded.
She stroked Alder's
hand, the mender's hand, fine, skillful. Tears came into her eyes.
"Let me be
with him a while," she said, and she began to cry. She put her
hands to her face and cried hard, bitterly, silently.
Azver went to the
little group by the door of the house. Onyx and Gamble were near the
Summoner, who stood, heavy and anxious, near the princess. She
crouched beside Lebannen, her arms across him, protecting him, daring
any wizard to touch him. Her eyes flashed. She held Lebannen's short
steel dagger naked in her hand.
"I came back
with him," Brand said to Azver. "I tried to stay with him.
I wasn't sure of the way. She won't let me near him."
"Ganai,"
Azver said, her title in Kargish, princess.
Her eyes flashed up
to him. "Oh may Atwah-Wuluah be thanked and the Mother praised
for ever!" she cried. "Lord Azver! Make these
accursed-sorcerers go away. Kill them! They have killed my king."
She held out the dagger to him by its slender steel blade.
"No, princess.
He went with the dragon Irian. But this sorcerer brought him back to
us. Let me see him," and he knelt and turned Lebannen's face a
little to see it better, and laid his hands on his chest. "He's
cold," he said. "It was a hard way back. Take him in your
arms, princess. Keep him warm."
"I have tried
to," she said, biting her lip. She flung down the dagger and
bent to the unconscious man. "O poor king!" she said softly
in Hardic, "dear king, poor king!"
Azver got up and
said to the Summoner, "I think he will be all right, Brand. She
is much more use than we are, now."
The Summoner put
out his big hand and took hold of Azver's arm. "Steady now,"
he said.
"The
Doorkeeper," Azver said, going whiter than before and looking
around the glade.
"He came back
with the Pelnishman," Brand said. "Sit down, Azver."
Azver obeyed him,
sitting down on the log seat the old Changer had sat on in their
circle the afternoon before. A thousand years ago it seemed. The old
men had gone back to the School in the evening… And then the
long night had begun, the night that brought the wall of stones so
close that to sleep was to be there, and to be there was terror, so
no one had slept. No one, maybe, in all Roke, in all the isles…
Only Alder, who went to guide them… Azver found he was dozing
and shivering.
Gamble tried to
make him go inside the winter house, but Azver insisted that he
should be near the princess to interpret for her. And near Tenar, he
thought without saying it, to protect her. To let her grieve. But
Alder was done with grieving. He had passed his grief to her. To them
all. His joy…
The Herbal came
from the School and fussed about Azver, put a winter cloak over his
shoulders. He sat on in a weary, feverish half doze, not heeding the
others, dimly irritated by the presence of so many people in his
sweet silent glade, watching the sunlight creep down among the
leaves. His vigil was rewarded when the princess came to him, knelt
before him looking with solicitous respect into his face, and said,
"Lord Azver, the king would speak with you."
She helped him
stand up, as if he were an old man. He did not mind. "Thank you,
gainha? he said.
"I am not
queen," she said with a laugh.
"You will be,"
said the Patterner.
It was the strong
tide of the full moon, and Dolphin had to wait for the slack to run
between the Armed Cliffs. Tenar did not disembark in Gont Port till
midmorning, and then there was the long walk uphill. It was near
sunset when she came through Re Albi and took the cliff path to the
house.
Ged was watering
the cabbages, well grown by now.
He straightened up
and looked at her coming to him, that hawk look, frowning. "Ah,"
he said.
"Oh my dear,"
she said. She hurried, the last few steps, as he came to her.
She was tired. She
was very glad to sit with him with a glass of Spark's good red wine
and watch the evening of early autumn flare into gold over all the
western sea.
"How can I
tell you everything?" she said.
"Tell it
backward," he said.
"All right. I
will. They wanted me to stay, but I said I wanted to go home. But
there was a council meeting, the King's Council, you know, for the
betrothal. There'll be a grand wedding and all, of course, but I
don't think I have to go. Because that was truly when they married.
With Elfar-ran's Ring. Our ring."
He looked at her
and smiled, the broad, sweet smile that she thought, perhaps wrongly,
perhaps rightly, nobody but her had ever seen on his face.
"Yes?" he
said.
"Lebannen came
and stood here, see, on my left, and then Seserakh came and stood
here on my right. In front of Morred's throne. And I held up the
Ring. The way I did when we brought it to Havnor, remember? in
Lookfar, in the sunlight? Lebannen took it in his hands and kissed it
and gave it back to me. And I put it on her arm, it just went over
her hand—she's not a little woman, Seserakh—Oh, you
should see her, Ged! What a beauty she is, what a lion! He's met his
match.—And everybody shouted. And there were festivals and so
on. And so I could get away."
"Go on."
"Backward?"
"Backward."
"Well. Before
that was Roke."
"Roke's never
simple."
"No."
They drank their
red wine in silence.
"Tell me of
the Patterner."
She smiled.
"Seserakh calls him the Warrior. She says only a warrior would
fall in love with a dragon."
"Who followed
him to the dry land—that night?"
"He followed
Alder."
"Ah," Ged
said, with surprise and a certain satisfaction.
"So did others
of the masters. And Lebannen, and Irian…"
"And Tehanu."
A silence.
"She went out
of the house. When I came out she was gone." A long silence.
"Azver saw her. In the sunrise. On the other wind."
A silence.
"They're all
gone. There are no dragons left in Havnor or the western islands.
Onyx said: as that shadow place and all the shadows in it rejoined
the world of light, so they regained their true realm."
"We broke the
world to make it whole," Ged said.
After a long time
Tenar said in a soft, thin voice, "The Patterner believes Irian
will come to the Grove if he calls to her."
Ged said nothing,
till, after a while: "Look there, Tenar."
She looked where he
was looking, into the dim gulf of air above the western sea.
"If she comes,
she'll come from there," he said. "And if she doesn't come,
she is there."
She nodded. "I
know." Her eyes were full of tears. "Lebannen sang me a
song, on the ship, when we were going back to Havnor." She could
not sing; she whispered the words. "O my joy, be free…"
He looked away, up
at the forests, at the mountain, the darkening heights.
"Tell me,"
she said, "tell me what you did while I was gone."
"Kept the
house."
"Did you walk
in the forest?"
"Not yet,"
he said.
The End
Le Guin, Ursula - [Earthsea 05] The Other Wind
THE OTHER WIND
Ursula K. LeGuin
The Earthsea 05
EBook Design Group digital back-up edition v1 HTML December 13, 2002
Sails long and
white as swan's wings carried the ship Farflyer through summer air
down the bay from the Armed Cliffs toward Gont Port. She glided into
the still water landward of the jetty, so sure and graceful a
creature of the wind that a couple of townsmen fishing off the old
quay cheered her in, waving to the crewmen and the one passenger
standing in the prow.
He was a thin man
with a thin pack and an old black cloak, probably a sorcerer or small
tradesman, nobody important. The two fishermen watched the bustle on
the dock and the ship's deck as she made ready to unload her cargo,
and only glanced at the passenger with a bit of curiosity when as he
left the ship one of the sailors made a gesture behind his back,
thumb and first and last finger of the left hand all pointed at him:
May you never come back!
He hesitated on the
pier, shouldered his pack, and set off into the streets of Gont Port.
They were busy streets, and he got at once into the Fish Market,
abrawl with hawkers and hagglers, paving stones glittering with fish
scales and brine. If he had a way, he soon lost it among the carts
and stalls and crowds and the cold stares of dead fish.
A tall old woman
turned from the stall where she had been insulting the freshness of
the herring and the veracity of the fishwife. Seeing her glaring at
him, the stranger said unwisely, "Would you have the kindness to
tell me the way I should go for Re Albi?"
"Why, go drown
yourself in pig slop for a start," said the tall woman and
strode off, leaving the stranger wilted and dismayed. But the
fishwife, seeing a chance to seize the high moral ground, blared out,
"Re Albi is it? Re Albi you want, man? Speak up then! The Old
Mage's house, that would be what you'd want at Re Albi. Yes it would.
So you go out by the corner there, and up Elvers Lane there, see,
till you reach the tower…"
Once he was out of
the market, broad streets led him uphill and past the massive
watchtower to a town gate. Two stone dragons large as life guarded
it, teeth the length of his forearm, stone eyes glaring blindly out
over the town and the bay. A lounging guard told him just turn left
at the top of the road and he'd be in Re Albi. "And keep on
through the village for the Old Mage's house," the guard said.
So he went trudging
up the road, which was pretty steep, looking up as he went to the
steeper slopes and far peak of Gont Mountain that overhung its island
like a cloud.
It was a long road
and a hot day. He soon had his black cloak off and went on bareheaded
in his shirtsleeves, but he had not thought to find water or buy food
in the town, or had been too shy to, maybe, for he was not a man
familiar with cities or at ease with strangers.
After several long
miles he caught up to a cart which he had seen far up the dusty way
for a long time as a dark blot in a white blot of dust. It creaked
and streaked along at the pace of a pair of small oxen that looked as
old, wrinkled, and unhopeful as tortoises. He greeted the carter, who
resembled the oxen. The carter said nothing, but blinked.
"Might there
be a spring of water up the road?" the stranger asked.
The carter slowly
shook his head. After a long time he said, "No." A while
later he said, "There ain't."
They all plodded
along. Discouraged, the stranger found it hard to go any faster than
the oxen, about a mile an hour, maybe.
He became aware
that the carter was wordlessly reaching something out to him: a big
clay jug wrapped round with wicker. He took it, and finding it very
heavy, drank his fill of the water, leaving it scarcely lighter when
he passed it back with his thanks.
"Climb on,"
said the carter after a while.
"Thanks. I'll
walk. How far might it be to Re Albi?"
The wheels creaked.
The oxen heaved deep sighs, first one, then the other. Their dusty
hides smelled sweet in the hot sunlight.
"Ten mile,"
the carter said. He thought, and said, "Or twelve." After a
while he said, "No less."
"I'd better
walk on, then," said the stranger.
Refreshed by the
water, he was able to get ahead of the oxen, and they and the cart
and the carter were a good way behind him when he heard the carter
speak again. "Going to the Old Mages house," he said. If it
was a question, it seemed to need no answer. The traveler walked on.
When he started up
the road it had still lain in the vast shadow of the mountain, but
when he turned left to the little village he took to be Re Albi, the
sun was blazing in the western sky and under it the sea lay white as
steel.
There were
scattered small houses, a small dusty square, a fountain with one
thin stream of water falling. He made for that, drank from his hands
again and again, put his head under the stream, rubbed cool water
through his hair and let it run down his arms, and sat for a while on
the stone rim of the fountain, observed in attentive silence by two
dirty little boys and a dirty little girl.
"He ain't the
farrier," one of the boys said.
The traveler combed
his wet hair back with his ringers.
"He'll be
going to the Old Mage's house," said the girl, "stupid."
"Yerraghh!"
said the boy, drawing his face into a horrible lopsided grimace by
pulling at it with one hand while he clawed the air with the other.
"You watch it,
Stony," said the other boy.
"Take you
there," said the girl to the traveler.
"Thanks,"
he said, and stood up wearily.
"Got no staff,
see," said one boy, and the other said, "Never said he
did." Both watched with sullen eyes as the stranger followed the
girl out of the village to a path that led north through rocky
pastures that dropped down steep to the left.
The sun glared on
the sea. His eyes dazzled, and the high horizon and the blowing wind
made him dizzy. The child was a little hopping shadow ahead of him.
He stopped.
"Come on,"
she said, but she too stopped. He came up to her on the path.
"There," she said. He saw a wooden house near the cliff's
edge, still some way ahead.
"I ain't
afraid," the girl said. "I fetch their eggs lots of times
for Stony's dad to carry to market. Once she gave me peaches. The old
lady. Stony says I stole 'em but I never. Go on. She ain't there.
Neither of em is."
She stood still,
pointing to the house.
"Nobody's
there?"
"The old man
is. Old Hawk, he is."
The traveler went
on. The child stood watching him till he went round the corner of the
house.
Two goats stared
down at the stranger from a steep fenced field. A scatter of hens and
half-grown chicks pecked and conversed softly in long grass under
peach and plum trees. A man was standing on a short ladder against
the trunk of one of the trees; his head was in the leaves, and the
traveler could see only his bare brown legs.
"Hello,"
the traveler said, and after a while said it again a bit louder.
The leaves shook
and the man came briskly down the ladder. He carried a handful of
plums, and when he got off the ladder he batted away a couple of bees
drawn by the juice. He came forward, a short, straight-backed man,
grey hair tied back from a handsome, timeworn face. He looked to be
seventy or so. Old scars, four white seams, ran from his left
cheekbone down to the jaw. His gaze was clear, direct, intense.
"They're ripe," he said, "though they'll be even
better tomorrow." He held out his handful of little yellow
plums.
"Lord
Sparrowhawk," the stranger said huskily. "Arch-mage."
The old man gave a
curt nod of acknowledgment. "Come into the shade," he said.
The stranger
followed him, and did what he was told: he sat down on a wooden bench
in the shade of the gnarled tree nearest the house; he accepted the
plums, now rinsed and served in a wicker basket; he ate one, then
another, then a third. Questioned, he admitted that he had eaten
nothing that day. He sat while the master of the house went into it,
coming out presently with bread and cheese and half an onion. The
guest ate the bread and cheese and onion and drank the cup of cold
water his host brought him. The host ate plums to keep him company.
"You look
tired. How far have you come?"
"From Roke."
The old man's
expression was hard to read. He said only, "I wouldn't have
guessed that."
"I'm from
Taon, lord. I went from Taon to Roke. And there the Lord Patterner
told me I should come here. To you."
"Why?"
It was a formidable
gaze.
"Because you
walked across the dark land living…" The stranger's husky
voice died away.
The old man picked
up the words: "And came to the far shores of the day. Yes. But
that was spoken in prophecy of the coming of our King, Lebannen."
"You were with
him, lord."
"I was. And he
gained his kingdom there. But I left mine there. So don't call me by
any title. Hawk, or Sparrowhawk, as you please. And how shall I call
you?"
The man murmured
his use-name: "Alder."
Food and drink and
shade and sitting down had clearly eased him, but he still looked
exhausted. He had a weary sadness in him; his face was full of it.
The old man had
spoken to him with a hard edge in his voice, but that was gone when
he said, "Let's put off talking for a bit. You've sailed near a
thousand miles and walked fifteen uphill. And I've got to water the
beans and the lettuce id all, since my wife and daughter left the
garden in my charge. So rest a while. We can talk in the cool of the
evening. Or the cool of the morning. There's seldom as much hurry as
I used to think there was."
When he came back
by half an hour later his guest was flat on his back asleep in the
cool grass under the peach trees.
The man who had
been Archmage of Earthsea stopped with a bucket in one hand and a hoe
in the other and looked down at the sleeping stranger.
"Alder,"
he said under his breath. "What's the trouble you bring with
you, Alder?"
It seemed to him
that if he wanted to know the man's true name he would know it only
by thinking, by putting his mind to it, as he might have done when he
was a mage.
But he did not know
it, and thinking would not give it to him, and he was not a mage.
He knew nothing
about this Alder and must wait to be told. "Never trouble
trouble," he told himself, and went on to water the beans.
As soon as the
sun's light was cut offby a low rock wall that ran along the top of
the cliff near the house, the cool of the shadow roused the sleeper.
He sat up with a shiver, then stood up, a bit stiff and bewildered,
with grass seed in his hair. Seeing his host filling buckets at the
well and lugging them to the garden, he went to help him.
"Three or four
more ought to do it," said the ex-Archmage, doling out water to
the roots of a row of young cabbages. The smell of wet dirt was
pleasant in the dry, warm air. The westering light came golden and
broken over the ground.
They sat on a long
bench beside the house door to see the sun go down. Sparrowhawk had
brought out a bottle and two squat, thick cups of greenish glass. "My
wife's son's wine," he said. "From Oak Farm, in Middle
Valley. A good year, seven years back." It was a flinty red wine
that warmed Alder right through. The sun set in calm clarity. The
wind was down. Birds in the orchard trees made a few closing remarks.
Alder had been
amazed when he learned from the Master Patterner of Roke that the
Archmage Sparrowhawk, that man of legend, who had brought the king
home from the realm of death and then flown off on a dragon's back,
was still alive. Alive, said the Patterner, and living on his home
island, Gont. "I tell you what not many know," the
Patterner had said, "for I think you need to know it. And I
think you will keep his secret."
"But then he
is still Archmage!" Alder had said, with a kind of joy: for it
had been a puzzle and concern to all men of the art that the wise men
of Roke Island, the school and center of magery in the Archipelago,
had not in all the years of King Lebannen's rule named an Archmage to
replace Sparrowhawk.
"No," the
Patterner had said. "He is not a mage at all."
The Patterner had
told him a little of how Sparrowhawk had lost his power, and why; and
Alder had had time to ponder it all. But still, here, in the presence
of this man who had spoken with dragons, and brought back the Ring of
Erreth-Akbe, and crossed the kingdom of the dead, and ruled the
Archipelago before the king, all those stories and songs were in his
mind. Even as he saw him old, content with his garden, with no power
in him or about him but that of a soul made by a long life of thought
and action, he still saw a great mage. And so it troubled him
considerably that Sparrow-hawk had a wife.
A wife, a daughter,
a stepson… Mages had no family. A common sorcerer like Alder
might marry or might not, but the men of true power were celibate.
Alder could imagine this man riding a dragon, that was easy enough,
but to think of him as a husband and father was another matter. He
couldn't manage it. He tried. He asked, "Your—wife—She's
with her son, then?"
Sparrowhawk came
back from far away. His eyes had been on the western gulfs. "No,"
he said. "She's in Havnor. With the king."
After a while,
coming all the way back, he added, "She went there with our
daughter just after the Long Dance. Lebannen sent for them, to take
counsel. Maybe on the same matter that brings you here to me. We'll
see… But the truth is, I'm tired this evening, and not much
disposed to weighing heavy matters. And you look tired too. So a bowl
of soup, maybe, and another glass of wine, and sleep? And we'll talk
in the morning."
"All with
pleasure, lord," Alder said, "but for the sleep. That's
what I fear."
It took the old man
a while to register this, but then he said, "You fear to sleep?"
"Dreams."
"Ah." A
keen glance from the dark eyes under eyebrows grown tangled and half
grey. "You had a good nap there in the grass, I think."
"The sweetest
sleep I've had since I left Roke Island. I'm grateful to you for that
boon, lord. Maybe it will return tonight. But if not, I struggle with
my dream, and cry out, and wake, and am a burden to anyone near me.
I'll sleep outside, if you permit."
Sparrowhawk nodded.
"It'll be a pleasant night," he said.
It was a pleasant
night, cool, the sea wind mild from the south, the stars of summer
whitening all the sky except where the broad, dark summit of the
mountain loomed. Alder put down the pallet and sheepskin his host
gave him, in the grass where he had slept before.
Sparrowhawk lay in
the little western alcove of the house. He had slept there as a boy,
when it was Ogion's house and he was Ogion's prentice in wizardry.
Tehanu had slept there these last fifteen years, since she had been
his daughter. With her and Tenar gone, when he lay in his and Tenar's
bed in the dark back corner of the single room he felt his solitude,
so he had taken to sleeping in the alcove. He liked the narrow cot
built out from the thick house wall of timbers, right under the
window. He slept well there. But this night he did not.
Before midnight,
wakened by a cry, voices outside, he leapt up and went to the door.
It was only Alder struggling with nightmare, amid sleepy protests
from the henhouse. Alder shouted in the thick voice of dream and then
woke, starting up in panic and distress. He begged his host's pardon
and said he would sit up a while under the stars. Sparrowhawk went
back to bed. He was not wakened again by Alder, but he had a bad
dream of his own.
He was standing by
a wall of stone near the top of a long hillside of dry grey grass
that ran down from dimness into the dark. He knew he had been there
before, had stood there before, but he did not know when, or what
place it was. Someone was standing on the other side of the wall, the
downhill side, not far away. He could not see the face, only that it
was a tall man, cloaked. He knew that he knew him. The man spoke to
him, using his true name. He said, "You will soon be here, Ged."
Cold to the bone,
he sat up, staring to see the space of the house about him, to draw
its reality around him like a blanket. He looked out the window at
the stars. The cold came into his heart then. They were not the stars
of summer, beloved, familiar, the Cart, the Falcon, the Dancers, the
Heart of the Swan. They were other stars, the small, still stars of
the dry land, that never rise or set. He had known their names, once,
when he knew the names of things.
"Avert!"
he said aloud and made the gesture to turn away misfortune that he
had learned when he was ten years old. His gaze went to the open
doorway of the house, the corner behind the door, where he thought to
see darkness taking shape, clotting together and rising up.
But his gesture,
though it had no power, woke him. The shadows behind the door were
only shadows. The stars out the window were the stars of Earthsea,
paling in the first reflection of the dawn.
He sat holding his
sheepskin up round his shoulders, watching those stars fade as they
dropped west, watching the growing brightness, the colors of light,
the play and change of coming day. There was a grief in him, he did
not know why, a pain and yearning as for something dear and lost,
forever lost. He was used to that; he had held much dear, and lost
much; but this sadness was so great it did not seem to be his own. He
felt a sadness at the very heart of things, a grief even in the
coming of the light. It clung to him from his dream, and stayed with
him when he got up.
He lit a little
fire in the big hearth and went to the peach trees and the henhouse
to gather breakfast. Alder came in from the path that ran north along
the cliff top; he had gone for a walk at first light, he said. He
looked jaded, and Sparrowhawk was struck again by the sadness in his
face, which echoed the deep aftermood of his own dream.
They had a cup of
the warmed barley gruel the country people of Gont drink, a boiled
egg, a peach; they ate by the hearth, for the morning air in the
shadow of the mountain was too cold for sitting outdoors. Sparrowhawk
looked after his livestock: fed the chickens, scattered grain for
doves, let the goats into the pasture. When he came back they sat
again on the bench in the dooryard. The sun was not over the mountain
yet, but the air had grown dry and warm.
"Now tell me
what brings you here, Alder. But since you came by Roke, tell me
first if things are well in the Great House."
"I did not
enter it, my lord."
"Ah." A
neutral tone but a sharp glance.
"I was only in
the Immanent Grove."
"Ah." A
neutral tone, a neutral glance. "Is the Patterner well?"
"He told me,
'Carry my love and honor to my lord and say to him: I wish we walked
in the Grove together as we used to do.'"
Sparrowhawk smiled
a little sadly. After a while he said, "So. But he sent you to
me with more to say than that, I think."
"I will try to
be brief."
"Man, we have
all day before us. And I like a story told from the beginning."
So Alder told him
his story from the beginning.
He was a witch's
son, born in the town of Elini on Taon, the Isle of the Harpers.
Taon is at the
southern end of the Sea of Ea, not far from where Solea lay before
the sea whelmed it. That was the ancient heart of Earthsea. All those
islands had states and cities, kings and wizards, when Havnor was a
land of feuding tribesmen and Gont a wilderness ruled by bears.
People born on Ea or Ebea, Enlad or Taon, though they may be a
ditchdigger's daughter or a witch's son, consider themselves to be
descendants of the Elder Mages, sharing the lineage of the warriors
who died in the dark years for Queen Elfarran. Therefore they often
have a fine courtesy of manner, though sometimes an undue
haughtiness, and a generous, uncalculating turn of mind and speech, a
way of soaring above mere fact and prose, which those whose minds
stay close to merchandise distrust. "Kites without strings,"
say the rich men of Havnor of such people. But they do not say it in
the hearing of the king, Lebannen of the House of Enlad.
The best harps in
Earthsea are made on Taon, and there are schools of music there, and
many famous singers of the Lays and Deeds were born or learned their
art there. Elini, however, is just a market town in the hills, with
no music about it, Alder said; and his mother was a poor woman,
though not, as he put it, hungry poor. She had a birthmark, a red
stain from the right eyebrow and ear clear down over her shoulder.
Many women and men with such a blemish or difference about them
become witches or sorcerers perforce, "marked for it,"
people say. Blackberry learned spells and could do the most ordinary
kind of witchery; she had no real gift for it, but she had a way
about her that was almost as good as the gift itself. She made a
living, and trained her son as well as she could, and saved enough to
prentice him to the sorcerer who gave him his true name.
Of his father Alder
said nothing. He knew nothing. Blackberry had never spoken of him.
Though seldom celibate, witches seldom kept company more than a night
or two with any man, and it was a rare thing for a witch to marry a
man. Far more often two of them lived their lives together, and that
was called witch marriage or she-troth. A witch's child, then, had a
mother or two mothers, but no father. That went without saying, and
Sparrowhawk asked nothing on that score; but he asked about Alder's
training.
The sorcerer Gannet
had taught Alder the few words he knew of the True Speech, and some
spells of finding and illusion, at which Alder had shown, he said, no
talent at all. But Gannet took enough interest in the boy to discover
his true gift. Alder was a mender. He could rejoin. He could make
whole. A broken tool, a knife blade or an axle snapped, a pottery
bowl shattered: he could bring the fragments back together without
joint or seam or weakness. So his master sent him about seeking
various spells of mending, which he found mostly among witches of the
island, and he worked with them and by himself to learn to mend.
"That is a
kind of healing," Sparrowhawk said. "No small gift, nor
easy craft."
"It was a joy
to me," Alder said, with a shadow of a smile in his face.
"Working out the spells, and finding sometimes how to use one of
the True Words in the work… To put back together a barrel
that's dried, the staves all fallen in from the hoops—that's a
real pleasure, seeing it build up again, and swell out in the right
curve, and stand there on its bottom ready for the wine…There
was a harper from Meoni, a great harper, oh, he played like a storm
on the high hills, like a tempest on the sea. He was hard on the harp
strings, twanging and pulling them in the passion of his art, so
they'd break at the very height and flight of the music. And so he
hired me to be there near him when he played, and when he broke a
string I'd mend it quick as the note itself, and he'd play on."
Sparrowhawk nodded
with the warmth of a fellow professional talking shop. "Have you
mended glass?" he asked.
"I have, but
it's a long, nasty job," Alder said, "with all the tiny
little bits and speckles glass goes to."
"But a big
hole in the heel of a stocking can be worse," Sparrowhawk said,
and they discussed mending for a while longer, before Alder returned
to his story.
He had become a
mender, then, a sorcerer with a modest practice and a local
reputation for his gift. When he was about thirty, he went to the
principal city of the island, Meoni, with the harper, who was playing
for a wedding there. A woman sought him out in their lodging, a young
woman, not trained as a witch; but she had a gift, she said, the same
as his, and wanted him to teach her. And indeed she had a greater
gift than his. Though she knew not a word of the Old Speech, she
could put a smashed jug back together or mend a frayed-out rope just
with the movements of her hands and a wordless song she sang under
her breath, and she had healed broken limbs of animals and people,
which Alder had never dared try to do.
So rather than his
teaching her, they put their skills together and taught each other
more than either had ever known. She came back to Elini and lived
with Alder's mother Blackberry, who taught her various useful
appearances and effects and ways of impressing customers, if not much
actual witch knowledge. Lily was her name; and Lily and Alder worked
together there and in all the hill towns nearby, as their reputation
grew.
"And I came to
love her," Alder said. His voice had changed when he began to
speak of her, losing its hesitancy, growing urgent and musical.
"Her hair was
dark, but with a shining of red gold in it," he said.
There was no way he
could hide his love from her, and she knew it and returned it.
Whether she was a witch now or not, she said she did not care; she
said the two of them were born to be together, in their work and in
their life; she loved him and would be married to him.
So they were
married, and lived in very great happiness for a year, and half a
second year.
"Nothing was
wrong at all until the time came for the child to be born,"
Alder said. "But it was late, and then very late. The midwives
tried to bring on the birth with herbs and spells, but it was as if
the child would not let her bear it. It would not be separated from
her. It would not be born. And it was not born. It took her with it."
After a while he
said, "We had great joy."
"I see that."
"And my sorrow
was in that degree."
The old man nodded.
"I could bear
it," Alder said. "You know how it is. There was not much
reason to be living that I could see, but I could bear it."
"Yes."
"But in the
winter. Two months after her death. There was a dream came to me. She
was in the dream."
‘Tell it.
"I stood on a
hillside. Along the top of the hill and running down the slope was a
wall, low, like a boundary wall between sheep pastures. She was
standing across the wall from me, below it. It was darker there."
Sparrowhawk nodded
once. His face had gone rock hard.
"She was
calling to me. I heard her voice saying my name, and I went to her. I
knew she was dead, I knew it in the dream, but I was glad to go. I
couldn't see her clear, and I went to her to see her, to be with her.
And she reached out across the wall. It was no higher than my heart.
I had thought she might have the child with her, but she did not. She
was reaching her hands out to me, and so I reached out to her, and we
took each others hands."
"You touched?"
"I wanted to
go to her, but I could not cross the wall. My legs would not move. I
tried to draw her to me, and she wanted to come, it seemed as if she
could, but the wall was there between us. We couldn't get over it. So
she leaned across to me and kissed my mouth and said my name. And she
said, 'Set me free!'
"I thought if
I called her by her true name maybe I could free her, bring her
across that wall, and I said, 'Come with me, Mevre!' But she said,
'That's not my name, Hara, that's not my name any more.' And she let
go my hands, though I tried to hold her. She cried, 'Set me free,
Hara!' But she was going down into the dark. It was all dark down
that hillside below the wall. I called her name and her use-name and
all the dear names I had had for her, but she went on away. So then I
woke."
Sparrowhawk gazed
long and keenly at his visitor. "You gave me your name, Hara,"
he said.
Alder looked a
little stunned, and took a couple of long breaths, but he looked up
with desolate courage. "Who could I better trust it with?"
he said.
Sparrowhawk thanked
him gravely. "I will try to deserve your trust," he said.
"Tell me, do you know what that place is—that wall?"
"I did not
know it then. Now I know you have crossed it."
"Yes. I've
been on that hill. And crossed the wall, by the power and art I used
to have. And I've gone down to the cities of the dead, and spoken to
men I had known living, and sometimes they answered me. But Hara, you
are the first man I ever knew or heard of, among all the great mages
in the lore of Roke or Paln or the Enlades, who ever touched, ho ever
kissed his love across that wall."
Alder sat with his
head bowed and his hands clenched.
"Will you tell
me: what was her touch like? Were her hands warm? Was she cold air
and shadow, or like a living woman? Forgive my questions."
"I wish I
could answer them, my lord. On Roke the summoner asked the same. But
I can't answer truly. My longing for her was so great, I wished so
much—it could be I wished her to be as she was in life. But I
don't know. In dream not all things are clear."
"In dream, no.
But I never heard of any man coming to the wall in dream. It is a
place a wizard may seek to come to, if he must, if he's learned the
way and has the power. But without the knowledge and the power, only
the dying can—"
And then he broke
off, remembering his dream of the night before.
"I took it for
a dream," Alder said. "It troubled me, but I cherished it.
It was like a harrow on my heart's ground to think of it, and yet I
held to that pain, held it close to me. I wanted it. I hoped to dream
again."
"Did you?"
"Yes. I
dreamed again."
He looked unseeing
into the blue gulf of air and ocean west of where they sat. Low and
faint across the tranquil sea lay the sunlit hills of Kameber. Behind
them the sun was breaking bright over the mountains northern
shoulder.
"It was nine
days after the first dream. I was in that same place, but high up on
the hill. I saw the wall below me across the slope. And I ran down
the hill, calling out her name, sure of seeing her. There was someone
there. But when I came close, I saw it wasn't Lily. It was a man, and
he was stooping at the wall, as if he was repairing it. I said to
him, 'Where is she, where is Lily?' He didn't answer or look up. I
saw what he was doing. He wasn't working to mend the wall but to
unbuild it, prying with his fingers at a great stone. The stone never
moved, and he said, 'Help me, Hara!' Then I saw that it was my
teacher, Gannet, who named me. He has been dead these five years. He
kept prying and straining at the stone with his fingers, and said my
name again—'Help me, set me free.' And he stood up and reached
out to me across the wall, as she had done, and caught my hand. But
his hand burned, with fire or with cold, I don't know, but the touch
of it burned me so that I pulled away, and the pain and fear of it
woke me from the dream."
He held his hand
out as he spoke, showing a darkness on the back and palm like an old
bruise.
"I've learned
not to let them touch me," he said in a low voice.
Ged looked at
Alder's mouth. There was a darkening across his lips too.
"Hara, you've
been in mortal danger," he said, also softly.
"There is
more."
Forcing his voice
against silence, Alder went on with his story.
The next night when
he slept again he found himself on that dim hill and saw the wall
that dropped down from the hilltop across the slope. He went down
towards it, hoping to find his wife there. "I didn't care if she
couldn't cross it, if I couldn't, so long as I could see her and talk
to her," he said. But if she was there he never saw her among
all the others: for as he came closer to the wall he saw a crowd of
shadowy people on the other side, some clear and some dim, some he
seemed to know and others he did not know, and all of them reached
out their hands to him as he approached and called him by his name:
"Hara! let us come with you! Hara, set us free!"
"It's a
terrible thing to hear one's true name called by strangers,"
Alder said, "and it's a terrible thing to be called by the
dead."
He tried to turn
and climb back up the hill, away from the wall; but his legs had the
awful weakness of dream and would not carry him. He fell to his knees
to keep himself from being drawn down to the wall, and called out for
help, though there was no one to help him; and so he woke in terror.
Since then, every
night that he slept deeply, he found himself standing on the hill in
the dry grey grass above the wall, and the dead would crowd thick and
shadowy below it, pleading and crying to him, calling his name.
"I wake,"
he said, "and I'm in my own room. I'm not there, on that
hillside. But I know they are. And I have to sleep. I try to wake
often, and to sleep in daylight when I can, but I have to sleep at
last. And then I am there, and they are there. And I can't go up the
hill. If I move it's always downhill, towards the wall. Sometimes I
can turn my back to them, but then I think I hear Lily among them,
crying to me. And I turn to look for her. And they reach out to me."
He looked down at
his hands gripping each other.
"What am I to
do?" he said.
Sparrowhawk said
nothing.
After a long time
Alder said, "The harper I told you of was a good friend to me.
After a while he saw there was something amiss, and when I told him
that I couldn't sleep for fear of my dreams of the dead, he urged me
arid helped me to take ship's passage to Ea, to speak to a grey
wizard there." He meant a man trained in the School on Roke. "As
soon as that wizard heard what my dreams were he said I must go to
Roke."
"What is his
name?"
"Beryl. He
serves the Prince of Ea, who is Lord of the Isle of Taon."
The old man nodded.
"He had no
help to give me, he said, but his word was as good as gold to the
ship's master. So I went on the water again. That was a long journey,
coasting clear round Havnor and down the Inmost Sea. I thought maybe
being on the water, far from Taon, always farther, I might leave the
dream behind me. The wizard on Ea called that place in my dream the
dry land, and I thought maybe I'd be going away from it, going on the
sea. But every night I was there on the hillside. And more than once
in the night, as time went on. Twice, or three times, or every time
my eyes close, I'm on the hill, and the wall below me, and the voices
calling me. So I'm like a man crazy with the pain of a wound who can
find peace only in sleep, but the sleep is my torment, with the pain
and anguish of the wretched dead all crowding at the wall, and my
fear of them."
The sailors soon
began to shun him, he said, at night because he cried out and woke
them with his miserable wakenings, and in daylight because they
thought there was a curse on him or a gebbeth in him.
"And no relief
for you on Roke?"
"In the
Grove," Alder said, and his face changed entirely when he said
the word.
Sparrowhawk's face
had the same look for a moment.
"The Master
Patterner took me there, under those trees, and I could sleep. Even
at night I could sleep. In daylight, if the sun's on me—it was
like that in the afternoon, yesterday, here—if the warmth of
the sun's on me and the red of the sun shines through my eyelids, I
don't fear to dream. But in the Grove there was no fear at all, and I
could love the night again."
"Tell me how
it was when you came to Roke."
Though hampered by
weariness, anguish, and awe, Alder had the silver tongue of his
island; and what he left out for fear of going on too long or telling
the Archmage what he already knew, his listener could well imagine,
remembering when he himself first came to the Isle of the Wise as a
boy of fifteen.
When Alder left the
ship at the docks at Thwil Town, one of the sailors had drawn the
rune of the Closed Door on the top of the gangplank to prevent his
ever coming back aboard. Alder noticed it, but he thought the sailor
had good cause. He felt himself ill-omened; he felt he bore darkness
in him. That made him shyer than he would have been in any case in a
strange town. And Thwil was a very strange town.
"The streets
lead you awry," Sparrowhawk said.
"They do that,
my lord!—I'm sorry, my tongue will obey my heart, and not you—"
"Never mind. I
was used to it once. I can be Lord Goatherd again, if it eases your
speech. Go on."
Misdirected by
those he asked, or misunderstanding the directions, Alder wandered
about the hilly little labyrinth of Thwil Town with the School always
in sight and never able to get to it, until, having reached despair,
he came to a plain door in a bare wall on a dull square. After
staring at it a while he recognised the wall was the one he had been
trying to get to. He knocked, and a man with a quiet face and quiet
eyes opened the door.
Alder was ready to
say that he had been sent by the wizard Beryl of Ea with a message
for the Master Summoner, but he didn't have a chance to speak. The
Doorkeeper gazed at him a moment and said mildly, "You cannot
bring them into this house, friend."
Alder did not ask
who it was he could not bring with him. He knew. He had slept
scarcely at all the past nights, snatching fragments of sleep and
waking in terror, dozing off in the daylight, seeing the dry grass
sloping down through the sunlit deck of the ship, the wall of stones
across the waves of the sea. And waking, the dream was in him, with
him, around him, veiled, and he could hear, always, faintly, through
all the noises of wind and sea, the voices that cried his name. He
did not know if he was awake now or asleep. He was crazy with pain
and fear and weariness.
"Keep them
out," he said, "and let me in, for pity's sake let me in!"
"Wait here,"
the man said, as gently as before. "There's a bench,"
pointing. And he closed the door.
Alder went and sat
down on the stone bench. He remembered that, and he remembered some
boys of fifteen or so looking curiously at him as they went by and
entered that door, but what happened for some while after he could
recall only in fragments.
The Doorkeeper came
back with a young man with the staff and cloak of a Roke wizard. Then
Alder was in a room, which he understood was in a lodging house.
There the Master Summoner came and tried to talk with him. But Alder
by then was not able to talk. Between sleep and waking, between the
sunlit room and the dim grey hill, between the Summoner's voice
speaking to him and the voices calling him across the wall, he could
not think and he could not move, in the living world. But in the dim
world where the voices called, he thought it would be easy to walk on
down those few steps to the wall and let the reaching hands take him
and hold him. If he was one of them they would let him be, he
thought.
Then, as he
remembered, the sunlit room was altogether gone, and he was on the
grey hill. But with him stood the Summoner of Roke: a big, broad,
dark-skinned man, with a great staff of yew wood that shimmered in
the dim place.
The voices had
ceased calling. The people, the crowding figures at the wall, were
gone. He could hear a distant rustle and a kind of sobbing as they
went down into the darkness, went away.
The Summoner
stepped to the wall and put his hands on it.
The stones had been
loosened here and there. A few had fallen and lay on the dry grass.
Alder felt that he should pick them up and replace them, mend the
wall, but he did not.
The Summoner turned
to him and asked, "Who brought you here?"
"My wife,
Mevre."
"Summon her
here."
Alder stood dumb.
At last he opened his mouth, but it was not his wife's true name that
he spoke but her use-name, the name he had called her in life. He
said it aloud, "Lily…" The sound of it was not like
a white flower, but like a pebble dropping on dust.
No sound. Stars
shone small and steady in the black sky. Alder had never looked up at
the sky in this place before. He did not recognise the stars.
"Mevre!"
said the Summoner, and in his deep voice spoke some words in the Old
Speech.
Alder felt the
breath go out of him and could barely stand. But nothing stirred on
the long slope that led down to formless dark.
Then there was some
movement, something lighter, coming up the hill, coming slowly
nearer. Alder shook with fear and yearning, and whispered, "Oh
my dear love."
But the figure as
it came closer was too small to be Lily. He saw it was a child of
twelve or so, girl or boy he could not tell. It paid no heed to him
or the Summoner and never looked across the wall, but settled down
just under it. When Alder came closer and looked down he saw the
child was prying and pulling at the stones, trying to loosen one,
then another.
The Summoner was
whispering in the Old Speech. The child glanced up once indifferently
and went on tugging at the stones with its thin fingers that seemed
to have no strength in them.
This was so
horrible to Alder that his head spun; he tried to turn away, and
beyond that he could remember nothing till he woke in the sunny room,
lying in bed, weak and sick and cold.
People looked after
him: the aloof, smiling woman who kept the lodging house, and a
brown-skinned, stocky old man who came with the Doorkeeper. Alder
took him for a physician-sorcerer. Only after he had seen him with
his staff of olive wood did he understand that he was the Herbal, the
master of healing of the School on Roke.
His presence
brought solace, and he was able to give Alder sleep. He brewed up a
tea and had Alder drink it, and lighted some herb that burned slowly
with a smell like the dark earth under pine woods, and sitting nearby
began a long, soft chant. "But I must not sleep," Alder
protested, feeling sleep coming into him like a great dark tide. The
healer laid his warm hand on Alder's hand. Then peace came into
Alder, and he slipped into sleep without fear. So long as the
healer's hand was on his, or on his shoulder, it kept him from the
dark hillside and the wall of stones.
He woke to eat a
little, and soon the Master Herbal was there again with the tepid,
insipid tea and the earth-smelling smoke and the dull untuneful chant
and the touch of his hand; and Alder could have rest.
The healer had all
his duties at the School, so could be there only some hours of the
night. Alder got enough rest in three nights that he could eat and
walk about the town a little in the day and think and talk
coherently. On the fourth morning the three masters, the Herbal, the
Doorkeeper, and the Summoner, came to his room.
Alder bowed to the
Summoner with dread, almost distrust, in his heart. The Herbal was
also a great mage, but his art was not altogether different from
Alder's own craft, so they had a kind of understanding; and there was
the great kindness of his hand. The Summoner, though, dealt not with
bodily things but with the spirit, with the minds and wills of men,
with ghosts, with meanings. His art was arcane, dangerous, full of
risk and threat. And he had stood beside Alder there, not in the
body, on the boundary, at the wall. With him the darkness and the
fear returned.
None of the three
mages said anything at first. If they had one thing in common, it was
a great capacity for silence.
So Alder spoke,
trying to say what was in his heart, for nothing less would do.
"If I did some
wrong that brought me to that place, or brought my wife to me there,
or the other souls, if I can mend or undo what I did, I will. But I
don't know what it is I did."
"Or what you
are," the Summoner said.
Alder was mute.
"Not many of
us know who or what we are," said the Doorkeeper. "A
glimpse is all we get."
"Tell us how
you first went to the wall of stones," the Summoner said.
And Alder told
them.
The mages listened
in silence and said nothing for a while after he was done. Then the
Summoner asked, "Have you thought what it means to cross that
wall?"
"I know I
could not come back."
"Only mages
can cross the wall living, and only at utmost need. The Herbal may go
with a sufferer all the way to that wall, but if the sick man crosses
it, he does not follow."
The Summoner was so
tall and broad-bodied and dark that, looking at him, Alder thought of
a bear.
"My art of
Summoning empowers us to call the dead back across the wall for a
brief time, a moment, if there is need to do so. I myself question if
any need could justify so great a breach in the law and balance of
the world. I have never made that spell. Nor have I crossed the wall.
The Archmage did, and the King with him, to heal the wound in the
world the wizard called Cob made."
"And when the
Archmage did not return, Thorion, who was our Summoner then, went
down into the dry land to seek him," the Herbal said. "He
came back, but changed."
"There is no
need to speak of that," the big man said.
"Maybe there
is," said the Herbal. "Maybe Alder needs to know it.
Thorion trusted his strength too far, I think. He stayed there too
long. He thought he could summon himself back into life, but what
came back was only his skill, his power, his ambition—the will
to live that gives no life. Yet we trusted him, because we had loved
him. So he devoured us. Until Irian destroyed him."
Far from Roke, on
the Isle of Gont, Alder's listener interrupted him—"What
name was that?" Sparrowhawk asked.
"Irian, he
said."
"Do you know
that name?"
"No, my lord."
"Nor I."
After a pause Sparrowhawk went on softly, as if unwillingly. "But
I saw Thorion, there. In the dry land, where he had risked going to
seek me. It grieved me to see him there. I said to him he might go
back across the wall." His face went dark and grim. "That
was ill spoken. All is spoken ill between the living and the dead.
But I had loved him too."
They sat in
silence. Sparrowhawk got up abruptly to stretch his arms and rub his
thighs. They both moved about a bit. Alder got a drink of water from
the well. Sparrowhawk fetched out a garden spade and the new handle
to fit to it, and set to work smoothing the oaken shaft and tapering
the end that would go in the socket.
He said, "Go
on, Alder," and Alder went on with his story.
The two masters had
been silent for a while after the Herbal spoke about Thorion. Alder
got up the courage to ask them about a matter that had been much on
his mind: how those who died came to the wall, and how the mages came
there.
The Summoner
answered promptly: "It is a spirit journey."
The old healer was
more hesitant. "It's not in the body that we cross the wall,
since the body of one who dies stays here. And if a mage goes there
in vision, his sleeping body is still here, alive. And so we call
that voyager… we call what makes that journey from the body,
the soul, the spirit."
"But my wife
took my hand," Alder said. He could not say again to them that
she had kissed his mouth. "I felt her touch."
"So it seemed
to you," the Summoner said.
"If they
touched bodily, if a link was made," the Herbal said to the
Summoner, "might that not be why the other dead can come to him,
call to him, even touch him?"
"That is why
he must resist them," said the Summoner, with a glance at Alder.
His eyes were small, fiery.
Alder felt it as an
accusation, and not a fair one. He said, "I try to resist them,
my lord. I have tried. But there are so many of them—and she's
with them—and they're suffering, crying out to me."
"They cannot
suffer," the Summoner said. "Death ends all suffering."
"Maybe the
shadow of pain is pain," said the Herbal. "There are
mountains in that land, and they are called Paln."
The Doorkeeper had
scarcely spoken until now. He said in his quiet, easy voice, "Alder
is a mender, not a breaker. I don't think he can break that link."
"If he made it
he can break it," the Summoner said.
"Did he make
it?"
"I have no
such art, my lord," Alder said, so frightened by what they were
saying that he spoke angrily.
"Then I must
go down among them," said the Summoner.
"No, my
friend," said the Doorkeeper, and the old Herbal said, "You
last of us all."
"But this is
my art."
"And ours."
"Who then?"
The Doorkeeper
said, "It seems Alder is our guide. Having come to us for help,
maybe he can help us. Let us all go with him in his vision—to
the wall, though not across it."
So that night, when
late and fearfully Alder let sleep overcome him, and found himself on
the grey hill, the others were with him: the Herbal, a warm presence
in the chill; the Doorkeeper, elusive and silvery as starlight; and
the massive Summoner, the bear, a dark strength.
This time they were
standing not where the hill ran down into the dark, but on the near
slope, looking up to the top. The wall in this place ran along the
crest of the hill and was low, little more than knee height. Above it
the sky with its few small stars was perfectly black.
Nothing moved.
It would be hard to
walk uphill to the wall, Alder thought. Always before it had been
below him.
But if he could go
to it maybe Lily would be there, as she had been the first time.
Maybe he could take her hand, and the mages would bring her back with
him. Or he could step over the wall where it was so low and come to
her.
He began to walk up
the hill. It was easy, it was no trouble, he was almost there.
"Hara!" The Summoner's deep voice called him back like a
noose round his neck, a jerked leash. He stumbled, staggered forward
one step more, almost at the wall, dropped to his knees and reached
out to the stones. He was crying, "Save me!" but to whom?
To the mages, or to the shadows beyond the wall?
Then hands were on
his shoulders, living hands, strong and warm, and he was in his room,
with the healers hands indeed on his shoulders, and the werelight
burning white around them. And there were four men in the room with
him, not three.
The old Herbal sat
down on the bed with him and soothed him a while, for he was shaking,
shuddering, sobbing. "I can't do it," he kept saying, but
still he did not know if he was talking to the mages or to the dead.
When the fear and
pain began to lessen, he felt tired beyond bearing, and looked almost
without interest at the man who had come into the room. His eyes were
the color of ice, his hair and skin were white. A far Northerner,
from Enwas or Bereswek, Alder thought him.
This man said to
the mages, "What are you doing, my friends?"
"Taking risks,
Azver," said the old Herbal.
"Trouble at
the border, Patterner," said the Summoner.
Alder could feel
the respect they had for this man, their relief that he was there, as
they told him briefly what the trouble was.
"If he'll come
with me, will you let him go?" the Patterner asked when they
were done, and turning to Alder, "You need not fear your dreams
in the Immanent Grove. And so we need not fear your dreams."
They all assented.
The Patterner nodded and vanished. He was not there.
He had not been
there; he had been a sending, a presentment. It was the first time
Alder had seen the great powers of these masters made manifest, and
it would have unnerved him if he had not been past amazement and
fear.
He followed the
Doorkeeper out into the night, through the streets, past the walls of
the School, across fields under a high round hill, and along a stream
singing its water music softly in the darkness of its banks. Ahead of
them was a high wood, the trees crowned with grey starlight.
The Master
Patterner came along the path to meet them, looking just as he had in
the room. He and the Doorkeeper spoke for a minute, and then Alder
followed the Patterner into the Grove.
"The trees are
dark," Alder said to Sparrowhawk, "but it isn't dark under
them. There is a light—a lightness there."
His listener
nodded, smiling a little.
"As soon as I
came there, I knew I could sleep. I felt as if I'd been asleep all
along, in an evil dream, and now, here, I was truly awake: so I could
truly sleep. There was a place he took me to, in among the roots of a
huge tree, all soft with the fallen leaves of the tree, and he told
me I could lie there. And I did, and I slept. I cannot tell you the
sweetness of it."
The midday sun had
grown strong; they went indoors, and the host set out bread and
cheese and a bit of dried meat. Alder looked round him as they ate.
The house had only the one long room with its little western alcove,
but it was large and darkly airy, strongly built, with wide boards
and beams, a gleaming floor, a deep stone fireplace. "This is a
noble house," Alder said.
"An old one.
They call it the Old Mage's house. Not for me, nor for my master
Aihal who lived here, but for his master Heleth, who with him stilled
the great earthquake. It's a good house."
Alder slept a while
again under the trees with the sun shining on him through the moving
leaves. His host rested too, but not long; when Alder woke, there was
a good-sized basket of the small golden plums under the tree, and
Sparrowhawk was up in the goat pasture mending a fence. Alder went to
help him, but the job was done. The goats, however, were long gone.
"Neither of
'em's in milk," Sparrowhawk grumbled as they returned to the
house. "They've got nothing to do but find new ways through the
fence. I keep them for exasperation… The first spell I ever
learned was to call goats from wandering. My aunt taught me. It's no
more use to me now than if I sang them a love song. I'd better go see
if they've got into the widower's vegetables. You don't have the kind
of sorcery to charm a goat to come, do you?"
The two brown
nannies were indeed invading a cabbage patch on the outskirts of the
village. Alder repeated the spell Sparrowhawk told him:
Noth hierth malk
man, hiolk ban merth ban!
The goats gazed at
him with alert disdain and moved away a little. Shouting and a stick
got them out of the cabbages onto the path, and there Sparrowhawk
produced some plums from his pocket. Promising, offering, and
cajoling, he slowly led the truants back into their pasture.
"They're odd
creatures," he said, latching the gate. "You never know
where you are with a goat."
Alder thought that
he never knew where he was with his host, but did not say it.
When they were
sitting in the shade again, Sparrowhawk said, "The Patterner
isn't a Northerner, he's a Karg. Like my wife. He was a warrior of
Karego-At. The only man I know of who ever came from those lands to
Roke. The Kargs have no wizards. They distrust all sorcery. But
they've kept more knowledge of the Old Powers of the Earth than we
have. This man, Azver, when he was young, he heard some tale of the
Immanent Grove, and it came to him that the center of all the earth's
powers must be there. So he left his gods and his native tongue
behind him and made his way to Roke. He stood on our doorstep and
said, 'Teach me to live in that forest!' And we taught him, till he
began to teach us… So he became our Master Patterner. He's not
a gentle man, but he is to be trusted."
"I never could
fear him," Alder said. "It was easy to be with him. He'd
take me far into the wood with him."
They were both
silent, both thinking of the glades and aisles of that wood, the
sunlight and starlight in its leaves.
"It is the
heart of the world," Alder said.
Sparrowhawk looked
up eastward at the slopes of Gont Mountain, dark with trees. "I'll
go walking there," he said, "in the forest, come autumn."
After a while he
said, "Tell me what counsel the Patterner had for you, and why
he sent you here to me."
"He said, my
lord, that you knew more of the… the dry land than any living
man, and so maybe you would understand what it means that the souls
there come to me as they do, begging me for freedom."
"Did he say
how he thinks it came about?"
"Yes. He said
that maybe my wife and I didn't know how to be parted, only how to be
joined. That it was not my doing, but was maybe ours together,
because we drew each to the other, like drops of quicksilver. But the
Master Sum-moner didn't agree. He said that only a great power of
magery could so transgress the order of the world. Because my old
master Gannet also touched me across the wall, the Summoner said
maybe it was a mage power in him which had been hidden or disguised
in life, but now was revealed."
Sparrowhawk brooded
a while. "When I lived on Roke," he said, "I might
have seen it as the Summoner does. There I knew no power stronger
than what we call magery. Not even the Old Powers of the Earth, I
thought… If the Summoner you met is the man I think, he came
as a boy to Roke. My old friend Vetch of Iffish sent him to study
with us. And he never left. That's a difference between him and Azver
the Patterner. Azver lived till he was grown as a warrior's son, a
warrior himself, among men and women, in the thick of life. Matters
that the walls of the School keep out, he knows in his flesh and
blood. He knows that men and women love, make love, marry…
Having lived these fifteen years outside the walls, I incline to
think Azver might be on the better track. The bond between you and
your wife is stronger than the division between life and death."
Alder hesitated.
"I've thought it might be so. But it seems… shameless to
think it. We loved each other, more than I can say we loved each
other, but was our love greater than any other before us? Was it
greater than Morred's and Elfarran's?"
"Maybe not
less."
"How can that
be?"
Sparrowhawk looked
at him as if saluting something, and answered him with a care that
made Alder feel honored. "Well," he said slowly, "sometimes
there's a passion that comes in its springtime to ill fate or death.
And because it ends in its beauty, it's what the harpers sing of and
the poets make stories of: the love that escapes the years. That was
the love of the Young King and Elfarran. That was your love, Hara. It
wasn't greater than Morred's, but was his greater than yours?"
Alder said nothing,
pondering.
"There's no
less or greater in an absolute thing," Sparrowhawk said. "All
or nothing at all, the true lover says, and that's the truth of it.
My love will never die, he says. He claims eternity. And rightly. How
can it die when it's life itself? What do we know of eternity but the
glimpse we get of it when we enter in that bond?"
He spoke softly but
with fire and energy, then he leaned back, and after a minute said,
with a half smile, "Every oaf of a farm boy sings that, every
young girl that dreams of love knows it. But it's not a thing the
Masters of Roke are familiar with. The Patterner maybe knew it early.
I learned it late. Very late. Not quite too late." He looked at
Alder, the fire still in his eyes, challenging. "You had that,"
he said.
"I did."
Alder drew a deep breath. Presently he said, "Maybe they're
there together, in the dark land. Morred and Elfarran."
"No,"
Sparrowhawk said with bleak certainty.
"But if the
bond is true, what can break it?"
"There are no
lovers there."
"Then what are
they, what do they do, there in that land? You've been there, you
crossed the wall. You walked and spoke with them. Tell me!"
"I will."
But Sparrowhawk said nothing for a while. "I don't like to think
about it," he said. He rubbed his head and scowled. "You
saw…You've seen those stars. Little, mean stars, that never
move. No moon. No sunrise… There are roads, if you go down the
hill. Roads and cities. On the hill there's grass, dead grass, but
farther down there's only dust and rocks. Nothing grows. Dark cities.
The multitudes of the dead stand in the streets, or walk on the roads
to no end. They don't speak. They don't touch. They never touch."
His voice was low and dry. "There Morred would pass Elfarran and
never turn his head, and she wouldn't look at him… There's no
rejoining there, Hara. No bond. The mother doesn't hold her child,
there."
"But my wife
came to me," Alder said, "she called my name, she kissed my
mouth!"
"Yes. And
since your love wasn't greater than any other mortal love, and since
you and she aren't mighty wizards whose power might change the laws
of life and death, therefore, therefore something else is in this.
Something is happening, is changing. Though it happens through you
and to you, you are its instrument and not its cause."
Sparrowhawk stood
up and strode to the beginning of the path along the cliff and back
to Alder; he was charged, almost quivering with tense energy, like a
hawk about to stoop down on its prey.
"Did your wife
not say to you, when you called her by her true name, That is not my
name any more—?"
"Yes,"
Alder whispered.
"But how is
that? We who have true names keep them when we die, it's our use-name
that is forgotten… This is a mystery to the learned, I can
tell you, but as well as we understand it, a true name is a word in
the True Speech. That's why only one with the gift can know a child's
name and give it. And the name binds the being—alive or dead.
All the art of the Summoner lies in that… Yet when the master
summoned your wife to come by her true name, she didn't come to him.
You called by her use-name, Lily, and she came to you. Did she come
to you as to the one who knew her truly?"
He gazed at Alder
keenly and yet as if he saw more than the man who sat with him. After
a while he went on, "When my master Aihal died, my wife was here
with him; and as he was dying he said to her, all is changed, all
changed. He was looking across that wall. From which side I do not
know.
"And since
that time, indeed there have been changes—a king on Morred's
throne, and no Archmage of Roke. But more than that, much more. I saw
a child summon the dragon Kalessin, the Eldest: and Kalessin came to
her, calling her daughter, as I do. What does that mean? What does it
mean that dragons have been seen above the islands of the west? The
king sent to us, sent a ship to Gont Port, asking my daughter Tehanu
to come and take counsel with him concerning dragons. People fear
that the old covenant is broken, that the dragons will come to burn
fields and cities as they did before Erreth-Akbe fought with Orm
Embar. And now, at the boundary of life and death, a soul refuses the
bond of her name… I do not understand it. All I know is that
it is changing. It is all changing."
There was no fear
in his voice, only fierce exultation.
Alder could not
share that. He had lost too much and was too worn out by his struggle
against forces he could not control or comprehend. But his heart rose
to that gallantry.
"May it change
for the good, my lord," he said.
"Be it so,"
the old man said. "But change it must."
As the heat went
out of the day, Sparrowhawk said he had to walk to the village. He
carried the basket of plums with a basket of eggs nested in it.
Alder walked with
him and they talked. When Alder understood that Sparrowhawk bartered
fruit and eggs and the other produce of the little farm for barley
and wheat flour, that the wood he burned was gathered patiently up in
the forest, that his goats' not giving milk meant he must eke out
last year's cheese, Alder was amazed: how could it be that the
Archmage of Earthsea lived from hand to mouth? Did his own people not
honor him?
When he went with
him to the village, he saw women shut their doors when they saw the
old man coming. The marketer who took his eggs and fruit tallied the
count on his wooden tablet without a word, his face sullen and his
eyes lowered. Sparrowhawk spoke to him pleasantly, "A good day
to you then, Iddi," but got no answer.
"My lord,"
Alder asked as they walked home, "do they know who you are?"
"No,"
said the ex-Archmage, with a dry sidelong look. "And yes."
"But—"
Alder did not know how to speak his indignation.
"They know I
have no power of sorcery, but there's something uncanny about me.
They know I live with a foreigner, a Kargish woman. They know the
girl we call our daughter is something like a witch, but worse,
because her face and hand were burnt away by fire, and because she
herself burnt up the Lord of Re Albi, or pushed him off the cliff, or
killed him with the evil eye—their stories vary. They honor the
house we live in, though, because it was Aihal's and Heleth's house,
and dead wizards are good wizards… You're a townsman, Alder,
of an isle of Morred's kingdom. A village on Gont is another matter."
"But why do
you stay here, lord? Surely the king would do you proper honor—"
"I want no
honor," the old man said, with a violence that silenced Alder
entirely.
They walked on. As
they came to the house built at the cliff's edge he spoke again.
"This is my eyrie," he said.
They had a glass of
the red wine with supper, and another sitting out to watch the sun
set. They did not talk much. Fear of the night, of the dream, was
coming into Alder.
"I'm no
healer," his host said, "but perhaps I can do what the
Master Herbal did to let you sleep."
Alder looked his
question.
"I've been
thinking about it, and it seems to me maybe it was no spell at all
that kept you away from that hillside, but just the touch of a living
hand. If you like, we can try it."
Alder protested,
but Sparrowhawk said, "I'm awake hah0 most nights anyway."
So the guest lay that night in the low bed in the back corner of the
big room, and the host sat up beside him, watching the fire and
dozing.
He watched Alder,
too, and saw him fall asleep at last; and not long after that saw him
start and shudder in his sleep. He put out his hand and laid it on
Alder's shoulder as he lay half turned away. The sleeping man stirred
a little, sighed, relaxed, and slept on.
It pleased
Sparrowhawk that he could do this much. As good as a wizard, he told
himself with mild sarcasm.
He was not sleepy,
the tension was still in him. He thought about all Alder had told
him, and what they had talked about in the afternoon. He saw Alder
stand in the path by the cabbage patch saying the spell to call the
goats, and the goats' haughty indifference to the powerless words. He
remembered how he had used to speak the name of the Sparrowhawk, the
marsh hawk, the grey eagle, calling them down from the sky to him in
a rush of wings to grasp his arm with iron talons and glare at him,
eye to wrathful, golden eye… None of that any more. He could
boast, calling this house his eyrie, but he had no wings.
But Tehanu did. The
dragon's wings were hers to fly on.
The fire had burned
out. He pulled his sheepskin over him more closely, leaning his head
back against the wall, still keeping his hand on Alder's inert, warm
shoulder. He liked the man and was sorry for him.
He must remember to
ask him to mend the green pitcher, tomorrow.
The grass next to
the wall was short, dry, dead. No wind blew to make it move or
rustle.
He roused up with a
start, hah0 rising from the chair, and after a moment of bewilderment
put his hand back on Alder's shoulder, grasping it a little, and
whispered, "Hara! Come away, Hara." Alder shuddered, then
relaxed. He sighed again, turned more onto his face and lay still.
Sparrowhawk sat
with his hand on the sleeper's arm. How had he himself come there, to
the wall of stones? He no longer had the power to go there. He had no
way to find the way. As in the night before, Alder's dream or vision,
Alder's voyaging soul had drawn him with it to the edge of the dark
land.
He was wide awake
now. He sat gazing at the greyish square of the west window, full of
stars.
The grass under the
wall… It did not grow farther down where the hill leveled out
into the dim, dry land. He had said to Alder that down there was only
dust, only rock. He saw that black dust, black rock. Dead stream beds
where no water ever ran. No living thing. No bird, no field mouse
cowering, no glitter and buzz of little insects, the creatures of the
sun. Only the dead, with their empty eyes and silent faces.
But did birds not
die?
A mouse, a gnat, a
goat—a white-and-brown, clever-hoofed, yellow-eyed, shameless
goat, Sippy who had been Tehanu's pet, and who had died last winter
at a great age—where was Sippy? Not in the dry land, the dark
land. She was dead, but she was not there. She was where she
belonged, in the dirt. In the dirt, in the light, in the wind, the
leap of water from the rock, the yellow eye of the sun.
Then why, then why…
He watched Alder
mend the pitcher. Fat-bellied and jade green, it had been a favorite
of Tenar's; she had carried it all the way from Oak Farm, years ago.
It had slipped from his hands the other day as he took it from the
shelf. He had picked up the two big pieces of it and the little
fragments with some notion of gluing them back together so it could
sit out for looks, if never for use again. Every time he saw the
pieces, which he had put into a basket, his clumsiness had outraged
him.
Now, fascinated, he
watched Alder's hands. Slender, strong, deft, unhurried, they cradled
the shape of the pitcher, stroking and fitting and settling the
pieces of pottery, urging and caressing, the thumbs coaxing and
guiding the smaller fragments into place, reuniting them, reassuring
them. While he worked he murmured a two-word, tuneless chant. They
were words of the Old Speech. Ged knew and did not know their
meaning. Alder's face was serene, all stress and sorrow gone: a face
so wholly absorbed in time and task that timeless calm shone through
it.
His hands separated
from the pitcher, opening out from it like the sheath of a flower
opening. It stood on the oak table, whole.
He looked at it
with quiet pleasure.
When Ged thanked
him, he said, "It was no trouble at all. The breaks were very
clean. It's a well-made piece, and good clay. It's the shoddy work
that costs to mend."
"I had a
thought how you might find sleep," Ged said.
Alder had waked at
first light and had got up, so that his host could go to his bed and
sleep sound till broad day; but clearly the arrangement would not do
for long.
"Come along
with me," the old man said, and they set off inland on a path
that skirted the goats' pasture and wound between knolls, little,
half-tended fields, and inlets of the forest. Gont was a wild-looking
place to Alder, ragged and random, the shaggy mountain always
frowning and looming above.
"It seemed to
me," Sparrowhawk said as they walked, "if I could do as
well as the Master Herbal did, keeping you from the hill of the wall
only by putting my hand on you, that there might be others who could
help you. If you have no objection to animals."
"Animals?"
"You see,"
Sparrowhawk began, but got no further, interrupted by a strange
creature bounding down the path towards them. It was bundled in
skirts and shawls, feathers stuck out in all directions from its
head, and it wore high leather boots. "O Mastawk, O Mastawk!"
it shouted.
"Hello, then,
Heather. Gently now," said Sparrowhawk. The woman stopped,
rocking her body, her head-feathers waving, a large grin on her face.
"She knowed you was a-coming!" she bawled. "She made
that hawk's beak with her fingers like this, see, she did, and she
told me go, go, with her hand! She knowed you was a-coming!"
"And so I am."
"To see us?"
"To see you.
Heather, this is Master Alder."
"Master
Alder," she whispered, quieting suddenly as she included Alder
in her consciousness. She shrank, drew into herself, looked down at
her feet.
She had no leather
boots on. Her bare legs were coated from the knee down with smooth,
brown, drying mud. Her skirts were bunched, caught up into the
waistband.
"You've been
frogging, have you, Heather?"
She nodded
vacantly.
"I'll go tell
Aunty," she said, beginning in a whisper and ending with a
bellow, and bolted back the way she had come.
"She's a good
soul," Sparrowhawk said. "She used to help my wife. She
lives with our witch now and helps her. I don't think you'll object
to entering a witch's house?"
"Never in the
world, my lord."
"Many do.
Nobles and common folk, wizards and sorcerers."
"Lily my wife
was a witch."
Sparrowhawk bowed
his head and walked in silence for a while. "How did she learn
of her gift, Alder?"
"It was born
in her. As a child she'd make a torn branch grow on the tree again,
and other children brought her their broken toys to mend. But when
her father saw her do that he would strike her hands. Her family were
considerable persons in their town. Respectable persons," Alder
said in his even, gentle voice. "They didn't want her consorting
with witches. Since it would keep her from marriage with a
respectable man. So she kept all her study to herself. And the
witches of her town would have nothing to do with her, even when she
sought to learn from them, for they were afraid of her father, you
see. Then a rich man came to court her, for she was beautiful, as I
told you, my lord. More beautiful than I could say. And her father
told her she was to be married. She ran away that night. She lived by
herself, wandering, for some years. A witch here and there took her
in, but she kept herself by her skill."
"It's not a
big island, Taon."
"Her father
wouldn't seek her. He said no tinker witch was his daughter."
Again Sparrowhawk
bowed his head. "So she heard of you, and came to you."
"But she
taught me more than I could teach her," Alder said earnestly.
"It was a great gift she had."
"I believe
it."
They had come to a
little house or big hut, set down in a dell, with witch hazel and
broom in tangles about it, and a goat on the roof, and a flock of
white-speckled black hens squawking away, and a lazy little sheepdog
bitch standing up and thinking about barking and thinking better of
it and waving her tail.
Sparrowhawk went to
the low doorway, stooping to look in. "There you are, Aunty!"
he said. "I've brought you a visitor. Alder, a man of sorcery
from the-Isle of Taon. His craft is mending, and he's a master, I can
tell you, for I just watched him put back together Tenar's green
pitcher, you know the one, that I like a clumsy old fool dropped and
broke to pieces the other day."
He entered the hut,
and Alder followed him. An old woman sat in a cushioned chair near
the doorway where she could look out into the sunlight. Feathers
stuck out of her wispy white hair. A speckled hen was settled in her
lap. She smiled at Sparrowhawk with enchanting sweetness and nodded
politely to the visitor. The hen woke, cackled, and departed.
"This is
Moss," said Sparrowhawk, "a witch of many skills, the
greatest of which is kindness."
So, Alder imagined,
might the Archmage of Roke have introduced a great wizard to a great
lady. He bowed. The old woman ducked her head and laughed a little.
She made a circling
motion with her left hand, looking a query at Sparrowhawk.
"Tenar?
Tehanu?" he said. "Still in Havnor with the king, so far as
I know. They'll be having a fine time there, seeing all the sights of
the great city and the palaces."
"I made us
crowns," Heather shouted, bouncing out of the odorous, dark
jumble farther inside the house. "Like kings and queens. See?"
She preened the chicken feathers that stuck out of her thick hair at
all angles. Aunty Moss, becoming aware of her own peculiar headdress,
batted ineffectively at the feathers with her left hand and grimaced.
"Crowns are
heavy," Sparrowhawk said. He gently plucked the feathers from
the thin hair.
"Who's the
queen, Mastawk?" Heather cried. "Who's the queen? Bannen's
the king, who's the queen?"
"King Lebannen
has no queen, Heather."
"Why not? He
ought to. Why not?"
"Maybe he's
looking for her."
"He'll marry
Tehanu!" the woman shrieked, joyful. "He will!"
Alder saw
Sparrowhawk's face change, close, become rock.
He said only, "I
doubt it." He held the feathers he had taken from Moss's hair
and stroked them softly. "I've come to you for a favor, as
always, Aunty Moss," he said.
She reached her
good hand out and took his hand with such tenderness that Alder was
moved to the heart.
"I want to
borrow one of your puppies."
Moss began to look
sad. Heather, gawking beside her, puzzled it over for a minute and
then shouted, "The puppies! Aunty Moss, the puppies! But they're
all gone!"
The old woman
nodded, looking forlorn, caressing Sparrowhawk's brown hand.
"Somebody
wanted them?"
"The biggest
one got out and maybe it ran up in the forest and some creature
killed it for it never came back and then old Ramballs, he came and
said he needs sheepdogs and he'd take both and train them and Aunty
gave them to him because they chased the new chicks Snowflakes
hatched and ate out house and home, they did, besides."
"Well, Rambles
may have a bit of a job training them," Sparrowhawk said with a
half smile. "I'm glad he's got them but sorry they're gone,
since I wanted to borrow one for a night or two. They slept on your
bed, didn't they, Moss?"
She nodded, still
sad. Then, brightening a little, she looked up with her head to one
side and mewed.
Sparrowhawk
blinked, but Heather understood, "Oh! The kittens!" she
shouted. "Little Grey had four, and Old Black he killed one
before we could stop him, but there's still two or three somewhere
round here, they sleep with Aunty and Biddy most every night now the
little dogs are gone. Kitty! kitty! kitty! where are you, kitty,
kitty?" And after a good deal of commotion and scrambling and
piercing mews in the dark interior, she reappeared with a grey kitten
clutched squirming and squealing in her hand. "Here's one!"
she shouted, and threw it at Sparrowhawk. He caught it awkwardly. It
instantly bit him.
"There, there
now," he told it. "Calm down." A tiny, rumbling growl
emerged from it, and it tried to bite him again. Moss gestured, and
he set the little creature down in her lap. She stroked it with her
slow heavy hand. It flattened out at once, stretched, looked up at
her, and purred.
"May I borrow
it for a while?"
The old witch
raised her hand from the kitten in a royal gesture that said clearly:
It is yours and welcome.
"Master Alder
here is having troublesome dreams, you see, and I thought maybe
having an animal with him nights might help to ease the trouble."
Moss nodded gravely
and, looking up at Alder, slipped her hand under the kitten and
lifted it towards him. Alder took it rather gingerly into his hands.
It did not growl or bite. It scrambled up his arm and clung to his
neck under his hair, which he wore loosely gathered at the nape.
As they walked back
to the Old Mage's house, the kitten tucked inside Alder's shirt,
Sparrowhawk explained. "Once, when I was new to the art, I was
asked to heal a child with the redfever. I knew the boy was dying,
but I couldn't bring myself to let him go. I tried to follow him. To
bring him back. Across the wall of stones… And so, here in the
body, I fell down by the bedside and lay like the dead myself.
There was a witch
there who guessed what the matter was, and she had me taken to my
house and laid abed there. And in my house was an animal that had
befriended me when I was a boy on Roke, a wild creature that came to
me of its own will and stayed with me. An otak. Do you know them? I
think there are none in the North."
Alder hesitated. He
said, "I know of them only from the Deed that tells of how…
how the mage came to the Court of the Terrenon in Osskil. And the
otak tried to warn him of a gebbeth that walked with him. And he won
free of the gebbeth, but the little animal was caught and slain."
Sparrowhawk walked
on without speaking for twenty paces or so. "Yes," he said.
"So. Well, my otak also saved my life when I was caught by my
own folly on the wrong side of the wall, my body lying here and my
soul astray there. The otak came to me and washed me, the way they
wash themselves and their young, the way cats do, with a dry tongue,
patiently, touching me and bringing me back with its touch, bringing
me back into my body. And the gift the animal gave me was not only
life but a knowledge as great as I ever learned on Roke… But
you see, I forget all my learning.
"A knowledge,
I say, but it's rather a mystery. What's the difference between us
and the animals? Speech? All the animals have some way of speaking,
saying come and beware and much else; but they can't tell stories,
and they can't tell lies. While we can…
"But the
dragons speak: they speak the True Speech, the language of the
Making, in which there are no lies, in which to tell the story is to
make it be! Yet we call the dragons animals..
"So maybe the
difference isn't language. Maybe it's this: animals do neither good
nor evil. They do as they must do. We may call what they do harmful
or useful, but good and evil belong to us, who chose to choose what
we do. The dragons are dangerous, yes. They can do harm, yes. But
they're not evil. They're beneath our morality, if you will, like any
animal. Or beyond it. They have nothing to do with it.
"We must
choose and choose again. The animals need only be and do. We're
yoked, and they're free. So to be with an animal is to know a little
freedom…
"Last night, I
was thinking of how witches often have a companion, a familiar. My
aunt had an old dog that never barked. She called him Gobefore. And
the Archmage Nemmerle, when I first came to Roke Island, had a raven
that went with him everywhere. And I thought of a young woman I knew
once who wore a little dragon-lizard, a harekki, for her bracelet.
And so at last I thought of my otak. Then I thought, if what Alder
needs to keep him on this side of the wall is the warmth of a touch,
why not an animal? Since they see life, not death. Maybe a dog or cat
is as good as a Master of Roke…"
So it proved. The
kitten, evidently happy to be away from the household of dogs and
tomcats and roosters and the unpredictable Heather, tried hard to
show that it was a reliable and diligent cat, patrolling the house
for mice, riding on Alder's shoulder under his hair when permitted,
and settling right down to sleep purring under his chin as soon as he
lay down. Alder slept all night without any dream he remembered, and
woke to find the kitten sitting on his chest, washing its ears with
an air of quiet virtue.
When Sparrowhawk
tried to determine its sex, however, it growled and struggled. "All
right," he said, getting his hand out of danger quickly. "Have
it your way. It's either a male or a female, Alder, I'm certain of
that."
"I won't name
it, in any case," Alder said. "They go out like candle
flames, little cats. If you've named one you grieve more for it."
That day at Alder's
suggestion they went fence mending, walking the goat-pasture fence,
Sparrowhawk on the inside and Alder on the outside. Whenever one of
them found a place where the palings showed the beginning of rot or
the tie laths had been weakened, Alder would run his hands along the
wood, thumbing and tugging and smoothing and strengthening, a half-
articulate chant almost inaudible in his throat and chest, his face
relaxed and intent.
Once Sparrowhawk,
watching him, murmured, "And I used to take it all for granted!"
Alder, lost in his
work, did not ask him what he meant.
"There,"
he said, "that'll hold." And they moved on, followed
closely by the two inquisitive goats, who butted and pushed at the
repaired sections offence as if to test them.
"I've been
thinking," Sparrowhawk said, "that you might do well to go
to Havnor."
Alder looked at him
in alarm. "Ah," he said. "I thought maybe, if I have a
way now to keep away from… that place… I could go home
to Taon." He was losing faith in what he said as he said it.
"You might,
but I don't think it would be wise."
Alder said
reluctantly, "It is a great deal to ask of a kitten, to defend a
man against the armies of the dead."
"It is."
"But I—what
should I do in Havnor?" And, with sudden hope, "Would you
go with me?"
Sparrowhawk shook
his head once. "I stay here."
"The Lord
Patterner…"
"Sent you to
me. And I send you to those who should hear your tale and find out
what it means… I tell you, Alder, I think in his heart the
Patterner believes I am what I was. He believes I'm merely hiding
here in the forests of Gont and will come forth when the need is
greatest." The old man looked down at his sweaty, patched
clothes and dusty shoes, and laughed. "In all my glory," he
said.
"Beh,"
said the brown goat behind him.
"But all the
same, Alder, he was right to send you here, since she'd have been
here, if she hadn't gone to Havnor."
"The Lady
Tenar?"
"Hama Gondun.
So the Patterner himself called her," Sparrowhawk said, looking
across the fence at Alder, his eyes unfathomable. "A woman on
Gont. The Woman of Gont. Tehanu."
When Alder came
down to the docks, Farflyer was still there, taking on a cargo of
timbers; but he knew he had worn out his welcome on that ship. He
went to a small shabby coaster tied up next to her, the Pretty Rose.
Sparrowhawk had
given him a letter of passage signed by the king and sealed with the
Rune of Peace. "He sent it for me to use if I changed my mind,"
the old man had said with a snort. "It'll serve you." The
ship's master, after getting his purser to read it for him, became
quite deferential and apologised for the cramped quarters and the
length of the voyage. Pretty Rose was going to Havnor, sure enough,
but she was a coaster, trading small goods from port to port, and it
might take her a month to work clear round the southeast coast of the
Great Island to the King's City.
That was all right
with him, Alder said. For if he dreaded the voyage, he feared its
ending more.
New moon to half
moon, the sea voyage was a time of peace for him. The grey kitten was
a hardy traveler, busy mousing the ship all day but faithfully
curling up under his chin or within hand's reach at night; and to his
unceasing wonder, that little scrap of warm life kept him from the
wall of stones and the voices calling him across it. Not wholly. Not
so that he ever entirely forgot them. They were there, just through
the veil of sleep in darkness, just through the brightness of the
day. Sleeping out on deck those warm nights, he opened his eyes often
to see that the stars moved, swinging to the rocking of the moored
ship, following their courses through heaven to the west. He was
still a haunted man. But for a half month of summer along the coasts
of Kameber and Barnisk and the Great Island he could turn his back on
his ghosts.
For days the kitten
hunted a young rat nearly as big as it was. Seeing it proudly and
laboriously hauling the carcass across the deck, one of the sailors
called it Tug. Alder accepted the name for it.
They sailed down
the Ebavnor Straits and in through the portals of Havnor Bay. Across
the sunlit water little by little the white towers of the city at the
center of the world resolved out of the haze of distance. Alder stood
at the prow as they came in and looking up saw on the pinnacle of the
highest tower a flash of silver light, the Sword of Erreth-Akbe.
Now he wished he
could stay aboard and sail on and not go ashore into the great city
among great people with a letter for the king. He knew he was no fit
messenger. Why had such a burden been laid on him? How could it be
that a village sorcerer who knew nothing of high matters and deep
arts was called on to make these journeys from land to land, from
mage to monarch, from the living to the dead?
He had said
something like that to Sparrowhawk. "It's all beyond me,"
he had said. The old man looked at him a while and then, calling him
by his true name, said, "The world's vast and strange, Hara, but
no vaster and no stranger than our minds are. Think of that
sometimes."
Behind the city the
sky darkened with a thunderstorm inland. The towers burned white
against purple-black, and gulls soared like drifting sparks of fire
above them.
Pretty Rose was
moored, the gangplank run out. This time the sailors wished him well
as he shouldered his pack. He picked up the covered poultry basket in
which Tug crouched patiently, and went ashore.
The streets were
many and crowded, but the way to the palace was plain, and he had no
idea what to do except go there and say that he carried a letter for
the king from the Archmage Sparrowhawk.
And that he did,
many times.
From guard to
guard, from official to official, from the broad outer steps of the
palace to high anterooms, staircases with gilded banisters, inner
offices with tapestried walls, across floors of tile and marble and
oak, under ceilings coffered, beamed, vaulted, painted, he went
repeating his talisman: "I come from Sparrowhawk who was the
Archmage with a letter for the king." He would not give his
letter up. A retinue, a crowd of suspicious, semi-civil, patronising,
temporising, obstructive guards and ushers and officials kept
gathering and thickening around him and followed and impeded his slow
way into the palace.
Suddenly they were
all gone. A door had opened. It closed behind him.
He stood alone in a
quiet room. A wide window looked out over the roofs northwestward.
The thundercloud had cleared and the broad grey summit of Mount Onn
hovered above far hills.
Another door
opened. A man came in, dressed in black, about Alder's age, quick
moving, with a fine, strong face as smooth as bronze. He came
straight to Alder: "Master Alder, I am Lebannen."
He put out his
right hand to touch Alders hand, palm against palm, as the custom was
in Ea and the Enlades. Alder responded automatically to the familiar
gesture. Then he thought he ought to kneel, or bow at least, but the
moment to do so seemed to have passed. He stood dumb.
"You came from
my Lord Sparrowhawk? How is he? Is he well?"
"Yes, lord. He
sends you—" Alder hurriedly groped inside his jacket for
the letter, which he had intended to offer to the king kneeling, when
they finally showed him to the throne room where the king would be
sitting on his throne—"this letter, my lord."
The eyes watching
him were alert, urbane, as implacably keen as Sparrowhawk's, but
withholding even more of the mind within. As the king took the letter
Alder offered him, his courtesy was perfect. "The bearer of any
word from him has my heart's thanks and welcome. Will you forgive
me?"
Alder finally
managed a bow. The king walked over to the window to read the letter.
He read it twice at
least, then refolded it. His face was as impassive as before. He went
to the door and spoke to someone outside it, then turned back to
Alder. "Please," he said, "sit down with me. They'll
bring us something to eat. You've been all afternoon in the palace, I
know. If the gate captain had had the wits to send me word, I could
have spared you hours of climbing the walls and swimming the moats
they set around me… Did you stay with my Lord Sparrowhawk? In
his house on the cliff's edge?"
"Yes."
"I envy you.
I've never been there. I haven't seen him since we parted on Roke,
half my lifetime ago. He wouldn't let me come to him on Gont. He
wouldn't come to my crowning." Lebannen smiled as if nothing he
said was of any moment. "He gave me my kingdom," he said.
Sitting down, he
nodded to Alder to take the chair facing him across a little table.
Alder looked at the tabletop, inlaid with curling patterns of ivory
and silver, leaves and blossoms of the rowan tree twined about
slender swords.
"Did you have
a good voyage?" the king asked, and made other small talk while
they were served plates of cold meat and smoked trout and lettuces
and cheese. He set Alder a welcome example by eating with a good
appetite; and he poured them wine, the palest topaz, in goblets of
crystal. He raised his glass. "To my lord and dear friend,"
he said.
Alder murmured, "To
him," and drank.
The king spoke
about Taon, which he had visited a few years before—Alder
remembered the excitement of the island when the king was in Meoni.
And he spoke of some musicians from Taon who were in the city now,
harpers and singers come to make music for the court; it might be
Alder knew some of them; and indeed the names he said were familiar.
He was very skilled at putting his guest at ease, and food and wine
were a considerable help too.
When they were done
eating, the king poured them another half glass of wine and said,
"The letter concerns you, mostly. Did you know that?" His
tone had not changed much from the small talk, and Alder was fuddled
for a moment.
"No," he
said.
"Do you have
an idea what it deals with?"
"What I dream,
maybe," Alder said, speaking low, looking down.
The king studied
him for a moment. There was nothing offensive in his gaze, but he was
more open in that scrutiny than most men would have been. Then he
took up the letter and held it out to Alder.
"My lord, I
read very little."
Lebannen was not
surprised—some sorcerers could read, some could not—but
he clearly and sharply regretted putting his guest at a disadvantage.
The gold-bronze skin of his face went dusky red. He said, "I'm
sorry, Alder. May I read you what he says?"
"Please, my
lord," Alder said. The king's embarrassment made him, for a
moment, feel the king's equal, and he spoke for the first time
naturally and with warmth.
Lebannen scanned
the salutation and some lines of the letter and then read aloud:
"Alder of Taon
who bears this to you is one called in dream and not by his own will
to that land you and I crossed once together. He will tell you of
suffering where suffering is past and change where no thing changes.
We closed the door Cob opened. Now the wall itself maybe is to fall.
He has been to Roke. Only Azver heard him. My Lord the King will hear
and will act as wisdom instructs and need requires. Alder bears my
lifelong honor and obedience to my Lord the King. Also my lifelong
honor and regard to my lady Tenar. Also to my beloved daughter Tehanu
a spoken message from me.' And he signs it with the rune of the
Talon." Lebannen looked up from the letter into Alder's eyes and
held his gaze. "Tell me what it is you dream," he said.
So once more Alder
told his story.
He told it briefly
and not very well. Though he had been in awe of Sparrowhawk, the
ex-Archmage looked and dressed and lived like an old villager or
farmer, a man of Alder's own kind and standing, and that simplicity
had defeated all superficial timidity. But however kind and courteous
the king might be, he looked like the king, he behaved like the king,
he was the king, and to Alder the distance was insuperable. He
hurried through as best he could and stopped with relief.
Lebannen asked a
few questions. Lily and then Gannet had each touched Alder once:
never since? And Gannet's touch had burned?
Alder held out his
hand. The marks were almost invisible under a month's tan.
"I think the
people at the wall would touch me if I came close to them," he
said.
"But you keep
away from them?"
"I have done
so."
"And they are
not people you knew in life?"
"Sometimes I
think I know one or another."
"But never
your wife?"
"There are so
many of them, my lord. Sometimes I think she's there. But I can't see
her."
To talk about it
brought it near, too near. He felt the fear welling up in him again.
He thought the walls of the room might melt away and the evening sky
and the floating mountain-crown vanish like a curtain brushed aside,
to leave him standing where he was always standing, on a dark hill by
a wall of stones.
"Alder."
He looked up,
shaken, his head swimming. The room seemed bright, the king's face
hard and vivid.
"You'll stay
here in the palace?"
It was an
invitation, but Alder could only nod, accepting it as an order.
"Good. I'll
arrange for you to give the message you bear to Mistress Tehanu
tomorrow. And I know the White Lady will wish to talk with you."
He bowed. Lebannen
turned away.
"My lord—"
Lebannen turned.
"May I have my
cat with me?"
Not a flicker of a
smile, no mockery. "Of course."
"My lord, I am
sorry to my heart, to bring news that troubles you!"
"Any word from
the man who sent you is a grace to me and to its bearer. And I'd
rather get bad news from an honest man than lies from a flatterer,"
Lebannen said, and Alder, hearing the true accent of his home islands
in the words, was a little cheered.
The king went out,
and at once a man looked in the door Alder had entered by. "I
will take you to your chamber, if you wall follow me, sir," he
said. He was dignified, elderly, and well dressed, and Alder followed
him without any idea whether he was a nobleman or a servant, and
therefore not daring to ask him about Tug. In the room before the
room where he had met the king, the officials and guards and ushers
had absolutely insisted that he leave his poultry basket with them.
It had been eyed with suspicion and inspected with disapproval by ten
or fifteen officials already. He had explained ten or fifteen times
that he had the cat with him because he had nowhere in the city to
leave it. The anteroom where he had been compelled to set it down was
far behind him, he had not seen it there as they went through, he
would never find it now, it was half a palace away, corridors,
hallways, passages, doors…
His guide bowed and
left him in a small, beautiful room, tapestried, carpeted, a chair
with an embroidered seat, a window that looked out to the harbor, a
table on which stood a bowl of summer fruit and a pitcher of water.
And the poultry basket.
He opened it. Tug
emerged in a leisurely manner indicating his familiarity with
palaces. He stretched, sniffed Alder's fingers in greeting, and went
about the room examining things. He discovered a curtained alcove
with a bed in it and jumped up on the bed. A discreet knock at the
door. A young man entered carrying a large, flat, heavy wooden box
with no lid. He bowed to Alder, murmuring, "Sand, sir." He
placed the box in the far corner of the alcove. He bowed again and
left.
"Well,"
Alder said, sitting down on the bed. He was not in the habit of
talking to the kitten. Their relationship was one of silent, trustful
touch. But he had to talk to somebody. "I met the king today,"
he said.
The king had all
too many people to talk to before he could sit down on his bed. Chief
among them were the emissaries of the High King of the Kargs. They
were about to take their leave, having accomplished their mission to
Havnor, to their own satisfaction if not at all to Lebannen's.
He had looked
forward to the visit of these ambassadors as the culmination of years
of patient overture, invitation, and negotiation. For the first ten
years of his reign he had been able to accomplish nothing at all with
the Kargs. The God-King in Awabath rejected his offers of treaties
and trade and sent his envoys back unheard, declaring that gods do
not parley with vile mortals, least of all with accursed sorcerers.
But the God-Kings proclamations of universal divine empire were not
followed by the threatened fleets of a myriad ships bearing plumed
warriors to overrun the godless West. Even the pirate raids that had
plagued the eastern isles of the Archipelago for so long gradually
ceased. The pirates had become contrabanders, seeking to trade
whatever unlicensed goods they could smuggle out of Karego-At for
Archipelagan iron and steel and bronze, for the Kargad Lands were
poor in mines and metal.
It was from these
illicit traders that news first came of the rise of the High King.
On Hur-at-Hur, the
big, poor, easternmost island of the Kargad Lands, a warlord, Thol,
claiming descent from Thoreg of Hupun and from the God Wuluah, had
made himself High King of that land. Next he had conquered At-nini,
and then, with a fleet and an invading army drawn from both
Hur-at-Hur and Atnini, he had claimed dominion over the rich central
island, Karego-At. While his warriors were fighting their way towards
Awabath, the capital city, the people of the city rose up against the
tyranny of the God-King. They slaughtered the high priests, drove the
bureaucrats out of the temples, threw the gates wide, and welcomed
King Thol to the throne of Thoreg with banners and dancing in the
streets.
The God-King fled
with a remnant of his guards and hi-erophants to the Place of the
Tombs on Atuan. There in the desert, in his temple by the
earthquake-shattered ruins of the shrine of the Nameless Ones, one of
his priest-eunuchs cut the God-King's throat.
Thol proclaimed
himself High King of the Four Kargad Lands. As soon as he got word of
that, Lebannen sent ambassadors to greet his brother king and assure
him of the friendly disposition of the Archipelago.
Five years of
difficult and tiresome diplomacy had ensued. Thol was a violent man
on a threatened throne. In the wreckage of the theocracy, all control
in his realm was chancy, all authority questionable. Lesser kings
constantly declared themselves and had to be bought or beaten into
obedience to the High King. Sectarians issued from shrines and
caverns crying "Woe to the mighty!" and foretelling
earthquake, tidal wave, plague upon the deicides. Ruling a troubled,
divided empire, Thol could scarcely place any trust in the powerful
and wealthy Archipelagans.
It meant nothing to
him that their king talked about friendship, flourishing the Ring of
Peace. Did not the Kargs have a claim to that ring? It had been made
in ancient days in the West, but long ago, King Thoreg of Hupun had
accepted it as a gift from the hero Erreth-Akbe, a sign of amity
between the Kargad and Hardic lands. It had disappeared, and there
had been war, not amity. But then the Hawk-Mage had found the ring
and stolen it back, along with the Priestess of the Tombs of Atuan,
and carried both off to Havnor. So much for the trustworthiness of
the Archipelagans.
Through his envoys,
Lebannen patiently and politely pointed out that the Ring of Peace
had, to begin with, been Morred's gift to Elfarran, a cherished token
of the Archipelago's most beloved king and queen. And a very sacred
thing as well, for on it was the Bond rune, a mighty enchantment of
blessing. Nearly four centuries ago, Erreth-Akbe had taken it to the
Kargad Lands as a pledge of unbreakable peace. But the priests of
Awabath had broken the pledge, and broken the Ring. Some forty years
ago now, Spar-rowhawk of Roke and Tenar of Atuan had healed the Ring.
What, then, of the peace?
That had been the
gist of his messages to King Thol.
And a month ago,
just after the Long Dance of summer, a fleet of ships had come
sailing straight down the Passage of Felkway, up the Ebavnor Straits,
and in between the portals of Havnor Bay: long red ships with red
sails, carrying plumed warriors, gorgeous-robed emissaries, and a few
veiled women.
"Let the
daughter of Thol the High King, who sits upon the Throne of Thoreg
and whose ancestor was Wuluah, wear the Ring of Peace upon her arm,
as Queen Elfarran of Solea wore it, and this will be the sign of
everlasting peace between the Western and the Eastern Isles."
That was the High
King's message to Lebannen. It was written out in big Hardic runes on
a scroll, but before handing it to King Lebannen, Thol's ambassador
read it out loud, in public, at the reception of the emissaries at
the court in Havnor, with the whole court there to do the Kargish
envoys honor. Perhaps it was because the ambassador did not actually
read Hardic, but spoke the words loudly and slowly from memory, that
they had the tone of an ultimatum.
The princess said
nothing. She stood among the ten handmaidens or slave girls who had
accompanied her to Havnor and the flock of court ladies who had been
hastily assigned to look after her and do her honor. She was veiled,
entirely veiled, as was, it appeared, the custom of well-born women
in Hur-at-Hur. The veils, red with lines of gold embroidery, fell
straight down from a flat-brimmed hat or headdress, so that the
princess appeared to be a red column or pillar, cylindrical,
featureless, motionless, silent.
"The High King
Thol does us great honor," Lebannen said in his clear, quiet
voice; and then he paused. The court and the emissaries waited. "You
are welcome here, princess," he said to the veiled figure. It
did not stir.
"Let the
princess be lodged in the River House, and let all be as she
desires," Lebannen said.
The River House was
a beautiful small palace at the northern edge of the city, fitted
into the old city wall, with terraces built out over the little River
Serrenen. Queen Heru had built it, and it was often called the
Queen's House.
When Lebannen came
to the throne he had had it repaired and refurnished, along with the
Palace of Maharion, called the New Palace, in which he held court. He
used the River House only for summer festivities and sometimes as a
retreat for himself for a few days.
A little rustle now
went through his courtiers. The Queens House?
After urbanities
among the Kargish emissaries, Lebannen left the audience room. He
went to his dressing room, where he could be as alone as a king can
be, with his old servant, Oak, whom he had known all his life.
He slapped the
gilded scroll down on a table. "Cheese in a rat trap," he
said. He was shaking. He whipped the dagger he always wore out of its
sheath and stabbed it straight down through the High King's message.
"A pig in a poke," he said. "A piece of goods. The
Ring on her arm and the collar round my neck."
Oak stared at him
in blank dismay. Prince Arren of Enlad had never lost his temper.
When he was a child he might have wept for a moment, one bitter sob,
but that was all. He was too well trained, too well disciplined to
give way to anger. And as king, a king who had earned his realm by
crossing the land of the dead, he could be stern, but always, Oak
thought, too proud, too strong for anger.
"They will not
use me!" Lebannen said, stabbing the dagger down again, his face
so black and blind with fury that the old man drew back from him in
real fear.
Lebannen saw him.
He always saw the people around him.
He sheathed his
dagger. He said in a steadier voice,
"Oak, by my
name, I will destroy Thol and his kingdom before I let him use me as
a footstool to his throne." Then he drew a long breath and sat
down to let Oak lift the heavy, gold-weighted state robe from his
shoulders.
Oak never breathed
a word of this scene to anyone, but there was, of course, immediate
and continuous speculation about the princess of the Kargs and what
the king was going to do about her—or what, in fact, he had
already done.
He had not said
that he accepted the offer of the princess as his bride. For all
agreed she had been offered to him as his bride; the language about
Elfarran's Ring barely veiled the offer, or the bargain, or the
threat. But he had not refused it, either. His response (endlessly
analyzed) had been to say she was welcome, that all should be as she
desired, and that she should live in the River House: the Queen's
House. Surely that was significant? But on the other hand, why not in
the New Palace? Why send her across the city?
Ever since
Lebannen's coronation, ladies of noble houses and princesses of the
old royal lineages of Enlad, Ea, and Shelieth had come to visit or to
stay at the court. They had all been entertained most royally, and
the king had danced at their weddings as, one by one, they settled
for noblemen or wealthy commoners. It was well known that he liked
the company of women and their counsel as well, that he would
willingly flirt with a pretty girl and invite an intelligent woman to
advise him, tease him, or console him. But no girl or woman had ever
come near the rumor of a shadow of a chance of marrying him. And none
had ever been lodged in the River House.
The king must have
a queen, his advisors told him at regular intervals.
You really must
marry, Arren, his mother had told him the last time he saw her alive.
The heir of Morred,
will he have no heir? asked the common people.
To all of them he
had said, in various words and ways: Give me time. I have the ruins
of a kingdom to rebuild. Let me make a house worthy of a queen, a
realm my child can rule. And because he was well loved and trusted,
and still a young man, and for all his gravity a charming and
persuasive one, he had escaped all the hopeful maidens. Until now.
What was under the
stiff red veils? Who lived inside that unrevealing tent? The ladies
assigned to the princess's entourage were besieged by questions. Was
she pretty? Ugly? Was it true she was tall and thin, short and
muscular, white as milk, pockmarked, one-eyed, yellow-haired,
black-haired, forty-five years old, ten years old, a drooling cretin,
a brilliant beauty?
Gradually the
rumors began to run one way. She was young, though not a child; hair
neither yellow nor black; pretty enough, said some of the ladies;
coarse, said others. Spoke not a word of Hardic, they all said, and
would not learn. Hid among her women, and when forced to leave her
room, hid in her red tent-veils. The king had paid her a visit of
courtesy. She had not bowed to him, or spoken, or made any sign, but
stood there, said old Lady lyesa in exasperation, "like a brick
chimney."
He spoke to her
through men who had served as his envoys in the Kargad Lands and
through the Karg ambassador, who spoke fairly good Hardic.
Laboriously he transmitted his compliments and queries as to her
wishes and desires. The translators spoke to her women, whose veils
were shorter and somewhat less impenetrable. Her women gathered round
the motionless red pillar and mumbled and buzzed and returned the
translators, and the translators informed the king that the princess
was content and required nothing.
She had been there
a half month when Tenar and Tehanu arrived from Gont. Lebannen had
sent a ship and a message begging them to come, shortly before the
Kargad leet brought the princess, and for reasons that had nothing to
do with her or King Thol. But the first time he was alone nth Tenar,
he burst out, "What am I going to do with her? at can I do?"
"Tell me about
it," Tenar said, looking somewhat amazed.
Lebannen had spent
only a brief time with Tenar, though they had written a few letters
over the years; he was not yet used to her hair being grey, and she
seemed smaller than he remembered her; but with her he felt
immediately, as he had fifteen years earlier, that he could say
anything and she would understand.
"For five
years I've built up trade and tried to keep on good terms with Thol,
because he's a warlord and I don't want my kingdom pinched, as it was
in Maharion's reign, between dragons in the west and warlords in the
east. And because I rule in the Sign of Peace. And it went well
enough, till this. Till he sends this girl out of the blue, saying if
you want peace, give her Elfarran's Ring. Your Ring, Tenar! Yours and
Ged's!"
Tenar hesitated a
while. "She is his daughter, after all."
"What's a
daughter to a barbarian king? Goods. A bargaining piece to buy
advantage with. You know that! You were born there!"
It was unlike him
to speak so, and he heard it himself. He knelt down suddenly,
catching her hand and putting it over his eyes in sign of contrition.
"Tenar, I'm sorry. This disturbs me beyond all reason. I can't
see what to do."
"Well, so long
as you do nothing, you have some leeway… Maybe the princess
has some opinion of her own?"
"How can she?
Hidden in that red sack? She won't talk, she won't look out, she
might as well be a tent pole." He tried to laugh. His own
uncontrollable resentment alarmed him and he tried to excuse it.
"This came on just as I had troubling news from the west. It was
for that that I asked you and Tehanu to come. Not to bother you with
this foolishness."
"It isn't
foolishness," Tenar said, but he brushed the topic away,
dismissed it, and began to talk about dragons.
Since the news from
the west had been troubling indeed, he had succeeded in not thinking
about the princess at all, most of the time. He was aware that it was
not his habit to handle matters of state by ignoring them.
Manipulated, one manipulates others. Several days after their
conversation, he asked Tenar to visit the princess, to try to get her
to talk. After all, he said, they spoke the same language.
"Probably,"
Tenar said. "I never knew anybody from Hur-at-Hur. On Atuan, we
called them barbarians."
He was chastised.
But of course she did what he asked. Presently she reported that she
and the princess spoke the same language, or nearly the same, and
that the princess had not known that there were any other languages.
She had thought all the people here, the courtiers and ladies, were
malicious lunatics, mocking her by chattering and yapping like
animals without human speech. As well as Tenar could tell, she had
grown up in the desert, in King Thol's original domain on Hur-at-Hur,
and had only been very briefly at the imperial court in Awabath
before she was sent on to Havnor.
"She's
frightened," Tenar said.
"So she hides
in her tent. What does she think I am?"
"How could she
know what you are?"
He scowled. "How
old is she?"
"Young. But a
woman."
"I can't marry
her," he said, with sudden resolution. "I'll send her
back."
"A returned
bride is a dishonored woman. If you send her back, Thol might kill
her to keep the dishonor from his house. He'll certainly consider
that you intend to dishonor him."
The look of fury
came into his face again.
Tenar forestalled
him. "Barbarian customs," she said stiffly.
He strode up and
down the room. "Very well. But I will not consider this girl as
queen of the Kingdom of Morred. Can she be taught to speak Hardic? A
few words, at least? Is she unteachable? I'll tell Thol that a Hardic
king can't marry a woman who doesn't speak the language of the realm.
I don't care if he doesn't like it, he needs the slap. And it buys me
time."
"And you'll
ask her to learn Hardic?"
"How can I ask
her anything if she takes it all for gibberish? What possible use is
there in my going to her? I thought perhaps you'd speak to her,
Tenar… You must see what an imposition this is, using this
girl to make Thol appear my equal, using the Ring—the Ring you
brought us—as a trap! I cannot even seem to condone it. I'm
willing to temporise, to delay, in order to keep the peace. Nothing
more. Even that much deceit is vile. Tell the girl what you think
best. I will have nothing to do with her."
And he went out in
a righteous wrath, which cooled slowly into an uneasy feeling much
resembling shame.
When the Kargish
emissaries announced they would be leaving soon, Lebannen prepared a
carefully worded message for King Thol. He expressed his appreciation
of the honor of the princess's presence in Havnor and the pleasure he
and his court would have in introducing her to the manners, customs,
and language of his kingdom. He said nothing at all about the Ring,
about marrying her, or about not marrying her.
It was in the
evening after his conversation with the dream-troubled sorcerer from
Taon that he met for the last time with the Kargs and gave them his
letter to the High King. He read it aloud first, as the ambassador
had read aloud Thol's letter to him.
The ambassador
listened complacently. "The High King will be pleased," he
said.
All the time he was
talking amenities to the emissaries and displaying the gifts he was
sending to Thol, Lebannen puzzled over this easy acceptance of his
evasiveness. His thoughts all came to one conclusion: He knows I'm
stuck with her. To which his mind made a passionate silent answer:
Never.
He inquired whether
the ambassador would be going by the River House to bid his princess
farewell. The ambassador looked at him blankly, as if he had been
asked if he was going to say goodbye to a package he had delivered.
Lebannen felt the anger rising in his heart again. He saw the
ambassador's face change a little, taking on a wary, placating look.
He smiled and wished the emissaries a fair wind to the Kargad Lands.
He went out of the audience chamber and to his own room.
Rites and ceremony
hedged most of his acts, and as king he must be in public most of his
life; but because he had come to a throne empty for centuries, a
palace where there were no protocols, he had been able to have some
things as he liked them. He had kept ceremony out of his bedroom. His
nights were his own. He said good night to Oak, who would sleep in
the anteroom, and shut the door. He sat down on his bed. He felt
tired and angry and strangely desolate.
Around his neck he
always wore a slight gold chain with a little pouch of cloth-of-gold
on it. In the pouch was a pebble: a dull, black bit of rock, rough
edged. He took it out and held it in his hand as he sat and thought.
He tried to turn
his mind away from all this stupidity about the Kargish girl by
thinking about the sorcerer Alder and his dreams. But all that came
into his mind was a painful envy of Alder for having gone ashore on
Gont, having talked with Ged, having stayed with him.
That was why he
felt desolate. The man he called his lord, the man he had loved above
all others, wouldn't let him come near, wouldn't come to him.
Did Ged believe
that because he had lost his wizardly power, Lebannen must think less
of him? must despise him?
Given the power
that power had over the minds and hearts of men, it was not an
implausible thought. But surely Ged knew him better, or at least
thought better of him.
Was it that, having
been truly Lebannen's lord and guide, Ged could not bear to be his
subject? That might indeed be hard for the old man to bear: the
blunt, irrevocable reversal of their status.
But Lebannen
remembered very clearly how Ged had knelt to him, down on both knees,
on Roke Knoll, in the shadow of the dragon and in the sight of the
masters whose master Ged had been. He had stood up and kissed
Lebannen, telling him to rule well, calling him my lord and dear
companion.
"He gave me my
kingdom," Lebannen had said to Alder. That had been the moment
he gave it. Wholly, freely.
And that was why
Ged wouldn't come to Havnor, wouldn't let Lebannen come to take
counsel with him. He had handed over the power—wholly, freely.
He would not even seem to meddle, to cast his shadow across
Lebannen's light.
"He has done
with doing," the Doorkeeper had said.
But Alder's story
had moved Ged to send the man here, to Lebannen, asking him to act as
need required.
It was indeed
strange, Alders story; and Ged's saying that maybe the wall itself
was going to fall was stranger yet. What could it mean? And why
should one man's dreams bear so much weight?
He himself had
dreamed of the outskirts of the dryland, long ago, when he and Ged
the Archmage were traveling together, before they ever came to
Selidor.
And on that
westernmost of all the islands he had followed Ged into the dry land.
Across the wall of stones, awn to dim cities where the shadows of the
dead stood in doorways or walked without aim or purpose in streets
lit only ay the moveless stars. With Ged he had walked across all it
country, a weary way to a dark valley of dust and stones at the foot
of the mountains whose only name was Paln.
He opened his palm,
looked down at the little black stone he held, closed his hand on it
again.
From the valley of
the dry river, having done what they came to do, they had climbed up
into the mountains, because there was no turning back. They had gone
up the road forbidden to the dead, climbing, clambering over rocks
that scored and burned their hands, till Ged could go no farther.
Lebannen had carried him as far as he could, then crawled on with him
to the end of darkness, the hopeless cliff of night. And so had come
back, with him, into the sunlight and the sound of the sea breaking
on the shores of life.
It was a long time
since he had thought so vividly of that terrible journey. But the bit
of black stone from those mountains was always over his heart.
And it seemed to
him now that the memory of that land, the darkness of it, the dust,
was always in his mind just under the bright various play and
movement of the days, although he always looked away from it. He
looked away because he could not bear the knowledge that in the end
that was where he would come again: come alone, uncompanioned, and
forever. To stand empty-eyed, unspeaking, in the shadows of a shadow
city. Never to see sunlight, or drink water, or touch a living hand.
He got up abruptly,
shaking off these morbid thoughts.
He closed the stone
in its pouch, made ready for bed, put out the lamp, and lay down. At
once he saw it again: the dim grey land of dust and rock It rose up
far ahead into black, sharp peaks, but here it sloped away, always
downward, to the right, into utter darkness. "What lies that
way?" he had asked Ged as they walked on and on. His companion
had said he did not know, that maybe that way there was no end.
Lebannen sat up, angered and alarmed by the relentless drift of his
thought. His eyes sought the window. It looked north. He liked the
view from Havnor across the hills to the tall, grey-headed mountain
Onn. Farther north, unseen, across all the width of the Great Island
and the Sea of Ea, was Enlad, his home.
Lying in bed he
could see only the sky, a clear summer night sky, the Heart of the
Swan riding high among lesser stars. His kingdom. The kingdom of
light, of life, where the stars blossomed like white flowers in the
east and drooped in their brightness to the west. He would not think
of that other realm where the stars stayed still, where there was no
power in a man's hand, and no right way to go because no way led
anywhere.
Lying gazing at the
stars, he turned his mind deliberately from those memories and from
the thought of Ged. He thought of Tenar: the sound of her voice, the
touch of her hand. Courtiers were ceremonious, cautious about how and
when they touched the king. She was not. She laid her hand on his,
laughing. She was bolder with him than his mother had been.
Rose, princess of
the House of Enlad, had died of a fever two years ago, while he was
on shipboard coming to make a royal visit to Berila on Enlad and the
isles south of it. He had not known of her death till he came home to
a city and a house in mourning.
His mother was
there now in the dark country, the dry country. If he came there and
passed her in the street she would not look at him. She would not
speak to him.
He clenched his
hands. He rearranged the cushions of his bed, tried to make himself
easy, tried to set his mind away from there, to think of things that
would keep him from going back there. To think of his mother living,
her voice, her dark eyes under dark arched brows, her delicate hands.
Or to think of
Tenar. He knew he had asked Tenar to come to Havnor not only to take
counsel from her but because she was the mother that remained to him.
He wanted that love, to give it and be given it. The ruthless love
that makes no allowances, no conditions. Tenar's eyes were grey, not
dark, but she looked right through him with a piercing tenderness
undeceived by anything he said or did.
He knew he did well
what he had been called to do. He knew he was good at playing king.
But only with his mother and with Tenar had he ever known beyond any
self-doubt what it was to be king.
Tenar had known him
since he was a very young man, not yet crowned. She had loved him
then and ever since, for his sake, for Ged's sake, and for her own.
He was to her the son who never breaks your heart.
But she thought he
might yet manage to, if he kept on being so rageful and dishonest
about this poor girl from Hur-at-Hur.
She attended the
final audience of the emissaries from Awabath. Lebannen had asked her
to be there, and she was glad to come. Finding Kargs at the court
when she came there at the beginning of summer, she had expected them
to shun her or at least to eye her askance: the renegade priestess
who with the thieving Hawk Mage had stolen the Ring of Erreth-Akbe
from the treasury of the Tombs of Atuan and traitorously fled with it
to Havnor. It was her doing that the Archipelago had a king again.
The Kargs might well hold it against her.
And Thol of
Hur-at-Hur had restored the worship of the Twin Gods and the Nameless
Ones, whose greatest temple Tenar had despoiled. Her treason had been
not only political but religious.
Yet that was long
ago, forty years and more, almost the stuff of legend; and statesmen
remember things selectively. Thol's ambassador had begged the honor
of an audience with her and had greeted her with elaborately pious
respect, some of which she thought was real. He called her Lady Arha,
the Eaten One, the One Ever Reborn. She had not been called by those
names for years, and they sounded very strange to her. But it gave
her a keen, rueful pleasure to hear her native tongue and to find she
could still speak it.
So she came to bid
the ambassador and his company goodbye. She asked him to assure the
High King of the Kargs that his daughter was well, and she looked
admiringly a last time at the tall, rawboned men with their pale,
braided hair, their plumed headdresses, their court armor of silver
mesh interwoven with feathers. When she lived in the Kargad Lands she
had seen few men of her own race. Only women and eunuchs had lived at
the Place of the Tombs.
After the ceremony
she escaped into the gardens of the palace. The summer night was warm
and restless, flowering shrubs of the gardens stirring in the night
wind. The sounds of the city outside the palace walls were like the
murmur of a quiet sea. A couple of young courtiers were walking
entwined under the arbors; not to disturb them, Tenar walked among
the fountains and the roses at the other end of the garden.
Lebannen had left
the audience scowling again. What was wrong with him? So far as she
knew, he had never before rebelled against the obligations of his
position. Certainly he knew that a king must marry and has little
real choice as to whom he marries. He knew that a king who does not
obey his people is a tyrant. He knew his people wanted a queen,
wanted heirs to the throne. But he had done nothing about it. Women
of the court had been happy to gossip to Tenar about his several
mistresses, none of whom had lost anything by being known as the
king's lover. He had certainly managed all that quite well, but he
couldn't expect to do so forever. Why was he so enraged by King
Thol's offering him a perfectly appropriate solution?
Imperfectly
appropriate, perhaps. The princess was something of a problem.
Tenar was going to
have to try to teach the girl Hardic. And to find ladies willing to
instruct her in the manners of the Archipelago and the etiquette of
the court—something she certainly wasn't capable of herself.
She had more sympathy with the princess's ignorance than with the
courtiers' sophistication.
She resented
Lebannen's failure or inability to take the girl's point of view.
Couldn't he imagine what it was like for her? Brought up in the
women's quarters of a warlord's fortress in a remote desert land,
where she probably had never seen any man but her father and uncles
and some priests; suddenly carried off from that changeless poverty
and rigidity of life, by strangers, on a long and frightening sea
voyage; abandoned among people whom she knew of only as irreligious
and bloodthirsty monsters who dwelt on the far edge of the world, not
truly human at all because they were wizards who could turn into
animals and birds—And she was to marry one of them!
Tenar had been able
to leave her own people and come to live among the monsters and
wizards of the West because she had been with Ged, whom she loved and
trusted. Even so it had not been easy; often her courage had failed.
For all the welcome the people of Havnor had given her, the crowds
and cheering and flowers and praise, the sweet names they called her,
the White Lady, the Peace Bringer, Tenar of the Ring—for all
that, she had cowered in her room in the palace those nights long
ago, in misery because she was so lonely, and nobody spoke her
language, and she didn't know any of the things they all knew. As
soon as the rejoicings were over and the Ring was in its place she
had begged Ged to take her away, and he had kept his promise,
slipping away with her to Gont. There she had lived in the Old Mage's
house as Ogion's ward and pupil, learning how to be an Archipelagan,
till she saw the way she wanted to follow for herself as a woman
grown.
She had been
younger than this girl when she came to Havnor with the Ring. But she
had not grown up powerless, as the princess had. Though her power as
the One Priestess had been mostly ceremonial, nominal, she had taken
real control of her fate when she broke with the grim ways of her
upbringing and won freedom for her prisoner and herself. But the
daughter of a warlord would have control over only trivial things.
When her father made himself king she would be called princess, she
would be given richer clothing, more slaves, more eunuchs, more
jewelry, until she herself was given in marriage; but she would have
no say in any of it. All she ever saw of the world outside the
women's quarters would be through window slits in thick walls,
through layers of red veiling.
Tenar counted
herself lucky not to have been born on so backward and barbaric an
island as Hur-at-Hur, never to have worn the feyag. But she knew what
it was to grow up in the grip of an iron tradition. It behooved her
to do what she could to help the princess, so long as she was in
Havnor. But she didn't intend to stay here long.
Strolling in the
garden, watching the fountains glimmer in starlight, she thought
about how and when she could go home.
She did not mind
the formalities of court life or the knowledge that under the
civility simmered a stew of ambitions, rivalries, passions,
complicities, collusions. She had grown up with rituals and hypocrisy
and hidden politics, and none of it frightened or worried her. She
was simply homesick. She wanted to be back on Gont, with Ged, in
their house.
She had come to
Havnor because Lebannen sent for her and Tehanu, and Ged if he would
come; but Ged wouldn't come, and Tehanu wouldn't come without her.
That did frighten and worry her. Could her daughter not break free
from her? It was Tehanu's counsel Lebannen needed, not hers. But her
daughter clung to her, as ill at ease, as out of place in the court
of Havnor as the girl from Hur-at-Hur was, and like her, silent, in
hiding.
So Tenar must play
nursemaid, tutor, and companion now to both of them, two scared girls
who didn't know how to take hold of their power, while she wanted no
power on earth except the freedom to go home where she belonged and
help Ged with the garden.
She wished they
could grow white roses like these, at home. Their scent was so sweet
in the night air. But it was too windy on the Overfell, and the sun
was too strong in summer. And probably the goats would eat the roses.
She went back
indoors at last and made her way through the eastern wing to the
suite of rooms she shared with Tehanu. Her daughter was asleep, for
it was late. A flame no bigger than a pearl burned on the wick of a
tiny alabaster lamp. The high rooms were soft, shadowy. She blew out
the lamp, got into bed, and soon sank towards sleep.
She was walking
along a narrow, high-vaulted corridor of stone. She carried the
alabaster lamp. Its faint oval of light died away into darkness in
front of her and behind her. She came to the door of a room that
opened off the corridor. Inside the room were people with the wings
of birds. Some had the heads of birds, hawks and vultures. They stood
or squatted motionless, not looking at her or at anything, with eyes
encircled with white and red. Their wings were like huge black cloaks
hanging down behind them. She knew they could not fly. They were so
mournful, so hopeless, and the air in the room was so foul that she
struggled to turn, to run away, but she could not move; and fighting
that paralysis, she woke.
There were the warm
shadows, the stars in the window, the scent of roses, the soft stir
of the city, Tehanu's breathing as she slept.
Tenar sat up to
shake off the remnants of the dream. It had been of the Painted Room
in the Labyrinth of the Tombs, where she had first met Ged face to
face, forty years ago. In the dream the paintings on the walls had
come to life. Only it was not life. It was the endless, timeless
unlife of those who died without rebirth: those accursed by the
Nameless Ones: infidels, westerners, sorcerers.
After you died you
were reborn. That was the sure knowledge in which she had been
brought up. When as a child she was taken to the Tombs to be Arha,
the Eaten One, they told her that she alone of all people had been
and would be reborn as herself, life after life. Sometimes she had
believed that, but not always, even when she was the priestess of the
Tombs, and never since. But she knew what all the people of the
Kargad Lands knew, that when they died they would return in a new
body, the lamp that guttered out flickering up again that same
instant elsewhere, in a woman's womb or the tiny egg of a minnow or a
windborne seed of grass, coming back to be, forgetful of the old
life, fresh for the new, life after life eternally.
Only those outcast
by the earth itself, by the Old Powers, the dark sorcerers of the
Hardic Lands, were not reborn. When they died—so said the
Kargs—they did not rejoin the living world, but went to a
dreary place of half being where, winged but flightless, neither bird
nor human, they must endure without hope. How the priestess Kossil
had relished telling her about the terrible fate of those boastful
enemies of the God-King, their souls doomed to be cast out of the
world of light forever!
But the afterlife
Ged had told her of, where he said his people went, that changeless
land of cold dust and shadow—was that any less dreary, any less
terrible?
Unanswerable
questions clamored in her mind: because she was no longer a Karg,
because she had betrayed the sacred place, must she go to that dry
land when she died? Must Ged go there? Would they pass each other
there, uncaring? That was not possible. But what if he must go there,
and she be reborn, so that their parting must be eternal?
She would not think
about all that. It was clear enough why she had dreamed of the
Painted Room, all these years after she had left all that behind her.
It had to do with seeing the ambassadors, speaking Kargish again, of
course. But still she lay upset, unnerved by the dream. She did not
want to go back to the nightmares of her youth. She wanted to be back
in the house on the Overfell, lying by Ged, hearing Tehanu's breath
while she slept. When he slept Ged lay still as a stone; but the fire
had left some damage in Tehanu's throat so there was a little
harshness always in her breathing, and Tenar had listened to that,
listened for it, night after night, year after year. That was life,
that was life returning, that dear sound, that slight harsh breath.
Listening to it,
she slept again at last. If she dreamed it was only of gulfs of air
and the colors of morning moving in the sky.
Alder woke very
early. His little companion had been restless all night, and so had
he. He was glad to get up and go to the window and sit sleepily
watching light come into the sky over the harbor, fishing boats set
out and the sails of ships loom from a low mist in the great bay, and
listening to the hum and bustle of the city making ready for the day.
About the time he began to wonder if he should venture into the
bewilderment of the palace to find what he was supposed to do, there
was a knock on his door. A man brought in a tray of fresh fruit and
bread, a jug of milk, and a small bowl of meat for the kitten. "I
will come to conduct you to the king's presence when the fifth hour
is told," he informed Alder solemnly, and then rather less
formally told him how to get down into the palace gardens if he
wanted a walk.
Alder knew of
course that there were six hours from midnight to noon and six hours
from noon to midnight, but had never heard the hours told, and
wondered what the man meant.
He learned,
presently, that here in Havnor four trumpeters went out on the high
balcony from which rose the highest tower of the palace, the one that
was topped with the slender steel blade of the hero's sword, and at
the fourth and fifth hours before noon, and at noon, and at the
first, second, and third hours after noon they blew their trumpets
one to the west, one to the north, one to the east, one to the south.
So the courtiers of the palace and the merchants and shippers of the
city could arrange their doings and meet their appointments at the
hour agreed. A boy he met walking in the gardens explained all this,
a small, thin boy in a tunic that was too long for him. He explained
that the trumpeters knew when to blow their trumpets because there
were great sand clocks in the tower, as well as the Pendulum of Ath
which hung down from high up in the tower and if set swinging just at
the hour would cease to swing just as the next hour began. And he
told Alder that the tunes the trumpeters played were all parts of the
Lament for Erreth-Akbe that King Maharion wrote when he came back
from Selidor, a different part for each hour, but only at noon did
they play the whole tune through. And if you wanted to be somewhere
at a certain hour, you should keep an eye on the balconies, because
the trumpeters always came out a few minutes early, and if the sun
was shining they held up their silver trumpets to flash and shine.
The boy was called Rody and he had come with his father, the Lord of
Metama on Ark, to stay a year in Havnor, and he went to school in the
palace, and he was nine, and he missed his mother and his sister.
Alder was back in
his room in time to meet his guide, less nervous than he might have
been. The conversation with the child had reminded him that the sons
of lords were children, that lords were men, and that it was not men
he need fear.
His guide brought
him through the palace corridors to a long, light room with windows
all along one wall, looking out over Havnor's towers and fantastic
bridges that arched over the canals and leapt from roof to roof and
balcony to balcony across the streets. He half saw that panorama as
he stood near the door, hesitant, not knowing if he should go forward
to the group of people at the far end of the room.
The king saw him
and came to him, greeted him kindly, led him to the others, and
introduced them one by one.
There was a woman
of fifty or so, small and very light-skinned, with greying hair and
large grey eyes: Tenar, the king said smiling: Tenar of the Ring. She
looked Alder in the eye and greeted him quietly.
There was a man of
about the king's age, dressed in velvet and airy linens, with jewels
on his belt and at his throat and a great ruby stud in his earlobe:
Shipmaster Tosla, said the king. Tosla's face, dark as old oak wood,
was keen and hard.
There was a
middle-aged man, simply dressed, with a steady look that made Alder
feel he could trust him: Prince Sege of the House of Havnor, said the
king.
There was a man of
forty or so who carried a wooden staff of his own height, by which
Alder knew him as a wizard of the School on Roke. He had a rather
worn face, fine hands, an aloof but courteous manner. Master Onyx,
said the king.
There was a woman
whom Alder took for a servant because she was very plainly dressed
and stayed outside the group, turned half away as if looking out the
windows. He saw the beautiful fall of her black hair, heavy and
glossy as falling water, as Lebannen led her forward. "Tehanu of
Gont," the king said, and his voice rang out like a challenge.
The woman looked
straight at Alder for a moment. She was young; the left side of her
face was smooth copper-rose, a dark bright eye under an arched
eyebrow. The right side had been destroyed and was ridged, slabby
scar, eyeless. Her right hand was like a raven's curled claw.
She put out her
hand to Alder, in the manner of the people of Ea and the Enlades, as
the others had done, but it was her left hand she held out. He
touched his hand to hers, palm to palm. Hers was hot, fever hot. She
looked at him again, an amazing glance from that one eye, bright,
frowning, fierce. Then she looked down again and stood back as if she
wished not to be one of them, wished not to be there.
"Master Alder
bears a message for you from your father the Hawk of Gont," the
king said, seeing the messenger stand wordless.
Tehanu did not lift
her head. The glossy black hair almost hid the ruin of her face.
"My lady,"
Alder said, dry-mouthed and husky-voiced, "he bade me ask you
two questions." He paused, only because he had to wet his lips
and get his breath in a moment of panic that he had forgotten what he
was to say; but the pause became a waiting silence.
Tehanu said, in a
voice hoarser than his, "Ask them."
"He said to
ask first: Who are those who go to the dry land? And as I took my
leave of him, he said, Ask my daughter also: Will a dragon cross the
wait of stones?'"
Tehanu nodded her
head in acknowledgment and stepped back a little more, as if to carry
her riddles away with her, away from them.
"The dry
land," the king said, "and the dragons…"
His alert gaze went
from face to face.
"Come,"
he said, "let's sit and talk."
"Perhaps we
could talk down in the gardens?" said the little grey-eyed
woman, Tenar. The king agreed at once. Alder heard Tenar say to him
as they went, "She finds it hard to be indoors all day. She
wants the sky."
Gardeners brought
chairs for them in the shade of a huge old willow beside one of the
pools. Tehanu went to stand by the pool, gazing down into the green
water where a few big silver carp swam lazily. Clearly she wanted to
think over her father's message, not to talk, though she could hear
what they said.
When the others
were all settled, the king had Alder tell his story yet again. Their
silence as they listened was compassionate, and he was able to speak
without constraint or hurry. When he was done, they remained silent a
while, and then the wizard Onyx asked him one question: "Did you
dream last night?"
Alder said he had
had no dream he could recall.
"I did,"
Onyx said. "I dreamed of the Summoner who was my teacher in the
School on Roke. They say of him that he died twice: because he came
back from that country across the wall."
"I dreamed of
the spirits that are not reborn," Tenar said, very low.
Prince Sege said,
"All night I thought I heard voices down in the city streets,
voices I knew from my childhood, calling as they used to do. But when
I listened, it was only watchmen or drunken sailors shouting."
"I never
dream," said Tosla.
"I didn't
dream of that country," the king said. "I remembered it.
And couldn't cease remembering it."
He looked at the
silent woman, Tehanu, but she only looked down into the pond and did
not speak.
No one else spoke;
and Alder could not stand it. "If I am a plague bringer, you
must send me away!" he said.
The wizard Onyx
spoke, not imperiously but with finality. "If Roke sent you to
Gont, and Gont sent you to Havnor, Havnor is where you should be."
"Many heads
make light thinking," said Tosla, sardonic.
Lebannen said,
"Let's put dreams aside for a while. Our guest needs to know
what we were concerned about before he came—why I begged Tenar
and Tehanu to come, earlier this summer, and summoned Tosla from his
voyaging to take counsel with us. Will you tell Alder of this matter,
Tosla?"
The dark-faced man
nodded. The ruby in his ear gleamed like a drop of blood.
"The matter is
dragons," he said. "In the West Reach for some years now
they've come to farms and villages on Ully and Usidero, flying low,
seizing the roofs of houses with their talons, shaking them,
terrifying the people. In the Toringates they've come twice now at
harvest time and set the fields burning with their breath, and burnt
haystacks and set the thatch of houses afire. They haven't struck at
people, but people have died in the fires. They haven't attacked the
houses of the lords of those islands, seeking after treasure, the way
they did in the Dark Years, but only the villages and the fields. The
same word came from a merchantman who'd been southwest as far as
Simly trading for grain: dragons had come and burnt the crop just as
they were harvesting.
"Then, last
winter in Semel, two dragons settled on the summit of the volcano,
Mount Andanden."
"Ah,"
said Onyx, and at the king's inquiring glance: "The wizard
Seppel of Paln tells me that mountain was a most sacred place to the
dragons, where they came to drink fire from the earth in ancient
days."
"Well, they're
back," said Tosla. "And they come down harrying the herds
and flocks that are the wealth of the people there, not hurting the
beasts but frightening them so they break loose and run wild. The
people say they're young dragons, black and thin, without much fire
yet.
"And in Paln,
there are dragons living now in the mountains of the north part of
the island, wild country without farms. Hunters used to go there to
hunt mountain sheep and catch falcons to tame, but they've been
driven out by the dragons, and no one goes near the mountains now.
Maybe your Pelnish wizard knows about them?"
Onyx nodded. "He
says flights of them have been seen above the mountains like the
flights of wild geese."
"Between Paln
and Semel, and the Island of Havnor, is only the width of the Pelnish
Sea," said Prince Sege.
Alder was thinking
that it was less than a hundred miles from Semel to his own island,
Taon.
"Tosla set out
to the Dragons' Run in his ship the Tern" the king said.
"But got
barely in sight of the easternmost of those isles before a swarm of
the beasts came at me," Tosla said, with a hard grin. "They
harried me as they do the cattle and sheep, swooping down to singe my
sails, till I ran back where I came from. But that's nothing new."
Onyx nodded again.
"Nobody but a dragonlord has ever sailed the Dragons' Run."
"I have,"
the king said, and suddenly smiled a broad, boyish smile. "But I
was with a dragonlord… Now that's a time I've been thinking
about. When I was in the West Reach with the Archmage, seeking Cob
the necromancer, we passed Jessage, which lies even farther out than
Simly, and we saw burned fields there. And in the Dragons' Run, we
saw that they fought and killed one another like animals gone rabid."
After a time Prince
Sege asked, "Could it be that some of those dragons did not
recover from their madness in that evil time?"
"It's been
fifteen years and more," Onyx said. "But dragons live very
long. Maybe time passes differently for them." Alder noticed
that as the wizard spoke he glanced at Tehanu, standing apart from
them by the pool.
"Yet only
within the last year or two have they attacked people," said the
prince.
"That they
have not," Tosla said. "If a dragon wanted to destroy the
people of a farm or village, who'd stop it? They've been after
people's livelihood. Harvests, hayricks, farms, cattle. They're
saying, Begone—get out of the West!"
"But why are
they saying it with fire, with havoc?" the wizard demanded.
"They can speak! They speak the Language of the Making. Morred
and Erreth-Akbe talked with dragons. Our Archmage talked with them."
"Those we saw
in the Dragons' Run," the king said, "had lost the power of
speech. The breach Cob had made in the world was drawing their power
from them, as it did from us.
Only the great
dragon Orm Embar came to us and spoke to the Archmage, telling him to
go to Selidor…" He paused, his eyes far away. "And
even from Orm Embar speech was taken, before he died." Again he
looked away from them, a strange light in his face. "It was for
us Orm Embar died. He opened the way for us into the dark land."
They were all
silent for a while. Tenar's quiet voice broke the silence. "Once
Sparrowhawk said to me—let me see if I can remember how he said
it: that the dragon and the dragon's speech are one thing, one being.
That a dragon does not learn the Old Speech, but is it."
"As a tern is
flight. As a fish is swimming," Onyx said slowly. "Yes."
Tehanu was
listening, standing motionless by the pool. They all looked at her
now. The look on her mother's face was eager, urgent. Tehanu turned
her head away.
"How do you
make a dragon talk to you?" the king said. He said it lightly,
as if it were a pleasantry, but it was followed by another silence.
"Well," he said, "that's something I hope we can
learn. Now, Master Onyx, while we're speaking of dragons, will you
tell us your story of the girl who came to the School on Roke, for
none but me has heard it yet."
"A girl in the
School!" said Tosla, with a scoffing grin. "Things have
changed on Roke!"
"Indeed they
have," the wizard said, with a long cool look at the sailor.
"This was some eight years ago. She came from Way, disguised as
a young man, wanting to study the art magic. Of course her poor
disguise didn't fool the Doorkeeper. Yet he let her in, and he took
her part. At that time, the School was headed by the Master
Summoner—the man," and he hesitated a moment, "the
man of whom I told you I dreamed last night."
"Tell us
something of that man, if you will, Master Onyx," the king said.
"That was Thorion, who returned from death?"
"Yes. When the
Archmage had been long gone and no word came, we feared he was dead.
So the Summoner used his arts to go see if indeed he had crossed the
wall. He stayed long there, so the masters feared for him too. But at
last he woke, and said that the Archmage was there among the dead,
and would not return himself but had bade Thorion return to govern
Roke. Yet before long the dragon bore the Archmage Sparrowhawk living
to us, with my lord Lebannen… Then when the Archmage had
departed again, the Summoner fell down and lay as if life had gone
out of him. The Master Herbal, with all his art, believed him dead.
Yet as we made ready to bury him, he moved, and spoke, saying he had
come back to life to do what must be done. So, since we were not able
to choose a new Archmage, Thorion the Summoner governed the School."
He paused. "When the girl came, though the Doorkeeper had
admitted her, Thorion would not have her within the walls. He would
have nothing to do with her. But the Master Patterner took her to the
Grove, and she lived there some while at the edge of the trees, and
walked with him among them. He and the Doorkeeper, and the Herbal,
and Kurremkarmerruk the Namer, believed that there was a reason she
had come to Roke, that she was a messenger or an agent of some great
event, even if she herself didn't know it; and so they protected her.
The other masters followed Thorion, who said she brought only
dissension and ruin and should be driven out. I was a student then.
It was a sore trouble to us to know that our masters, masterless,
were quarreling."
"And over a
girl," said Tosla.
Onyx's look at him
this time was extremely cold. "Quite," he said. After a
minute he took up his story. "To be brief, then, when Thorion
sent a group of us to compel her to leave the island, she challenged
him to meet her that evening on Roke Knoll. He came, and summoned her
by her name to obey him: 'Irian,' he called her. But she said, 'I am
not only Irian,' and speaking, she changed. She became—she took
the form of a dragon. She touched Thorion and his body fell to dust.
Then she climbed the hill, and watching her, we didn't know whether
we saw a woman that burned like a fire, or a winged beast. But at the
summit we saw her clearly, a dragon like a flame of red and gold. And
she lifted up her wings and flew into the west."
His voice had grown
soft and his face was full of the remembered awe. Nobody spoke.
The wizard cleared
his throat. "Before she went up the hill the Namer asked her,
'Who are you?' She said she did not know her other name. The
Patterner spoke to her, asking where she would go and whether she
would come back. She said she was going beyond the west, to learn her
name from her own people, but if he called her she would come."
In the silence, a
hoarse, weak voice, like metal brushing on metal, spoke. Alder did
not understand the words and yet they seemed familiar, as if he could
almost remember what they meant.
Tehanu had come
close to the wizard and was standing by him, bending to him, tense as
a drawn bow. It was she who had spoken.
Startled and taken
aback, the wizard stared up at her, got to his feet, backed off a
step, and then controlling himself said, "Yes, those were her
words: My people, beyond the west."
"Call her. Oh,
call her," Tehanu whispered, reaching out both her hands to him.
Again he drew back involuntarily.
Tenar stood up and
murmured to her daughter, "What is it, what is it, Tehanu?"
Tehanu stared round
at them all. Alder felt as if he were a wraith she saw through. "Call
her here," she said. She looked at the king. "Can you call
her?"
"I have no
such power. Perhaps the Patterner of Roke—perhaps you
yourself—"
Tehanu shook her
head violently. "No, no, no, no," she whispered. "I am
not like her. I have no wings."
Lebannen looked at
Tenar as if for guidance. Tenar looked miserably at her daughter.
Tehanu turned round
and faced the king. "I'm sorry," she said, stiffly, in her
weak, harsh voice. "I have to be alone, sir. I will think about
what my father said. I will try to answer what he asked. But I have
to be alone, please."
Lebannen bowed to
her and glanced at Tenar, who went at once to her daughter and put an
arm about her; and they went away on the sunny path by the pools and
fountains.
The four men sat
down again and said nothing for a few minutes.
Lebannen said, "You
were right, Onyx," and to the others, "Master Onyx told me
this tale of the woman-dragon Irian after I told him something about
Tehanu. How as a child Tehanu summoned the dragon Kalessin to Gont,
and spoke with the dragon in the Old Speech, and Kalessin called her
daughter."
"Sire, this is
very strange, this is a strange time, when a dragon is a woman, and
when an untaught girl speaks in the Language of the Making!"
Onyx was deeply and obviously shaken, frightened. Alder saw that, and
wondered why he himself felt no such fear. Probably, he thought,
because he did not know enough to be afraid, or what to be afraid of.
"But there are
old stories," Tosla said. "Haven't you heard them on Roke?
Maybe your walls keep them out. They're only tales simple people
tell. Songs, even. There's a sailors' song, 'The Lass of Belilo,'
that tells how a sailor left a pretty girl weeping in every port,
until one of the pretty girls flew after his boat on wings of brass
and snatched him out of it and ate him."
Onyx looked at
Tosla with disgust. But Lebannen smiled and said, "The Woman of
Kemay… The Archmage's old master, Aihal, called Ogion, told
Tenar about her. She was an old village woman, and lived as such. She
invited Ogion into her cottage and served him fish soup. But she said
mankind and dragonkind had once been one. She herself was a dragon as
well as a woman. And being a mage, Ogion saw her as a dragon."
"As you saw
Irian, Onyx," said Lebannen.
Speaking stiffly
and addressing himself to the king only, Onyx said, "After Irian
left Roke, the Master Namer showed us passages in the most ancient
lore-books which had always been obscure, but which could be
understood to speak of beings both human and dragon. And of a quarrel
or great division among them. But none of this is clear to our
understanding."
"I hoped that
Tehanu might make it clear," Lebannen said. His voice was even,
so that Alder did not know whether he had given up or still held that
hope.
A man was hurrying
down the path to them, a greyheaded soldier of the king's guards.
Lebannen looked round, stood up, went to him. They conferred for a
minute, low-voiced. The soldier strode off again; the king turned
back to his companions. "Here is news," he said, the ring
of challenge in his voice again. "Over the west of Havnor there
have been great flights of dragons. They have set forests afire, and
a coaster's crew say people fleeing down to South Port told them the
town of Resbel is burning."
That night the
king's swiftest ship carried him and his party across the Bay of
Havnor, running fast before the magewind Onyx raised. They came into
the mouth of the Onneva River, under the shoulder of Mount Onn, at
daybreak. With them eleven horses were disembarked, fine, strong,
slender-legged creatures from the royal stables. Horses were rare on
all the islands but Havnor and Semel. Tehanu knew donkeys well enough
but had never seen a horse before. She had spent much of the night
with them and their handlers, helping control and calm them. They
were well-bred, mannerly horses but not used to sea voyages. When it
came time to mount them, there on the sands of the Onneva, Onyx was
fairly daunted, and had to be coached and encouraged by the handlers,
but Tehanu was up in the saddle as soon as the king. She put the
reins in her crippled hand and did not use them, seeming to
communicate with her mare by other means.
So the little
caravan set off due west into the foothills of tie Falierns, keeping
up a good pace. It was the swiftest way travel that Lebannen had at
his disposal; to coast clear around South Havnor would take too long.
They had the wizard Onyx with them to keep the weather favorable,
clear the path of any obstacles, and defend them from any harm short
dragon fire. Against the dragons, if they encountered them, they had
no defense at all, except perhaps Tehanu.
Taking counsel the
evening before with his advisors and the officers of his guard,
Lebannen had quickly concluded lat there was no way to fight the
dragons or protect the owns and fields from them: arrows were
useless, shields were useless. Only the greatest mages had ever been
able to defeat a dragon. He had no such mage in his service and new
of none now living, but he must defend his people as 3est he could,
and he knew no way to do it but to try to parley with the dragons.
His maiordomo had
been shocked when he set off for the apartment where Tenar and Tehanu
were: the king should send for those he wished to see, command them
to come to him. "Not if he's going to beg from them,"
Lebannen said.
He told the
startled maid who answered their door to ask if he might speak with
the White Lady and the Woman of Gont. So they were known to the
people of the palace and the city. That each bore her true name
openly, as the king did, was so rare a matter, so defiant of rule and
custom, of safety and propriety, that though people might know the
name they were reluctant to say it and preferred to speak around it.
He was admitted,
and having told them briefly the news he had received, said, "Tehanu,
it may be that you alone in my kingdom can help me. If you can call
to these dragons as you called to Kalessin, if you have any power
over them, if you can speak to them and ask why they war on my
people, will you do so?"
The young woman
shrank from his words, turning towards her mother.
But Tenar did not
offer her any shelter. She stood unmoving. After a while she said,
"Tehanu, long ago I told you: when a king speaks to you, you
answer. You were a child then, and didn't answer. You're not a child
now."
Tehanu took a step
back from them both. Like a child, she hung her head. "I can't
call to them," she said in her faint, harsh voice. "I don't
know them."
"Can you call
Kalessin?" Lebannen asked.
She shook her head.
"Too far away," she whispered. "I don't know where."
"But you are
Kalessin's daughter," Tenar said. "Can you not speak to
these dragons?"
She said
wretchedly, "I don't know."
Lebannen said, "If
there is any chance, Tehanu, that they'll talk to you, that you can
talk to them, I beg you to take that chance. For I can't fight them,
and don't know their language, and how can I find what they want of
us from creatures who can destroy me with a breath, with a look? Will
you speak for me, for us?"
She was silent.
Then, so faintly he could barely hear it, she said, "Yes."
"Then make
ready to travel with me. We leave by the fourth hour of the evening.
My people will bring you to the ship. I thank you. And I thank you,
Tenar!" he said, taking her hand a moment, but no longer, for he
had much to see to before he went.
When he came down
to the wharf, late and hurrying, there was the slender hooded figure.
The last horse to be led onboard was snorting and bracing its feet,
refusing to go up the gangplank. Tehanu seemed to be conferring with
the idler. Presently she took the horse's bridle and talked to it
little, and they went up the gangplank quietly together.
Ships are small,
crowded houses; Lebannen heard two of the hostlers talking softly on
the afterdeck towards mid-light. "She has the true hand,"
one said, and the other, a younger voice, "Aye, she does, but
she's horrible to look at, ain't she?" The first one said, "If
a horse don't mind it, why should you?" and the other, "I
don't know, but I do."
Now, as they rode
from the Onneva sands into the foothills, where the way widened,
Tosla brought his horse up beside Lebannen's. "She's to be our
interpreter, is she?" he said.
"If she can."
"Well, she's
braver than I'd have thought. If that happened to her the first time
she talked with a dragon, its likely to happen again."
"What do you
mean?"
"She was half
burnt to death."
"Not by a
dragon."
"Who then?"
"The people
she was born to."
"How was
that?" Tosla asked with a grimace.
"Tramps,
thieves. She was five or six years old. Whatever she did or they did,
it ended in her being beaten unconscious and shoved into their
campfire. Thinking, I suppose, she was dead or would die and it would
be taken for an accident. They made off. Villagers found her, and
Tenar took her in."
Tosla scratched his
ear. "There's a pretty tale of human kindness. So she's no
daughter of the old Archmage either? But then what do they mean
saying she's a dragons get?"
Lebannen had sailed
with Tosla, had fought beside him years ago in the siege of Sorra,
and knew him a brave, keen, coolheaded man. When Tosla's coarseness
chafed him he blamed his own thin skin. "I don't know what they
mean," he answered mildly. "All I know is, the dragon
called her daughter."
"That Roke
wizard of yours, that Onyx, is quick to say he's no use in this
matter. But he can speak the Old Tongue, can't he?"
"Yes. He could
wither you into ash with a few words of it. If he hasn't it's out of
respect for me, not you, I think."
Tosla nodded. "I
know that," he said. They rode all that day at as quick a pace
as the horses could keep, coming at nightfall to a little hill town
where the horses could be fed and rested and the riders could sleep
in variously uncomfortable beds. Those of them unused to riding now
discovered they could barely walk. The people there had heard nothing
about dragons, and were overwhelmed only by the terror and glory of a
whole party of rich strangers riding in and wanting oats and beds and
paying for them with silver and gold.
The riders set off
again long before dawn. It was nearly a hundred miles from the sands
of Onneva to Resbel. This second day would take them over the low
pass of the Faliern Mountains and down the western side. Yenay, one
of Lebannen's most trusted officers, rode well ahead of the others;
Tosla was rear guard; Lebannen led the main group. He was jogging
along half asleep in the dull quiet before dawn when hoofbeats coming
towards him woke him. Yenay had come riding back. Lebannen looked up
where the man was pointing.
They had just
emerged from woods on the crest of an open hillside and could see
through the clear half light all the way to the pass. The mountains
to either side of it massed black against the dull reddish glow of a
cloudy dawn.
But they were
looking west.
"That's nearer
than Resbel," Yenay said. "Fifteen miles, maybe."
Tehanus mare,
though small, was the finest of the lot, and had a strong conviction
that she should lead the others. If Tehanu didn't hold her back she
would keep sidling and overtaking till she was ahead of the line. The
mare came up at once when Lebannen reined in his big horse, and so
Tehanu was beside him now, looking where he looked.
"The forest is
burning," he said to her.
He could see only
the scarred side of her face, so she seemed to gaze blindly; but she
saw, and her claw hand that held the reins was trembling. The burned
child fears the fire, he thought.
What cruel,
cowardly folly had possessed him to tell this girl, "Come talk
to the dragons, save my skin!" and bring her straight into the
fire?
"We will turn
back," he said.
Tehanu raised her
good hand, pointing. "Look," she said. "Look!"
A spark from a
bonfire, a burning cinder rising over the black line of the pass, an
eagle of flame soaring, a dragon flying straight at them.
Tehanu stood up in
her stirrups and let out a piercing, scraping cry, like a sea bird's
or a hawk's scream, but it was a word, one word: "Medeu!"
The great creature
drew nearer with terrible speed, its long, thin wings beating almost
lazily; it had lost the reflection of fire and looked black or
bronze-colored in the growing light.
"Mind your
horses," Tehanu said in her cracked voice, and just then
Lebannen's grey gelding saw the dragon and started violently, tossing
its head and backing. He could control it, but behind him one of the
other horses let out a neigh of terror, and he heard them trampling
and the handlers' voices. The wizard Onyx came running up and stood
beside Lebannen's horse. Mounted or afoot, they stood and watched the
dragon come.
Again Tehanu cried
out that word. The dragon veered in its flight, slowed, came on,
stopped and hovered in the air about fifty feet from them.
"Medeu!"
Tehanu called, and the answer came like an echo prolonged:
"Me-de-uuu!"
"What does it
mean?" Lebannen asked, bending to Onyx.
"Sister,
brother," the wizard whispered.
Tehanu was off her
horse, had tossed the reins to Yenay, was walking forward down the
slight slope to where the dragon hovered, its long wings beating
quick and short like a hovering hawk's. But these wings were fifty
feet from tip to tip, and as they beat they made a sound like
kettledrums or rattles of brass. As she came closer to it, a little
curl of fire escaped from the dragon's long, long-toothed, open
mouth.
She held up her
hand. Not the slender brown hand but the burned one, the claw. The
scarring of her arm and shoulder kept her from raising it fully. She
could reach barely as high as her head.
The dragon sank a
little in the air, lowered its head, and touched her hand with its
lean, flared, scaled snout. Like a dog, an animal greeting and
sniffing, Lebannen thought; like a falcon stooping to the wrist; like
a king bowing to a queen.
Tehanu spoke, the
dragon spoke, both briefly, in their cymbal-shiver voices. Another
exchange, a pause; the dragon spoke at length. Onyx listened
intently. One more exchange of words. A wisp of smoke from the
dragon's nostrils; a stiff, imperious gesture of the woman's
crippled, withered hand. She spoke clearly two words.
"Bring her,"
the wizard translated in a whisper.
The dragon beat its
wings hard, lowered its long head, and hissed, spoke again, then
sprang up into the air, high over Tehanu, turned, wheeled once, and
set off like an arrow to the west.
"It called her
Daughter of the Eldest," the wizard whispered, as Tehanu stood
motionless, watching the dragon go.
She turned around,
looking small and fragile in that great sweep of hill and forest in
the grey dawn light. Leban-nen swung off his horse and hurried
forward to her. He thought to find her drained and terrified, he put
out his hand to help her walk, but she smiled at him. Her face, half
terrible half beautiful, shone with the red light of the unrisen sun.
"They won't
strike again. They will wait in the mountains," she said.
Then indeed she
looked around as if she did not know where she was, and when Lebannen
took her arm she let him do so; but the fire and the smile lingered
in her face, and she walked lightly.
While the hostlers
held the horses, already grazing on the dew-wet grass, Onyx, Tosla,
and Yenay came round her, though they kept a respectful distance.
Onyx said, "My Lady Tehanu, I have never seen so brave an act."
"Nor I,"
Tosla said.
"I was
afraid," Tehanu said, in her voice that carried no emotion. "But
I called him brother, and he called me sister."
"I could not
understand all you said," the wizard said. "I have no such
knowledge of the Old Speech as you. Will you tell us what passed
between you?"
She spoke slowly,
her eyes on the west where the dragon had flown. The dull red of the
distant fire was paling as the east grew bright. "I said, 'Why
are you burning the king's island?' And he said, 'It is time we have
our own lands again.' And I said, 'Did the Eldest bid you take them
with fire?'
Then he said that
the Eldest, Kalessin, had gone with Orm Irian beyond the west to fly
on the other wind. And he said the young dragons who remained here on
the winds of the world say men are oath breakers who stole the
dragons' lands. They tell one another that Kalessin will never
return, and they will wait no longer, but will drive men out of all
the western lands. But lately Orm Irian has returned, and is on Paln,
he said. And I told him to ask her to come. And he said she would
come to Kalessin's daughter."
From the window of
her room in the palace Tenar had watched the ship sail, carrying
Lebannen and her daughter away into the night. She had not gone down
to the wharf with Tehanu. It had been hard, very hard to refuse to
come with her on this journey. Tehanu had begged, she who never asked
for anything. She never cried, could not cry, but her breath had
caught sobbing: "But I can't go, I can't go alone! Come with me,
mother!"
"My love, my
heart, if I could spare you this fear I would, don't you see I can't?
I've done what I could do for you, my flame of fire, my star. The
king is right—only you, you alone, can do this."
"But if you
were just there, so I knew you were there—"
"I'm here, I'm
always here. What could I do there but be a burden? You must travel
fast, it will be a hard journey. I'd hold you back. And you might
fear for me. You don't need me. I'm no use to you. You must learn
that. You must go, Tehanu."
And she had turned
away from her child and begun sorting out the clothing Tehanu should
take, home clothes, not the fancy things they wore here in the
palace: her stout shoes, her good cloak If she wept while she did it,
she did not let her daughter see it.
Tehanu stood as if
bewildered, paralysed with fear. When Tenar gave her clothes to
change into, she obeyed. When the king's lieutenant, Yenay, knocked
and asked if he might conduct Mistress Tehanu down to the wharf, she
stared at him like a dumb animal.
"Go now,"
Tenar said. She embraced her and laid her hand on the great scar that
was half her face. "You are Kalessin's daughter as well as
mine."
The girl held her
very tightly for a long moment, let go, turned away without a word,
and followed Yenay out the door.
Tenar stood feeling
the chill of the night air where the heat of Tehanu's body and arms
had been.
She went over to
the window. Lights down on the dock, the coming and going of men, the
hoof clatter of horses being led down the steep streets above the
water. A tall ship was at the pier, a ship she knew, the Dolphin. She
watched from the window and saw Tehanu on the dock. She saw her go
aboard at last, leading a horse that had been balking, and saw
Lebannen follow her. She saw the mooring lines cast off, the docile
movement of the ship following the oared tug that towed her clear,
the sudden fall and flowering of the white sails in the darkness. The
light of the stern lantern trembled on the dark water, shrank slowly
to a tiny drop of brightness, and was gone.
Tenar went about
the room folding up the clothes Tehanu had worn, the silken shift and
overskirt; she picked up the light sandals and held them to her cheek
a while before she put them away.
She lay awake in
the wide bed and saw before her mind's eye over and over again the
same scene: a road, and Tehanu walking on it alone. And a knot, a
net, a black writhing coiling mass descending from the sky, dragons
swarming, fire licking and streaming from them at her, her hair
burning, her clothes burning—No, Tenar said, no! it will not
happen! She would force her mind away from that scene, until she saw
it again, the road, and Tehanu walking on it alone, and the black,
burning knot in the sky, coming closer.
When the first
light began to turn the room grey she slept at last, exhausted. She
dreamed that she was in the Old Mage's house on the Overfell, her
house, and she was glad beyond all words to be there. She took the
broom from behind the door to sweep the shining oaken floor, for Ged
had let it get dusty. But there was a door at the back of the house
that had not been there before. When she opened it she found a small,
low room with stone walls painted white. Ged was crouching in the
room, squatting with his arms on his knees and his hands hanging
limp. His head was not a man's head but small, black, and beaked, a
vulture's head. He said in a faint, hoarse voice, "Tenar, I have
no wings." And when he said that, such anger and terror rose up
in her that she woke, gasping, to see sunlight on the high wall of
her palace room and hear the sweet clear trumpets telling the fourth
hour of morning.
Breakfast was
brought. She ate a little and talked with Berry, the elderly servant
whom she had chosen from all the retinue of maids and ladies of honor
Lebannen had offered her. Berry was an intelligent, competent woman,
born in a village in inland Havnor, with whom Tenar got on better
than with most of the ladies of the court. They were civil and
respectful, but they didn't know what to do with her, how to talk to
a woman who was half Kargish priestess, half farmwife from Gont. She
saw that it was easier for them to be kind to Tehanu in her fierce
timidity. They could be sorry for her. They could not be sorry for
Tenar.
Berry, however,
could be and was, and she gave Tenar considerable comfort that
morning. "The king will bring her back safe and sound," she
said. "Why, do you think he'd take the girl into a danger he
couldn't get her out of? Never! Not him!" It was false comfort,
but Berry so passionately believed it to be true that Tenar had to
agree with her, which was a little solace in itself.
She needed
something to do, for Tehanu's absence was everywhere. She resolved to
go talk to the Kargish princess, to see if the girl was willing to
learn a word of Hardic, or at least to tell Tenar her name.
In the Kargad Lands
people did not have a true name that they kept secret, as the
speakers of Hardic did. Like use-names here, Kargish names often had
some meaning—Rose, Alder, Honor, Hope; or they were
traditional, often the name of an ancestor. People spoke them openly
and were proud of the antiquity of a name passed down from generation
to generation. She had been taken too young from her parents to know
why they had called her Tenar, but thought it might be for a
grandmother or great-grandmother. That name had been taken from her
when she was recognised as Arha, the Nameless One reborn, and she had
forgotten it till Ged gave it back to her. To her, as to him, it was
her true name; but it was not a word of the Old Speech; it gave no
one any power over her, and she had never concealed it.
She was puzzled now
why the princess did so. Her bondwomen called her only Princess, or
Lady, or Mistress; the ambassadors had talked about her as the High
Princess, Daughter of Thol, Lady of Hur-at-Hur, and so on. If all the
poor girl had was titles, it was time she had a name.
Tenar knew it was
not fitting for a guest of the king to go alone through the streets
of Havnor, and she knew Berry had duties in the palace, so she asked
for a servant to accompany her. She was provided with a charming
footman, or footboy, for he was only about fifteen, who looked after
her at the street crossings as if she were a doddering crone. She
liked walking in the city. She had already found and admitted to
herself, going to the River House, that it was easier without Tehanu
beside her. People would look at Tehanu and look away, and Tehanu
walked in stiff, suffering pride, hating their looks and their
looking away, and Tenar suffered with her, maybe more than she
herself did.
Now she was able to
loiter and watch the street shows, the market booths, the various
faces and clothing from all over the Archipelago, to go out of the
direct way to let her footboy show her a street where the painted
bridges from rooftop to rooftop made a kind of airy vaulted ceiling
high above them, from which red-flowering vines looped down in
festoons, and people put birdcages out the windows on gilt poles
among the flowers, so that it all seemed a garden in the middle of
the air. "Oh, I wish Tehanu could see this," she thought.
But she could not think of Tehanu, of where she might be.
The River House,
like the New Palace, dated from the reign of Queen Heru, five
centuries ago. It had been in ruins when Lebannen came to the throne;
he had rebuilt it with much care, and it was a lovely, peaceful
place, sparsely furnished, with dark, polished, uncarpeted floors.
Ranks of narrow door-windows slid aside to open up the whole side of
a room to a view of the willows and the river, and one could walk out
onto deep wooden balconies built over the water. Court ladies had
told Tenar that it had been the place the king liked best to slip
away to for a night of solitude or a night with a lover, which lent
even more significance, they hinted, to his housing the princess
there. Her own suspicion was that he had not wanted the princess
under the same roof with him and had simply named the only other
possible place for her, but maybe the court ladies were right.
Guards in their
fine harness recognised and let her pass, footmen announced her and
went off with her footboy to crack nuts and gossip, which seemed to
be the principal occupation of footmen, and ladies-in-waiting came to
greet her, grateful for any new face and gasping for more news of the
king's expedition against the dragons. Having run the whole gamut she
was admitted at last to the apartments of the princess.
On her two previous
visits she had been kept waiting some while in an anteroom, and then
the veiled bondwomen had brought her into an inner room, the only dim
room in the whole airy house, where the princess had stood in her
round-brimmed hat with the red veil hanging down all round it to the
floor, looking permanently fixed there, built in, exactly as if she
were a brick chimney, as Lady lyesa had said.
This time it was
different. As soon as she came into the anteroom there was shrieking
within and the sound of people running in various directions. The
princess burst through the door and with a wild cry flung her arms
around Tenar. Tenar was small, and the princess, a tall, vigorous
young woman full of emotion, knocked her right off her feet, but held
her up in strong arms. "Oh Lady Arha, Lady Arha, save me, save
me!" she was crying.
"Princess!
What's wrong?"
The princess was in
tears of terror or relief or both at once, and all Tenar could
understand of her laments and pleas was a babble of dragons and
sacrifice.
"There are no
dragons near Havnor," she said sternly, disengaging herself from
the girl, "and nobody is being sacrificed. What is all this
about? What have you been told?"
"The women
said the dragons were coming and they'd sacrifice a king's daughter
and not a goat because they're sorcerers and I was afraid." The
princess wiped her face, clenched her hands, and began trying to
master the panic she had been in. It had been real, ungovernable
terror, and Tenar was sorry for her. She did not let her pity show.
The girl needed to learn to hold on to her dignity.
"Your women
are ignorant and don't know enough Hardic to understand what people
tell them. And you don't know any Hardic at all. If you did you'd
know there's nothing to be afraid of. Do you see the people of the
house here rushing about weeping and screaming?"
The princess stared
at her. She wore no hat, no veils, and only a light shift-dress, for
it was a hot day. It was the first time Tenar had seen her except as
a dim form through the red veiling. Though the princess's eyes were
swollen with tears and her face blotched, she was magnificent:
tawny-haired, tawny-eyed, with round arms and full breasts and
slender waist, a woman in her first full beauty and strength.
"But none of
those people is going to be sacrificed," she said finally.
"Nobody is
going to be sacrificed."
"Then why are
the dragons coming?"
Tenar drew a deep
breath. "Princess," she said, "there are a great many
things we need to talk about. If you'll look at me as your friend—"
"I do,"
the princess said. She stepped forward and took Tenar's right arm in
a very strong grasp. "You are my friend, I have no other friend,
I will shed my blood for you."
Ridiculous as it
was, Tenar knew it was true.
She returned the
girl's grip as well as she could and said, "You are my friend.
Tell me your name."
The princess's eyes
got big. There was a little snot and blubber still on her upper lip.
Her lower lip trembled. She said, with a deep breath, "Seserakh."
"Seserakh: my
name is not Arha, but Tenar."
"Tenar,"
the girl said, and grasped her arm tighter.
"Now,"
Tenar said, trying to regain control of the situation, "I have
walked a long way and I'm thirsty. Please let's sit down, and may I
have some water to drink? And then we can talk."
"Yes,"
said the princess, and leapt out of the room like a hunting lioness.
There were shouts and cries from the inner rooms, and more sounds of
running. A bondwoman appeared, adjusting her veil shakily and
gibbering something in such thick dialect Tenar could not understand
her. "Speak in the accursed tongue!" shouted the princess
from within, and the woman pitifully squeaked out in Hardic, "To
sit? to drink? lady?"
Two chairs had been
set in the middle of the dark, stuffy room, facing each other.
Seserakh stood beside one of them.
"I should like
to sit outside, in the shade, over the water," Tenar said. "If
it please you, princess."
The princess
shouted, the women scuttled, the chairs were carried out onto the
deep balcony. They sat down side by side.
"That's
better," Tenar said. It was still strange to her to be speaking
Kargish. She had no difficulty with it at all, but she felt as if she
were not herself, were somebody else speaking, an actor enjoying her
role.
"You like the
water?" the princess asked. Her face had returned to its normal
color, that of heavy cream, and her eyes, no longer swollen, were
bluish gold, or blue with gold flecks.
"Yes. You
don't?"
"I hate it.
There was no water where I lived."
"A desert? I
lived in a desert too. Until I was sixteen. Then I crossed the sea
and came west. I love the water, the sea, the rivers."
"Oh, the sea,"
Seserakh said, shrinking and putting her head in her hands. "Oh
I hate it, I hate it. I vomited my soul out. Over and over and over.
Days and days and days. I never want to see the sea again." She
shot a quick glance through the willow boughs at the quiet, shallow
stream below them. "This river is all right," she said
distrustfully.
A woman brought a
tray with a pitcher and cups, and Tenar had a long drink of cool
water.
"Princess,"
she said, "we have a great deal to talk about. First: the
dragons are still a long way away, in the west. The king and my
daughter have gone to talk with them."
"To talk with
them?"
"Yes."
She had been going to say more, but she said, "Now please tell
me about the dragons in Hur-at-Hur."
Tenar had been told
as a child in Atuan that there were dragons in Hur-at-Hur. Dragons in
the mountains, brigands in the deserts. Hur-at-Hur was poor and far
away and nothing good came from it but opals and turquoises and cedar
logs.
Seserakh heaved a
deep sigh. Tears came into her eyes. "It makes me cry to think
about home," she said, with such pure simplicity of feeling that
tears came into Tenar's eyes too. "Well, the dragons live up in
the mountains. Two days, three days journey from Mesreth. It's all
rocks up there and nobody bothers the dragons and they don't bother
anybody. But once a year they come down, crawling down a certain way.
It's a path, all smooth dust, made by their bellies crawling along it
every year since time began. It's called the Dragons' Way." She
saw that Tenar was listening with deep attention, and went on. "It's
taboo to cross the Dragons' Way. You mustn't set foot on it at all.
You have to go clear round it, south of the Place of the Sacrifice.
They start crawling down it late in spring. On the fourth day of the
fifth month they've all arrived at the Place of the Sacrifice. None
of them is ever late. And everybody from Mesreth and the villages is
there waiting for them. And then, when they've all come down the
Dragons' Way, the priests begin the sacrifice. And that's…
Don't you have the spring sacrifice, in Atuan?"
Tenar shook her
head.
"Well, that's
why I got scared, you see, because it can be a human sacrifice. If
things weren't going well, they'd sacrifice a king's daughter.
Otherwise it would just be some ordinary girl. But they haven't done
even that for a long time. Not since I was little. Since my father
defeated all the other kings. Since then, they've only sacrificed a
she-goat and a ewe. And they catch the blood in bowls, and throw the
fat into the sacred fire, and call to the dragons. And the dragons
all come crawling up. They drink the blood and eat the fire."
She shut her eyes for a moment; so did Tenar. "Then they go back
up into the mountains, and we go back to Mesreth."
"How big are
the dragons?"
Seserakh put her
hands about a yard apart. "Sometimes bigger," she said.
"And they
can't fly? Or speak?"
"Oh, no. Their
wings are just little stubs. They make a kind of hissing. Animals
can't talk. But they're sacred animals. They're the sign of life,
because fire is life, and they eat fire and spit out fire. And
they're sacred because they come to the spring sacrifice. Even if no
people came, the dragons would come and gather at that place. We come
there because the dragons do. The priests always tell all about that
before the sacrifice."
Tenar absorbed this
for a while. "The dragons here in the west," she said, "are
large. Huge. And they can fly. They're animals, but they can speak.
And they are sacred. And dangerous."
"Well,"
the princess said, "dragons may be animals, but they're more
like us than the accursed-sorcerers are."
She said
"accursed-sorcerers" all as one word and without any
particular emphasis. Tenar remembered that phrase from her childhood.
It meant the Dark Folk, the Hardic people of the Archipelago.
"Why is that?"
"Because the
dragons are reborn! Like all the animals. Like us." Seserakh
looked at Tenar with frank curiosity. "I thought since you were
a priestess at the Most Sacred Place of the Tombs you'd know a lot
more about all that than I do."
"But we had no
dragons there," Tenar said. "I didn't learn anything about
them at all. Please, my friend, tell me."
"Well, let me
see if I can tell the story about it. It's a winter story. I guess
it's all right to tell it in summer here. Everything here is all
wrong anyway." She sighed. "Well, in the beginning, you
know, in the first time, we were all the same, all the people and the
animals, we did the same things. And then we learned how to die. And
so we learned how to be reborn. Maybe as one kind of being, maybe
another. But it doesn't matter so much because anyhow you'll die
again and get reborn again and get to be everything sooner or later."
Tenar nodded. So
far, the story was familiar to her.
"But the best
things to get reborn as are people and dragons, because those are the
sacred beings. So you try not to break the taboos, and you try to
observe the Precepts, so you have a better chance to be a person
again, or anyhow a dragon… If dragons here can talk and are so
big, I can see why that would be a reward. Being one of ours never
seemed like much to look forward to.
"But the story
is about the accursed-sorcerers discovering the Vedurnan. That was a
thing, I don't know what it was, that told some people that if they'd
agree never to die and never be reborn, they could learn how to do
sorcery. So they chose that, they chose the Vedurnan. And they went
off into the west with it. And it turned them dark. And they live
here. All these people here—they're the ones who chose the
Vedurnan. They live, and they can do their accursed sorceries, but
they can't die. Only their bodies die. The rest of them stays in a
dark place and never gets reborn. And they look like birds. But they
can't fly."
"Yes,"
Tenar whispered.
"You didn't
learn about that on Aruan?"
"No,"
Tenar said.
Her mind was
recalling the story the Woman of Kemay told Ogion: in the beginning
of time, mankind and the dragons had been one, but the dragons chose
wildness and freedom, and mankind chose wealth and power. A choice, a
separation. Was it the same story?
But the image in
Tenar's heart was of Ged squatting in a stone room, his head small,
black, beaked…
"The Vedurnan
isn't that ring, is it, that they kept talking about, that I'm going
to have to wear?"
Tenar tried to
force her mind away from the Painted Room and from last night's dream
to Seserakh's question.
"Ring?"
"Urthakby's
ring."
"Erreth-Akbe.
No. That ring is the Ring of Peace. And you'll wear it only if and
when you're King Lebannen's queen. And you'll be a lucky woman to be
that."
Seserakh's
expression was curious. It was not sullen or cynical. It was
hopeless, half humorous, patient, the expression of a woman decades
older. "There is no luck about it, dear friend Tenar," she
said. "I have to marry him. And so I will be lost."
"Why are you
lost if you marry him?"
"If I marry
him I have to give him my name. If he speaks my name, he steals my
soul. That's what the accursed-sorcerers do. So they always hide
their names. But if he steals my soul, I won't be able to die. I'll
have to live forever without my body, a bird that can't fly, and
never be reborn."
"That's why
you hid your name?"
"I gave it to
you, my friend."
"I honor the
gift, my friend," Tenar said energetically. "But you can
say your name to anybody you want, here. They can't steal your soul
with it. Believe me, Seserakh. And you can trust him. He doesn't—he
won't do you any harm."
The girl had caught
her hesitation. "But he wishes he could," she said. "Tenar
my friend, I know what I am, here.
In that big city
Awabath where my father is, I was a stupid ignorant desert woman.
Afeyagat. The city women sniggered and poked each other whenever they
saw me, the barefaced whores. And here it's worse. I can't understand
anybody and they can't understand me, and everything, everything is
different! I don't even know what the food is, it's sorcerer food, it
makes me dizzy. I don't know what the taboos are, there aren't any
priests to ask, only sorcerer women, all black and barefaced. And I
saw the way he looked at me. You can see out of the feyag, you know!
I saw his face. He's very handsome, he looks like a warrior, but he's
a black sorcerer and he hates me. Don't say he doesn't, because I
know he does. And I think when he learns my name he'll send my soul
to that place forever."
After a while,
gazing into the moving branches of the willows over the softly moving
water, feeling sad and weary, Tenar said, "What you need to do,
then, princess, is learn how to make him like you. What else can you
do?" Seserakh shrugged mournfully. "It would help if you
understood what he said."
"Bagabba-bagabba.
They all sound like that."
"And we sound
like that to them. Come on, princess, how can he like you if all you
can say to him is bagabba-bagabba? Look," and she held up her
hand, pointed to it with the other, and said the word first in
Kargish, then in Hardic.
Seserakh repeated
both words in a dutiful tone. After a few more body parts she
suddenly grasped the potentialities of translation. She sat up
straighter. "How do sorcerers say 'king'?"
“Agni. It's a
word of the Old Speech. My husband told me that."
She realised as she
spoke that it was foolish to bring up the existence of yet a third
language at this point; but that was not what caught the princess's
attention.
"You have a
husband?" Seserakh stared at her with luminous, leonine eyes,
and laughed aloud. "Oh, how wonderful! I thought you were a
priestess! Oh please, my friend, tell me about him! Is he a warrior?
Is he handsome? Do you love him?"
After the king went
dragon hunting, Alder had no idea what to do; he felt utterly
useless, unjustified in staying in the palace eating the king's food,
guilty for the trouble he had brought with him. He could not sit all
day in his room, so he went out into the streets, but the splendor
and activity of the city were daunting to him, and having no money or
purpose all he could do was walk till he was tired. He would come
back to the Palace of Maharion wondering if the stern-faced guards
would readmit him. The nearest he came to peace was in the palace
gardens. He hoped to meet Rody there again, but the child did not
appear, and perhaps that was as well. Alder thought that he should
not talk with people. The hands that reached to him from death would
reach out to them.
On the third day
after the king's departure he went down to walk among the garden
pools. The day had been very hot; the evening was still and sultry.
He brought Tug with him and let the little cat loose to stalk insects
under the bushes, while he sat on a bench near the big willow and
watched the silver-green glimmer of fat carp in the water. He felt
lonely and discouraged; he felt his defense against the voices and
the reaching hands was breaking down. What was the good of being
here, after all? Why not go into the dream once and for all, go down
that hill, be done with it? Nobody in the world would grieve for him,
and his death would spare them this sickness he had brought with him.
Surely they had enough to do fighting dragons. Maybe if he went there
he would see Lily.
If he was dead they
could not touch each other. The wizards said they would not even want
to. They said the dead forgot what it was to be alive. But Lily had
reached to him. At first, for a little while, maybe they would
remember life long enough to look at each other, to see each other,
even if they did not touch.
"Alder."
He looked up slowly
at the woman who stood near him. The small grey woman, Tenar. He saw
the concern in her face, but did not know why she was troubled. Then
he remembered that her daughter, the burned girl, had gone with the
king. Maybe there had been bad news. Maybe they were all dead.
"Are you ill,
Alder?" she asked.
He shook his head.
It was hard to talk. He understood now how easy it would be, in that
other land, not to speak. Not to meet people's eyes. Not to be
troubled.
She sat down on the
bench beside him. "You look troubled," she said.
He made a vague
gesture—it's all right, it's no matter.
"You were on
Gont. With my husband Sparrowhawk. How was he? Was he looking after
himself?"
"Yes,"
Alder said. He tried to answer more adequately. "He was the
kindest of hosts."
"I'm glad to
hear that," she said. "I worry about him. He keeps house as
well as I do, but still, I didn't like leaving him alone…
Please, would you tell me what he was doing while you were there?"
He told her that
Sparrowhawk had picked the plums and taken them to sell, that the two
of them had mended the fence, that Sparrowhawk had helped him sleep.
She listened
intently, seriously, as if these small matters were as weighty as the
strange events they had talked about here three days ago—the
dead calling to a living man, a girl becoming a dragon, dragons
setting fire to the islands of the west.
Indeed he did not
know what weighed more heavily after all, the great strange things or
the small common ones.
"I wish I
could go home," the woman said.
"I could wish
the same thing, but it would be in vain. I think I'll never go home
again." He did not know why he said it, but heard himself say it
and thought it was true.
She looked at him a
minute with her quiet grey eyes and asked no question.
"I could wish
my daughter would go home with me," she said, "but it would
be in vain, too. I know she must go on. I don't know where."
"Will you tell
me what gift it is that she has, what woman she is, that the king
sent for her, and took her with him to meet the dragons?"
"Oh, if I knew
what she is, I'd tell you," Tenar said, her voice full of grief
and love and bitterness. "She's not my daughter born, as you may
have guessed or known. She came to me a little child, saved from the
fire, but only barely and not wholly saved… When Sparrowhawk
came back to me she became his daughter too. And she kept both him
and me from a cruel death, by summoning a dragon, Kalessin, called
Eldest. And that dragon called her daughter. So she's the child of
many and none, spared no pain yet spared from the fire. Who she is in
truth I may never know. But I wish she were here now, safe with me!"
He wanted to
reassure her, but his own heart was too low.
"Tell me a
little more about your wife, Alder," she said.
"I cannot,"
he said at last into the silence that lay easily between them. "I
would if I could, Lady Tenar. There's such a heaviness in me, and a
dread and fear, tonight. I try to think of Lily, but there's only
that dark desert going down and down, and I can't see her in it. All
the memories I had of her, that were like water and breath to me,
have gone into that dry place. I have nothing left."
"I am sorry,"
she whispered, and they sat again in silence. The dusk was deepening.
It was windless, very warm. Lights in the palace shone through the
carved window screens and the still, hanging foliage of the willows.
"Something is
happening," Tenar said. "A great change in the world. Maybe
nothing we knew will be left to us."
Alder looked up
into the darkening sky. The towers of the palace stood clear against
it, their pale marble and alabaster catching all the light left in
the west. His eyes sought the sword blade mounted at the point of the
highest tower and he saw it, faint silver. "Look," he said.
At the sword's point, like a diamond or a drop of water, shone a
star. As they watched the star moved free of the sword, rising
straight above it.
There was a
commotion, in the palace or outside the walls; voices; a horn
sounded, a sharp imperative call.
"They've come
back," Tenar said, and stood up. Excitement had come into the
air, and Alder too stood up. Tenar hurried into the palace, from
which the harbor could be seen. But before he took Tug back inside,
Alder looked up again at the sword, now only a faint glimmer, and the
star riding bright above it.
dolphin came
sailing up the harbor in that windless summer night, leaning forward,
urgent, the magewind bellying out her sails. Nobody in the palace had
looked for the king to return so soon, but nothing was out of order
or unready when he came. The quay was instantly crowded with
courtiers, off-duty soldiers, and townspeople ready to greet him, and
song makers and harpers were waiting to hear how he had fought and
defeated dragons so they could make ballads about it.
They were
disappointed: the king and his party made straight for the palace,
and the guards and sailors from the ship said only, "They went
up into the country above On-neva Sands, and in two days they came
back. The wizard sent out a message bird to us, for we were down at
the Gates of the Bay by then, since we were going to meet them in
South Port. We came back and there they were awaiting us at the river
mouth, all unharmed. But we saw the smoke of forests afire over the
South Falierns."
Tenar was in the
crowd on the quay, and Tehanu went straight to her. They embraced
fiercely. But as they walked up the street among the lights and the
rejoicing voices, Tenar was still thinking, "It has changed. She
has changed. She'll never come home."
Lebannen walked
among his guards. Charged with tension and energy, he was regal,
warlike, radiant. "Erreth-Akbe," people called out, seeing
him, and "Son of Morred!" On the steps of the palace he
turned and faced them all. He had a strong voice to use when he
wanted it, and it rang out now silencing the tumult. "Listen,
people of Havnor! The Woman of Gont has spoken for us with a chief
among the dragons. They have pledged a truce. One of them will come
to us. A dragon will come here, to the City of Havnor, to the Palace
of Maharion. Not to destroy, but to parley. The time has come when
men and dragons must meet and talk. So I tell you: when the dragon
comes, do not fear it, do not fight it, do not flee it, but welcome
it in the Sign of Peace. Greet it as you would greet a great lord
come in peace from afar. And have no fear. For we are well protected
by the Sword of Erreth-Akbe, by the Ring of Elfarran, and by the Name
of Morred. And by my own name I promise you, so long as I live I will
defend this city and this realm!"
They listened in a
breathless hush. A burst of cheers and shouts followed on his words
as he turned and strode into the palace. "I thought it best to
give them some warning," he said in his usual quiet voice to
Tehanu, and she nodded. He spoke to her as to a comrade, and she
behaved as such. Tenar and the courtiers nearby saw this.
He ordered that his
full Council meet in the morning at the fourth hour, and then they
all dispersed, but he kept Tenar with him a minute while Tehanu went
on. "It's she who protects us," he said.
"Alone?"
"Don't fear
for her. She is the dragon's daughter, the dragon's sister. She goes
where we can't go. Don't fear for her, Tenar."
She bowed her head
in acceptance. "I thank you for bringing her safe back to me,"
she said. "For a while."
They were apart
from other people, in the corridor that led to the western apartments
of the palace. Tenar looked up at the king and said, "I've been
talking about dragons with the princess."
"The
princess," he said blankly.
"She has a
name. I can't tell it to you, since she believes you might use it to
destroy her soul."
He scowled.
"In Hur-at-Hur
there are dragons. Small, she says, and wingless, and they don't
speak. But they're sacred. The sacred sign and pledge of death and
rebirth. She reminded me that my people don't go where your people do
when they die. That dry land Alder tells of, it's not where we go.
The princess, and I, and the dragons."
Lebannen's face
changed from wary reserve to intense attention. "Ged's questions
to Tehanu," he said in a low voice. "Are these the
answers?"
"I know only
what the princess told me, or reminded me. I'll speak with Tehanu
about these things tonight."
He frowned,
pondering; then his face cleared. He stooped and kissed Tenar's
cheek, bidding her good night. He strode off and she watched him go.
He melted her heart, he dazzled her, but she was not blinded. "He's
still afraid of the princess," she thought.
The throne room was
the oldest room in the Palace of Maharion. It had been the hall of
Gemal Sea-Born, Prince of Ilien, who became king in Havnor and of
whose lineage came Queen Heru and her son Maharion. The Havnorian Lay
says:
A hundred warriors,
a hundred women sat in the great hall of Gemal Sea-Born at the kings
table, courtly in talk, handsome and generous gentry of Havnor, no
warriors braver, no women more beautiful.
Around this hall
for over a century Gemal's heirs had built an ever larger palace, and
lastly Heru and Maharion had raised above it the Tower of Alabaster,
the Tower of the Queen, the Tower of the Sword.
These still stood;
but though the people of Havnor had stoutly called it the New Palace
all through the long centuries since Maharion's death, it was old and
half in ruins when Lebannen came to the throne. He had rebuilt it
almost entirely, and richly. The merchants of the Inner Isles, in
their first joy at having a king and laws again to protect their
trading, had set his revenue high and offered him yet more money for
all such undertakings; for the first few years of his reign they had
not even complained that taxation was destroying their business and
would leave their children destitute. So he had been able to make the
New Palace new again, and splendid. But the throne room, once the
beamed ceiling was rebuilt, the stone walls replastered, the narrow,
high-set windows reglazed, he left in its old starkness.
Through the brief
false dynasties and the Dark Years of tyrants and usurpers and pirate
lords, through all the insults of time and ambition, the throne of
the kingdom had stood at the end of the long room: a wooden chair,
high-backed, on a plain dais. It had once been sheathed in gold. That
was long gone; the small golden nails had left rents in the wood
where they had been torn out. Its silken cushions and hangings had
been stolen or destroyed by moth and mouse and mold. Nothing showed
it to be what it was but the place where it stood and a shallow
carving on the back, a heron flying with a twig of rowan in its beak.
That was the crest of the House of Enlad.
The kings of that
house had come from Enlad to Havnor eight hundred years ago. Where
Morred's High Seat is, they said, the kingdom is.
Lebannen had it
cleaned, the decayed wood repaired and replaced, oiled and burnished
back to dark satin, but left it unpainted, ungilt, bare. Some of the
rich people who came to admire their expensive palace complained
about the throne room and the throne. "It looks like a barn,"
they said, and, "Is it Morred's High Seat or an old farmer's
chair?"
To which some said
the king had replied, "What is a kingdom without the barns that
feed it and the farmers to grow the grain?" Others said he had
replied, "Is my kingdom gauds of gilt and velvet or does it
stand by the strength of wood and stone?" Still others said he
had said nothing except that he liked it the way it was. And it being
his royal buttocks that sat on the uncushioned throne, his critics
did not get the last word on the matter.
Into that stern and
high-beamed hall, on a cool morning of late summer sea fog, filed the
King's Council: ninety-one men and women, a hundred if all had been
there. All had been chosen by the king, some to represent the great
noble and princely houses of the Inner Isles, pledged vassals of the
Crown; some to speak for the interests of other islands and parts of
the Archipelago; some because the king had found them or hoped to
find them useful and trustworthy counselors of state. There were
merchants, shippers, and factors of Havnor and the other great port
cities of the Sea of Ea and the Inmost Sea, splendid in their
conscious gravity and their dark robes of heavy silk. There were
masters from the workers' guilds, flexible and canny bargainers,
notable among them a pale-eyed, hard-handed woman, the chief of the
miners of Osskil. There were Roke wizards like Onyx, with grey cloaks
and wooden staffs. There was also a Pelnish wizard, called Master
Seppel, who carried no staff and of whom people mostly steered clear,
though he seemed mild enough. There were noblewomen, young and old,
from the kingdom's fiefs and principalities, some in silks of
Lorbanery and pearls from the Isles of Sand, and two Islandwomen,
stout, plain, and dignified, one from Iffish and one from Korp, to
speak for the people of the East Reach. There were some poets, some
learned people from the old colleges of Ea and the En-lades, and
several captains of soldiery or of the king's ships.
All these
councillors the king had chosen. At the end of two or three years he
would ask them to serve again or send them home with thanks and in
honor, and replace them. All laws and taxations, all judgments
brought before the throne, he discussed with them, taking their
counsel. They would then vote on his proposal, and only with the
consent of the majority was it enacted. There were those who said the
council was nothing but the king's pets and puppets, and so indeed it
might have been. He mostly got his way if he argued for it. Often he
expressed no opinion and let the council make the decision. Many
councillors had found that if they had enough facts to support their
opposition and made a good argument, they might sway the others and
even persuade the king. So debates within the various divisions and
special bodies of the council were often hotly contested, and even in
full session the king had several times been opposed, argued with,
and voted down. He was a good diplomat, but an indifferent
politician.
He found his
council served him well, and people of power had come to respect it.
Common folk did not pay much attention to it. They centered their
hopes and attention on the king's person. There were a thousand lays
and ballads about the son of Morred, the prince who rode the dragon
back from death to the shores of day, the hero of Sorra, wielder of
the Sword of Serriadh, the Rowan Tree, the Tall Ash of Enlad, the
well-loved king who ruled in the Sign of Peace. But it was hard going
to make songs about councillors debating shipping taxes.
Unsung, then, they
filed in and took their seats on the cushioned benches facing the
uncushioned throne. They stood again as the king came in. With him
came the Woman of Gont, whom most of them had seen before so that her
appearance caused no stir, and a slight man in rusty black. "Looks
like a village sorcerer," a merchant from Kamery said to a
shipwright from Way, who answered, "No doubt," in a
resigned, forgiving tone. The king was loved also by many of the
councillors, or at least liked; he had after all put power in their
hands, and even if they felt no obligation to be grateful him, they
respected his judgment.
The elderly Lady of
Ebea hurried in late, and Prince Sege, who presided over protocol,
told the council to be seated. They all sat down. "Hear the
king," Sege said, and they listened.
He told them, and
for many it was the first real news of these matters, about the
dragons' attacks on West Havnor, and how he had set out with the
Woman of Gont, Tehanu, to parley with them.
He kept them in
suspense while he spoke of the earlier attacks by dragons on the
islands of the west, and told them briefly Onyx's tale of the girl
who turned into a dragon on Roke Knoll, and reminded them that Tehanu
was claimed as daughter by Tenar of the Ring, by the onetime Archmage
of Roke, and by the dragon Kalessin, on whose back the king himself
had been borne from Selidor.
Then finally he
told them what had happened at the pass in the Faliern Mountains at
dawn three days ago.
He ended by saying,
"That dragon carried Tehanu's message to Orm Irian in Paln, who
then must make the long flight here, three hundred miles or more. But
dragons are swifter than any ship even with the magewind. We may look
for Orm Irian at any time."
Prince Sege asked
the first question, knowing the king would welcome it: "What do
you hope to gain, my lord, by parley with a dragon?"
The answer was
prompt: "More than we can ever gain by trying to fight it. It is
a hard thing to say, but it is the truth: against the anger of these
great creatures, if indeed they were to come against us in any
number, we have no true defense. Our wise men tell us there is maybe
one place that could stand against them, Roke Island. And on Roke
there is maybe one man who could face the wrath of even a single
dragon and not be destroyed. Therefore we must try to find out the
cause of their anger and, by removing it, make peace with them."
"They are
animals," said the old Lord of Felkway. "Men cannot reason
with animals, make peace with them."
"Have we not
the Sword of Erreth-Akbe, who slew the Great Dragon?" cried a
young councillor.
He was answered at
once by another: "And who slew Erreth-Akbe?"
Debate in the
council tended to be tumultuous, though Prince Sege kept strict rule,
not letting anyone interrupt another or speak for more than one turn
of the two-minute sandglass. Babblers and droners were cut off by a
crash of the prince's silver-tipped staff and his call to the next
speaker. So they talked and shouted back and forth at a fast pace,
and all the things that had to be said and many things that did not
need to be said were said, and refuted, and said again. Mostly they
argued that they should go to war, fight the dragons, defeat them.
"A band of
archers on one of the king's warships could bring them down like
ducks," cried a hot-blooded merchant from Wathort.
"Are we to
grovel before mindless beasts? Are there no heroes left among us?"
demanded the imperious Lady of O-tokne.
To that, Onyx made
a sharp reply: "Mindless? They speak the Language of the Making,
in the knowledge of which our art and power lies. They are beasts as
we are beasts. Men are animals that speak."
A ship's captain,
an old, far-traveled man, said, "Then isn't it you wizards who
should be talking with them? Since you know their speech, and maybe
share their powers? The king spoke of a young untaught girl who
turned into a dragon. But mages can take that form at will. Couldn't
the Masters of Roke speak with the dragons or fight with them, if
need be, evenly matched?"
The wizard from
Paln stood up. He was a short man with a soft voice. "To take
the form is to be the being, captain," he said politely. "A
mage can look like a dragon. But true Change is a risky art.
Especially now. A small change in the midst of great changes is like
a breath against the wind… But we have here among us one who
need use no art, and yet can speak for us to dragons better than any
man could do. If she will speak for us."
At that, Tehanu
stood up from her bench at the foot of the dais. "I will,"
she said. And sat down again.
That brought a
pause to the discussion for a minute, but soon they were all at it
again.
The king listened
and did not speak. He wanted to know the temper of his people.
The sweet silver
trumpets high on the Tower of the Sword played all their tune four
times, telling the sixth hour, noon. The king stood, and Prince Sege
declared a recess until the first hour of the afternoon.
A lunch of fresh
cheese and summer fruits and greens was set out in a room in Queen
Heru's Tower. There Lebannen invited Tehanu and Tenar, Alder, Sege,
and Onyx; and Onyx, with the king's permission, brought with him the
Pelnish wizard Seppel. They sat and ate together, talking little and
quietly. The windows looked over all the harbor and the north
shoreline of the bay fading off into a bluish haze that might be
either the remnants of the morning fog or smoke from the forest fires
in the west of the island.
Alder remained
bewildered at being included among the king's intimates and brought
into his councils. What had he to do with dragons? He could neither
fight with them nor talk with them. The idea of such mighty beings
was great and strange to him. At moments the boasts and challenges of
the councillors seemed to him like a yapping of dogs. He had seen a
young dog once on a beach barking and barking at the ocean, rushing
and snapping at the ebb wave, running back from the breaker with its
wet tail between its legs.
But he was glad to
be with Tenar, who put him at ease, and whom he liked for her
kindness and courage, and he found now that he was also at ease with
Tehanu.
Her disfigurement
made it seem that she had two faces. He could not see them both at
one time, only the one or the other. But he had got used to that and
it did not disquiet him. His mother's face had been half masked by
its wine-red birthmark. Tehanu's face reminded him of that.
She seemed less
restless and troubled than she had been. She sat quietly, and a
couple of times she spoke to Alder, sitting next to her, with a shy
comradeliness. He felt that, like him, she was there not by choice
but because she had forgone choice, driven to follow a way she did
not understand. Maybe her way and his went together, for a while at
least. The idea gave him courage. Knowing only that there was
something he had to do, something begun that must be finished, he
felt that whatever it might be, it would be better done with her than
without her. Perhaps she was drawn to him out of the same loneliness.
But her
conversation was not of such deep matters. "My father gave you a
kitten," she said to him as they left the table. "Was it
one of Aunty Moss's?"
He nodded, and she
asked, "The grey one?"
"Yes."
"That was the
best cat of the litter."
"She's getting
fat, here."
Tehanu hesitated
and then said timidly, "I think it's a he."
Alder found himself
smiling. "He's a good companion. A sailor named him Tug."
"Tug,"
she said, and looked satisfied.
"Tehanu,"
the king said. He had sat down beside Tenar in the deep window seat.
"I didn't call on you in council today to speak of the questions
Lord Sparrowhawk asked you. It was not the time. Is it the place?"
Alder watched her.
She considered before answering. She glanced once at her mother, who
made no answering sign.
"I'd rather
speak to you here," she said in her hoarse voice. "And
maybe to the Princess of Hur-at-Hur."
After a brief pause
the king said pleasantly, "Shall I send for her?"
"No, I can go
see her. Afterward. I haven't much to say, really. My father asked,
Who goes to the dry land when they die? And my mother and I talked
about it. And we thought, people go there, but do the beasts? Do
birds fly there? Are there trees, does the grass grow? Alder, you've
seen it."
Taken by surprise,
he could say only, "There… there's grass, on the hither
side of the wall, but it seems dead. Beyond that I don't know."
Tehanu looked at
the king. "You walked across that land, my lord."
"I saw no
beast, or bird, or growing thing."
Alder spoke again:
"Lord Sparrowhawk said: dust, rock."
"I think no
beings go there at death but human beings," Tehanu said. "But
not all of them." Again she looked at her mother, and did not
look away.
Tenar spoke. "The
Kargish people are like the animals." Her voice was dry and let
no feeling be heard. "They die to be reborn."
"That is
superstition," Onyx said. "Forgive me, Lady Tenar, but you
yourself—" He paused.
"I no longer
believe," Tenar said, "that I am or was, as they told me,
Arha forever reborn, a single soul reincarnated endlessly and so
immortal. I do believe that when I die I will, like any mortal being,
rejoin the greater being of the world. Like the grass, the trees, the
animals. Men are only animals that speak, sir, as you said this
morning."
"But we can
speak the Language of the Making," the wizard protested. "By
learning the words by which Segoy made the world, the very speech of
life, we teach our souls to conquer death."
"That place
where nothing is but dust and shadows, is that your conquest?"
Her voice was not dry now, and her eyes flashed.
Onyx stood
indignant but wordless. The king intervened. "Lord Sparrowhawk
asked a second question," he said. "Can a dragon cross the
wall of stones?" He looked at Tehanu.
"It's answered
in the first answer," she said, "if dragons are only
animals that speak, and animals don't go there. Has a mage ever seen
a dragon there? Or you, my lord?" She looked first at Onyx, then
at Lebannen. Onyx pondered only a moment before he said, "No."
The king looked
amazed. "How is it I never thought of that?" he said. "No,
we saw none. I think there are no dragons there."
"My lord,"
Alder said, louder than he had ever said anything in the palace,
"there is a dragon here." He was standing facing the
window, and he pointed at it.
They all turned. In
the sky above the Bay of Havnor they saw a dragon flying from the
west. Its long, slow-beating, vaned wings shone red-gold. A curl of
smoke drifted behind it for a moment in the hazy summer air.
"Now,"
the king said, "what room do I make ready for this guest?"
He spoke as if
amused, bemused. But the instant he saw the dragon turn and come
wheeling in towards the Tower of the Sword, he ran from the room and
down the stairs, startling and outstripping the guards in the halls
and at the doors, so that he came out first and alone on the terrace
under the white tower.
The terrace was the
roof of a banquet hall, a wide expanse of marble with a low
balustrade, the Sword Tower rising directly over it and the Queen's
Tower nearby. The dragon had alighted on the pavement and was furling
its wings with a loud metallic rattle as the king came out. Where it
came down its talons had scratched grooves in the marble.
The long,
gold-mailed head swung round. The dragon looked at the king.
The king looked
down and did not meet its eyes. But he stood straight and spoke
clearly. "Orm Irian, welcome. I am Lebannen."
"Agni
Lebannen," said the great hissing voice, greeting him as Orm
Embar had greeted him long ago, in the farthest west, before he was a
king.
Behind him, Onyx
and Tehanu had run out onto the terrace along with several guards.
One guard had his sword out, and Lebannen saw, in a window of the
Queen's Tower, another with drawn bow and notched arrow aimed at the
dragon's breast. "Put down your weapons!" he shouted in a
voice that made the towers ring, and the guard obeyed in such haste
that he nearly dropped his sword, but the archer lowered his bow
reluctantly, finding it hard to leave his lord defenseless.
"Medeu,"
Tehanu whispered, coming up beside Lebannen, her gaze unwavering on
the dragon. The great creature's head swung round again and the
immense amber eye in a socket of shining, wrinkled scales gazed back,
unblinking.
The dragon spoke.
Onyx,
understanding, murmured to the king what it said and what Tehanu
replied. "Kalessin's daughter, my sister," it said. "You
do not fly."
"I cannot
change, sister," Tehanu said.
"Shall I?"
"For a while,
if you will."
Then those on the
terrace and in the windows of the towers saw the strangest thing they
might ever see however long they lived in a world of sorceries and
wonders. They saw the dragon, the huge creature whose scaled belly
and thorny tail dragged and stretched half across the breadth of the
terrace, and whose red-horned head reared up twice the height of the
king—they saw it lower that big head, and tremble so that its
wings rattled like cymbals, and not smoke but a mist breathed out of
its deep nostrils, clouding its shape, so that it became cloudy like
thin fog or worn glass; and then it was gone. The midday sun beat
down on the scored, scarred, white pavement. There was no dragon.
There was a woman. She stood some ten paces from Tehanu and the king.
She stood where the heart of the dragon might have been.
She was young,
tall, and strongly built, dark, dark-haired, wearing a farm woman's
shift and trousers, barefoot. She stood motionless, as if bewildered.
She looked down at her body. She lifted up her hand and looked at it.
"The little thing!" she said, in the common speech, and she
laughed. She looked at Tehanu. "It's like putting on the shoes I
wore when I was five," she said.
The two women moved
towards each other. With a certain stateliness, like that of armed
warriors saluting or ships meeting at sea, they embraced. They held
each other lightly, but for some moments. They drew apart, and both
turned to face the king.
"Lady Irian,"
he said, and bowed.
She looked a little
nonplussed and made a kind of country curtsey. When she looked up he
saw her eyes were the color of amber. He looked instantly away.
"I'll do you
no harm in this guise," she said, with a broad, white smile.
"Your majesty," she added uncomfortably, trying to be
polite.
He bowed again. It
was he that was nonplussed now. He looked at Tehanu, and round at
Tenar, who had come out onto the terrace with Alder. Nobody said
anything.
Irian's eyes went
to Onyx, standing in his grey cloak just behind the king, and her
face lighted up again. "Sir," she said, "are you from
Roke Island? Do you know the Lord Patterner?"
Onyx bowed or
nodded. He too kept his eyes from hers.
"Is he well?
Does he walk among his trees?"
Again the wizard
bowed.
"And the
Doorkeeper, and the Herbal, and Kurremkarmerruk? They befriended me,
they stood by me. If you go back there, greet them with my love and
honor, if you please."
"I will,"
the wizard said.
"My mother is
here," Tehanu said softly to Irian. "Tenar of Atuan."
"Tenar of
Gont," Lebannen said, with a certain ring to his voice.
Looking with open
wonder at Tenar, Irian said, "It was you that brought the Rune
Ring from the land of the Hoary Men, along with the Archmage?"
"It was,"
Tenar said, staring with equal frankness at Irian.
Above them on the
balcony that encircled the Tower of the Sword near its summit there
was movement: the trumpeters had come out to sound the hour, but at
the moment all four of them were gathered on the south side
overlooking the terrace, peering down to see the dragon. There were
faces in every window of the palace towers, and the thrum of voices
down in the streets could be heard like a tide coming in.
"When they
sound the first hour," Lebannen said, "the council will
gather again. The councillors will have seen you come, my lady, or
heard of your coming. So if it please you, I think it best that we go
straight among them and let them behold you. And if you'll speak to
them I promise you they'll listen."
"Very well,"
Irian said. For a moment there was a ponderous, reptilian impassivity
in her. When she moved, that vanished, and she seemed only a tall
young woman who stepped forward quite awkwardly, saying with a smile
to Tehanu, "I feel as if I'll float up like a spark, there's no
weight to me!"
The four trumpets
up in the tower sounded to west, north, east, south in turn, one
phrase of the lament a king five hundred years ago had made for the
death of his friend.
For a moment the
king now remembered the face of that man, Erreth-Akbe, as he stood on
the beach of Selidor, dark-eyed, sorrowful, mortally wounded, among
the bones of the dragon who had killed him. Lebannen felt it strange
that he should think of such faraway things at such a moment; and yet
it was not strange, for the living and the dead, men and dragons, all
were drawing together to some event he could not see.
He paused until
Irian and Tehanu came up to him. As he walked on into the palace with
them he said, "Lady Irian, there are many things I would ask
you, but what my people fear and what the council will desire to know
is whether your people intend to make war on us, and why."
She nodded, a
heavy, decisive nod. "I will tell them what I know."
When they came to
the curtained doorway behind the dais, the throne room was all in
confusion, an uproar of voices, so that the crash of Prince Sege's
staff was barely heard at first. Then silence came suddenly on them
and they all turned to see the king come in with the dragon.
Lebannen did not
sit but stood before the throne, and Irian stood to his left.
"Hear the
king," Sege said into that dead silence.
The king said,
"Councillors! This is a day that will long be told and sung.
Your sons' daughters and your daughters' sons will say, 'I am the
grandchild of one who was of the Dragon Council!' So honor her whose
presence honors us. Hear Orm Irian."
Some of those who
were at the Dragon Council said afterwards that if they looked
straight at her she seemed only a tall woman standing there, but if
they looked aside what they saw in the corner of their eye was a vast
shimmer of smoky gold that dwarfed king and throne. And many of them,
knowing a man must not look into a dragon's eye, did look aside; but
they stole glimpses too. The women looked at her, some thinking her
plain, some beautiful, some pitying her for having to go barefoot in
the palace. And a few councillors, not having rightly understood,
wondered who the woman was, and when the dragon would be coming.
All the time she
spoke, that complete silence endured. Though her voice had the
lightness of most women's voices, it filled the high hall easily. She
spoke slowly and formally, as if she were translating in her mind
from the older speech.
"My name was
Irian, of the Domain of Old Iria on Way. I am Orm Irian now.
Kalessin, the Eldest, calls me daughter. I am sister to Orm Embar,
whom the king knew, and grandchild of Orm, who killed the king's
companion Erreth-Akbe and was killed by him. I am here because my
sister Tehanu called to me.
"When Orm
Embar died on Selidor, destroying the mortal body of the wizard Cob,
Kalessin came from beyond the west and brought the king and the great
mage to Roke. Then returning to the Dragons' Run, the Eldest called
the people of the west, whose speech had been taken from them by Cob,
and who were still bewildered. Kalessin said to them, 'You let evil
turn you into evil. You have been mad. You are sane again, but so
long as the winds blow from the east you can never be what you were,
free of both good and evil.'
"Kalessin
said: 'Long ago we chose. We chose freedom. Men chose the yoke. We
chose fire and the wind. They chose water and the earth. We chose the
west, and they the east.'
"And Kalessin
said: 'But always among us some envy them their wealth, and always
among them some envy us our liberty. So it was that evil came into us
and will come into us again, until we choose again, and forever, to
be free. Soon I am going beyond the west to fly on the other wind. I
will lead you there, or wait for you, if you will come.'
"Then some of
the dragons said to Kalessin, 'Men in their envy of us long ago stole
half our realm beyond the west from us and made walls of spells to
keep us out of it. So now let us drive them into the farthest east,
and take back the islands! Men and dragons cannot share the wind.'
"Then Kalessin
said, 'Once we were one people. And in sign of that, in every
generation of men, one or two are born who are dragons also. And in
every generation of our people, longer than the quick lives of men,
one of us is born who is also human. Of these one is now living in
the Inner Isles. And there is one of them living there now who is a
dragon. These two are the messengers, the bringers of choice. There
will be no more such born to us or to them. For the balance changes.'
"And Kalessin
said to them: 'Choose. Come with me to fly on the far side of the
world, on the other wind. Or stay and put on the yoke of good and
evil. Or dwindle into dumb beasts.' And at the last Kalessin said:
'The last to make the choice will be Tehanu. After her there will be
no choosing. There will be no way west. Only the forest will be, as
it is always, at the center.'"
The people of the
King's Council were still as stones, listening. Irian stood moveless,
gazing as if through them, as she spoke.
"After some
years had passed, Kalessin flew beyond the west. Some followed, some
did not. When I came to join my people, I followed Kalessin. But I go
there and come back, so long as the winds will bear me.
"The
disposition of my people is jealous and irate. Those who stayed here
on the winds of the world began to fly in bands or singly to the
isles of men, saying again, 'They stole half our realm. Now we will
take all the west of their realm, and drive them out of it, so they
cannot bring their good and evil to us any more. We will not put our
necks into their yoke.'
"But they did
not try to kill the islanders, because they remembered being mad,
when dragon killed dragon. They hate you, but they will not kill you
unless you try to kill them.
"So one of
these bands has come now to this island, Havnor, that we call the
Cold Hill. The dragon who came before them and spoke to Tehanu is my
brother Ammaud. They seek to drive you into the east, but Ammaud,
like me, enacts the will of Kalessin, seeking to free my people from
the yoke you wear. If he and I and the children of Kalessin can
prevent harm to your people and ours, we will do so. But dragons have
no king, and obey no one, and will fly where they will. For a while
they will do as my brother and I ask in Kalessin's name. But not for
long. And they fear nothing in the world, except your wizardries of
death."
That last word rang
heavily in the great hall in the silence that followed Irian's voice.
The king spoke,
thanking Irian. He said, "You honor us with your truth-speaking.
By my name, we will speak truth to you. I beg you to tell me,
daughter of Kalessin who bore me to my kingdom, what it is you say
the dragons fear? I thought they feared nothing in the world or out
of it."
"We fear your
spells of immortality," she said bluntly.
"Of
immortality?" Lebannen hesitated. "I am no wizard. Master
Onyx, speak for me, if the daughter of Kalessin will permit."
Onyx stood up.
Irian looked at him with cold, impartial eyes, and nodded.
"Lady Irian,"
the wizard said, "we make no spells of immortality. Only the
wizard Cob sought to make himself immortal, perverting our art to do
so." He spoke slowly and with evident care, searching his mind
as he spoke. "Our Archmage, with my lord the king, and with the
aid of Orm Embar, destroyed Cob and the evil he had done. And the
Archmage gave all his power up to heal the world, restoring the
Equilibrium. No other wizard in our lifetime has sought to—"
He stopped short.
Irian looked
straight at him. He looked down.
"The wizard I
destroyed," she said, "the Summoner of Roke, Thorion—what
was it he sought?"
Onyx, stricken,
said nothing.
"He came back
from death," she said. "But not living, as the Archmage and
the king did. He was dead, but he came back across the wall by his
arts—by your arts—you men of Roke! How are we to trust
anything you say? You have unmade the balance of the world. Can you
restore it?"
Onyx looked at the
king. He was openly distressed. "My lord, I cannot think that
this is the place to discuss such matters—before all men—until
we know what we are talking about, and what we must do…"
"Roke keeps
its secrets," Irian said with calm scorn.
"But on Roke—"
Tehanu said, not standing; her weak voice died away. Prince Sege and
the king both looked at her and motioned her to speak.
She stood up. At
first she kept the left side of her face to the councillors, all
sitting motionless on their benches, like stones with eyes.
"On Roke is
the Immanent Grove," she said. "Isn't that what Kalessin
meant, sister, speaking of the forest that is at the center?"
Turning to Irian, she showed the people watching her the whole ruin
of her face; but she had forgotten them. "Maybe we need to go
there," she said. "To the center of things."
Irian smiled. "I'll
go there," she said.
They both looked at
the king.
"Before I send
you to Roke, or go with you," he said slowly, "I must know
what is at stake. Master Onyx, I'm sorry that matters so grave and
chancy force us to debate our course so openly. But I trust my
councillors to support me as I find and hold the course. What the
council needs to know is that our islands need not fear attack from
the People of the West—that the truce, at least, holds."
"It holds,"
Irian said.
"Can you say
how long?"
"A half year?"
she offered, carelessly, as if she had said, "A day or two."
"We will hold
the truce a half year, in hope of peace to follow. Am I right to say,
Lady Irian, that to have peace with us, your people want to know that
our wizards' meddling with the… laws of life and death will
not endanger them?"
"Endanger all
of us," Irian said. "Yes."
Lebannen considered
this and then said, in his most royal, affable, urbane manner, "Then
I believe I should come to Roke with you." He turned to the
benches. "Councillors, with the truce declared, we must seek the
peace. I'll go wherever I must on that quest, ruling as I do in the
Sign of El-farran's Ring. If you see any hindrance to this journey,
speak here and now. For it may be that the balance of power within
the Archipelago, as well as the Equilibrium of the whole, is in
question. And if I go, I must go now. Autumn is near, and it's not a
short voyage to Roke Island."
The stones with
eyes sat there for a long minute, all staring, none speaking. Then
Prince Sege said, "Go, my lord king, go with our hope and trust,
and the magewind in your sails." There was a little murmur of
assent from the councillors: Yes, yes, hear him.
Sege asked for
further questions or debate; nobody spoke. He closed the session.
Leaving the throne
room with him, Lebannen said, "Thank you, Sege," and the
old prince said, "Between you and the dragon, Lebannen, what
could the poor souls say?"
Many matters had to
be settled and arrangements made before the king could leave his
capital; there was also the question of who should go with him to
Roke. Irian and Tehanu, of course, and Tehanu wanted her mother with
her. Onyx said that Alder should by all means go with them, and also
the Pelnish wizard Seppel, for the Lore of Paln had much to do with
these matters of crossing between life and death. The king chose
Tosla to captain the Dolphin, as he had done before. Prince Sege
would look after affairs of state in the king's absence, with a
selected group of councillors, as he also had done before.
So it was all
settled, or so Lebannen thought, until Tenar came to him two days
before they were to sail and said, "You'll be talking of war and
peace with the dragons, and of matters even beyond that, Irian says,
matters that concern the balance of all things in Earthsea. The
people of the Kargad Lands should hear these discussions and have a
voice in them."
"You will be
their representative."
"Not I. I am
not a subject of the High King. The only person here who can
represent his people is his daughter."
Lebannen took a
step away from her, turned partly from her, and at last said in a
voice stifled by the effort to speak without anger, "You know
that she is completely unfitted for such a journey."
"I know
nothing of the kind."
"She has no
education."
"She's
intelligent, practical, and courageous. She's aware of what her
station requires of her. She hasn't been trained to rule, but then
what can she learn boxed up there in the River House with her
servants and some court ladies?"
"To speak the
language, in the first place!"
"She's doing
that. I'll interpret for her when she needs it."
After a brief pause
Lebannen spoke carefully: "I understand your concern for her
people. I will consider what can be done. But the princess has no
place on this voyage."
"Tehanu and
Irian both say she should come with us. Master Onyx says that, like
Alder of Taon, her being sent here at this time cannot be an
accident."
Lebannen walked
farther away. His tone remained stiffly patient and polite: "I
cannot permit it. Her ignorance and inexperience would make her a
serious burden. And I can't put her at risk. Relationships with her
father—"
"In her
ignorance, as you call it, she showed us how to answer Ged's
questions. You are as disrespectful of her as her father is. You
speak of her as of a mindless thing." Tenar's face was pale with
anger. "If you're afraid to put her at risk, ask her to take it
herself."
Again there was a
silence. Lebannen spoke with the same wooden calmness, not looking
directly at her. "If you and Tehanu and Orm Irian believe this
woman should come with us to Roke, and Onyx agrees with you, I accept
your judgment, though I believe it is mistaken. Please tell her that
if she wishes to come, she may do so."
"It is you who
should tell her that."
He stood silent.
Then he walked out of the room without a word.
He passed close by
Tenar, and though he did not look at her he saw her clearly. She
looked old and strained, and her hands trembled. He was sorry for
her, ashamed of his rudeness to her, relieved that no one else had
witnessed the scene; but these feelings were mere sparks in the huge
darkness of his anger at her, at the princess, at everyone and
everything that laid this false obligation, this grotesque duty on
him. As he went out of the room he tugged open the collar of his
shirt as if it were choking him.
His majordomo, a
slow and steady man called Thoroughgood, was not expecting him to
return so soon or through that door and jumped up, staring and
startled. Lebannen returned his stare icily and said, "Send for
the High Princess to attend me here in the afternoon."
"The High
Princess?"
"Is there more
than one of them? Are you unaware that the High King's daughter is
our guest?"
Amazed,
Thoroughgood stammered an apology, which Lebannen interrupted: "I
shall go to the River House myself." And he strode on out,
pursued, impeded, and gradually controlled by the majordomo's
attempts to slow him down long enough for a suitable retinue to be
gathered, horses to be brought from the stables, the petitioners
waiting for audience in the Long Room to be put off till afternoon,
and so on. All his obligations, all his duties, all the trappery and
trammel, rites and hypocrisies that made him king pulled at him,
sucking and tugging him down like quicksand into suffocation.
When his horse was
brought across the stable yard to him, he swung up into the saddle so
abruptly that the horse caught his mood and backed and reared,
driving back the hostlers and attendants. To see the circle widen out
around him gave Lebannen a harsh satisfaction. He set the horse
straight for the gateway without waiting for the men in his retinue
to mount. He led them at a sharp trot through the streets of the
city, far ahead of them, aware of the dilemma of the young officer
who was supposed to precede him calling, "Way for the king!"
but who had been left behind him and now did not dare ride past him.
It was near noon;
the streets and squares of Havnor were hot and bright and mostly
deserted. Hearing the clatter of hooves, people hurried to the
doorways of little dark shops to stare and recognise and salute the
king. Women sitting in their windows fanning themselves and gossiping
across the way looked down and waved, and one of them threw a flower
down at him. His horse's hooves rang on the bricks of a broad,
sunbaked square that lay empty except for a curly-tailed dog trotting
away on three legs, unconcerned with royalty. Out of the square the
king took a narrow passage that led to the paved way beside the
Serrenen, and followed it in the shadow of the willows under the old
city wall to River House.
The ride had
changed his temper somewhat. The heat and silence and beauty of the
city, the sense of multitudinous life behind walls and shutters, the
smile of the woman who had tossed a flower, the petty satisfaction of
keeping ahead of all his guardians and pomp makers, then finally the
scent and coolness of the river ride and the shady courtyard of the
house where he had known days and nights of peace and pleasure, all
took him a little distance from his anger. He felt estranged from
himself, no longer possessed but emptied.
The first riders of
his retinue were just coming into the courtyard as he swung off his
horse, which was glad to stand in the shade. He went into the house,
dropping among dozing footmen like a stone into a glassy pond,
causing quick-widening circles of dismay and panic. He said, "Tell
the princess that I am here."
Lady Opal of the
Old Demesne of Ilien, currently in charge of the princess's
ladies-in-waiting, appeared promptly, greeted him graciously, offered
him refreshment, behaved quite as if his visit were no surprise at
all. This suavity half placated, half irritated him. Endless
hypocrisy! But what was Lady Opal to do—gawp like a stranded
fish (as a very young lady-in-waiting was doing) because the king had
finally and unexpectedly come to see the princess?
"I'm so sorry
Mistress Tenar isn't here at present," she said. "It's so
much easier to converse with the princess with her help. But the
princess is making admirable progress in the language."
Lebannen had
forgotten the problem of language. He accepted the cool drink offered
him and said nothing. Lady Opal made small talk with the assistance
of the other ladies, getting very little from the king. He had begun
to realise that he would probably be expected to speak with the
princess in the company of all her ladies, as was only proper.
Whatever he had intended to say to her, it had become impossible to
say anything. He was just about to get up and excuse himself, when a
woman whose head and shoulders were hidden by a red circular veil
appeared in the doorway, fell plop on her knees, and said, "Please?
King? Princess? Please?"
"The princess
will receive you in her chambers, sire," Lady Opal interpreted.
She waved to a footman, who escorted him upstairs, along a hall,
through an anteroom, through a large, dark room that seemed to be
crammed absolutely full of women in red veils, and out onto a balcony
over the river. There stood the figure he remembered: the immobile
cylinder of red and gold.
The breeze from the
water made the veils tremble and shimmer, so that the figure did not
appear solid but delicate, moving, shivering, like the willow
foliage. It seemed to shrink, to shorten. She was making her courtesy
to him. He bowed to her. They both straightened up and stood in
silence.
"Princess,"
Lebannen said, with a feeling of unreality, hearing his own voice, "I
am here to ask you to come with us to Roke Island."
She said nothing.
He saw the fine red veils part in an oval as she spread them with her
hands. Long-fingered, golden-skinned hands, held apart to reveal her
face in the red shadow. He could not see her features clearly. She
was nearly as tall as he, and her eyes looked straight at him.
"My friend
Tenar," she said, "say: king to see king, face and face. I
say: yes. I will."
Half understanding,
Lebannen bowed again. "You honor me, my lady."
"Yes,"
she said. "I honor you."
He hesitated. This
was a different ground entirely. Her ground.
She stood there
straight and still, the gold edging of her veils shivering, her eyes
looking at him out of the shadow.
"Tenar, and
Tehanu, and Orm Irian, agree that it would be well if the Princess of
the Kargad Lands were with us on Roke Island. So I ask you to come
with us."
"To come."
"To Roke
Island."
"On ship,"
she said, and suddenly made a little moaning plaintive noise. Then
she said, "I will. I will to come."
He did not know
what to say. He said, "Thank you, my lady."
She nodded once,
equal to equal.
He bowed. He left
her as he had been taught to leave the presence of his father the
prince at formal occasions in the court of Enlad, not turning his
back but stepping backwards.
She stood facing
him, still holding her veil parted till he reached the doorway. Then
she dropped her hands, and the veils closed, and he heard her gasp
and breathe out hard as if in release from an act of will sustained
almost past endurance.
Courageous, Tenar
had called her. He did not understand, but he knew that he been in
the presence of courage. All the anger that had filled him, brought
him here, was gone, vanished. He had not been sucked down and
suffocated, but brought up short in front of a rock, a high place in
clear air, a truth.
He went out through
the room full of murmuring, perfumed, veiled women who shrank back
from him into the darkness. Downstairs, he chatted a little with Lady
Opal and the others, and had a kind word for the gawping
twelve-year-old lady-in-waiting. He spoke pleasantly to the men of
his retinue waiting for him in the courtyard. He quietly mounted his
tall grey horse. He rode quietly, thoughtfully, back to the Palace of
Maharion.
Alder heard with
fatalistic acceptance that he was to sail back to Roke. His waking
life had become so strange to him, more dreamlike than his dreams,
that he had little will to question or protest. If he was fated to
sail from island to island the rest of his life, so be it; he knew
there was no such thing as going home for him now. At least he would
be in the company of the ladies Tenar and Tehanu, who put his heart
at ease. And the wizard Onyx had also shown him kindness.
Alder was a shy man
and Onyx a deeply reserved one, and there was all the difference of
their knowledge and status to be bridged; but Onyx had come to him
several times simply to talk as one man of the art to another,
showing a respect for Alder's opinion that puzzled his modesty. But
Alder could not withhold his trust; and so when the time to depart
was near at hand, he took to Onyx the question that had been worrying
him.
"It's the
little cat," he said with embarrassment. "I don't feel
right about taking him. Keeping him cooped up so long. It's unnatural
for a young creature. And I think, what would become of him?”
Onyx did not ask
what he meant. He asked only, "He still helps you keep from the
wall of stones?"
"Well, often
he does."
Onyx pondered. "You
need some protection, till we get to Roke. I have thought…
Have you spoken with the wizard Seppel here?"
"The man from
Paln," Alder said, with a slight unease in his voice.
Paln, the greatest
island west of Havnor, had the reputation of being an uncanny place.
The Pelnish spoke Hardic with a peculiar accent, using many words of
their own. Their lords had in ancient times refused fealty to the
kings of Enlad and Havnor. Their wizards did not go to Roke for their
training. The Pelnish Lore, which called upon the Old Powers of the
Earth, was widely believed to be dangerous if not sinister. Long ago
the Grey Mage of Paln had brought ruin on his island by summoning the
souls of the dead to advise him and his lords, and that tale was part
of the education of every sorcerer: "The living should not take
counsel of the dead." There had been more than one duel in
wizardry between a man of Roke and a man of Paln; in one such combat
two centuries ago a plague had been loosed on the people of Paln and
Semel that had left half the towns and farmlands desolate. And
fifteen years ago, when the wizard Cob had used the Pelnish Lore to
cross between life and death, the Archmage Sparrowhawk had spent all
his own power to defeat him and heal the evil he had done.
Alder, like almost
everyone else at court and in the King's Council, had politely
avoided the wizard Seppel.
"I've asked
the king to bring him with us to Roke," said Onyx.
Alder blinked.
"They know
more than we do about these matters," Onyx said. "Most of
our art of Summoning comes from the Pelnish Lore. Thorion was a
master of it… The Summoner of Roke now, Brand of Venway, won't
use any part of his craft that draws from that lore. Misused, it has
brought only harm. But it may be only our ignorance that's led us to
use it wrongly. It goes back to very ancient times; there may be
knowledge in it we've lost. Seppel is a wise man and mage. I think he
should be with us. And I think he might help you, if you can trust
him."
"If he has
your trust," Alder said, "he has mine."
When Alder spoke
with the silver tongue of Taon, Onyx was likely to smile a little
drily. "Your judgment's as good as mine, Alder, in this
business," he said. "Or better. I hope you use it. But I'll
take you to him."
So they went down
into the city together. Seppel's lodging was in an old part of town
near the shipyards, just off Boatwright Street; there was a little
colony of Pelnish folk there, brought in to work in the king's yards,
for they were great shipbuilders. The houses were ancient, crowded
close, with the bridges between roof and roof that gave Havnor Great
Port a second, airy web of streets high above its paved ones.
Seppel's rooms, up
three flights of stairs, were dark and close in the heat of this late
summer. He took them up one more steep flight onto the roof. It was
joined to other roofs by a bridge on each side, so that there was a
regular crossroads and thoroughfare across it. Awnings were set up by
the low parapets, and the breeze from the harbor cooled the shaded
air. There they sat on striped canvas mats in the corner that was
Seppel's bit of the roof, and he gave them a cool, slightly bitter
tea to drink.
He was a short man
of about fifty, round-bodied, with small hands and feet, hair that
was a little curly and unruly, and what was rare among men of the
Archipelago, a beard, clipped short, on his dark cheeks and jaw. His
manners were pleasant. He spoke in a clipped, singing accent, softly.
He and Onyx talked,
and Alder listened for a good while to them. His mind drifted when
they spoke about people and matters of which he knew nothing. He
looked out over the roofs and awnings, the roof gardens and the
arched and carven bridges, northward to Mount Onn, a great pale-grey
dome above the hazy hills of summer. He came back to himself hearing
the Pelnish wizard say, "It may be that even the Archmage could
not wholly heal the wound in the world."
The wound in the
world, Alder thought: yes. He looked more intently at Seppel, and
Seppel glanced at him. For all the soft look of the man his eyes were
sharp.
"Maybe it's
not only our desire to live forever that has kept the wound open,"
Seppel said, "but the desire of the dead to die."
Again Alder heard
the strange words and felt that he recognised them without
understanding them. Again Seppel glanced at him as if seeking a
response.
Alder said nothing,
nor did Onyx speak. Seppel said at last, "When you stand at the
bourne, Master Alder, what is it they ask of you?"
"To be free,"
Alder replied, his voice only a whisper.
"Free,"
Onyx murmured.
Silence again. Two
girls and a boy ran past across the roofway, laughing and calling,
"Down at the next!"—playing one of the endless games
of chase children made with their city's maze of streets and canals
and stairs and bridges.
"Maybe it was
a bad bargain from the beginning," Seppel said, and when Onyx
looked a question at him he said, "Verio nadan."
Alder knew the
words were in the Old Speech, but he did not know their meaning.
He looked at Onyx,
whose face was very grave. Onyx said only, "Well, I hope we can
come to the truth of these things, and soon."
"On the hill
where truth is," Seppel said.
"I'm glad
you'll be with us there. Meanwhile, here is Alder summoned to the
bourne night after night and seeking some reprieve. I said that you
might know a way to help him."
"And you would
accept the touch of the wizardry of Paln?" Seppel asked Alder.
His tone was softly ironic. His eyes were bright and hard as jet.
Alder's lips were
dry. "Master," he said, "we say on my island, the man
drowning doesn't ask what the rope cost. If you can keep me from that
place even for a night, you'll have my heart's thanks, little as that
is worth in return for such a gift."
Onyx looked at him
with a slight, amused, unreproving smile.
Seppel did not
smile at all. "Thanks are rare, in my trade," he said. "I
would do a good deal for them. I think I can help you, Master Alder.
But I have to tell you the rope is a costly one."
Alder bowed his
head.
"You come to
the bourne in dream, not by your own will, that is so?"
"So I
believe."
"Wisely said."
Seppel's keen glance approved him. "Who knows his own will
clearly? But if it is in dream you go there, I can keep you from that
dream—for a while. And at a cost, as I said."
Alder looked his
question.
"Your power."
Alder did not
understand him at first. Then he said, "My gift, you mean? My
art?"
Seppel nodded.
"I'm only a
mender," Alder said after a little time. "It's not a great
power to give up."
Onyx made as if to
protest, but looked at Alder's face and said nothing.
"It is your
living," Seppel said.
"It was my
life, once. But that's gone."
"Maybe your
gift will come back to you, when what must happen has happened. I
cannot promise that. I will try to restore what I can of what I take
from you. But we're all walking in the night, now, on ground we don't
know. When the day comes we may know where we are, or we may not.
Now, if I spare you your dream, at that price, will you thank me?"
"I will,"
Alder said. "What's the little good of my gift, against the
great evil my ignorance could do? If you spare me the fear I live in
now, the fear that I may do that evil, I'll thank you till the end of
my life."
Seppel drew a deep
breath. "I've always heard that the harps of Taon play true,"
he said. He looked at Onyx. "And Roke has no objection?" he
asked, with a return to his mild ironic tone.
Onyx shook his
head, but he now looked very grave.
"Then we will
go to the cave at Aurun. Tonight if you like."
"Why there?"
Onyx asked.
"Because it's
not I but the Earth that will help Alder. Aurun is a sacred place,
full of power. Although the people of Havnor have forgotten that, and
use it only to defile it."
Onyx managed to
have a private word with Alder before they followed Seppel
downstairs. "You need not go through with this, Alder," he
said. "I thought I trusted Seppel, but I don't know, now."
"I'll trust
him," Alder said. He understood Onyx's doubts, but he had meant
what he said, that he would do anything to be free of the fear of
doing some dreadful wrong. Each time he had been drawn back in dream
to that wall of stones, he felt that something was trying to come
into the world through him, that it would do so if he listened to the
dead calling to him, and each time he heard them, he was weaker and
it was harder to resist their call.
The three men went
a long way through the city streets in the heat of the late
afternoon. They came out into the countryside south of the city,
where rough ridgy hills ran down to the bay, a poor bit of country
for this rich island: swampy lowland between the ridges, a little
arable land on their rocky backs. The wall of the city here was very
old, built of great unmortared rocks taken from the hills, and beyond
it were no suburbs and few farms.
They walked along a
rough road that zigzagged up the first ridge and followed its crest
eastward towards the higher hills. Up there, where they could see all
the city lying in a golden haze northward, to their left, the road
widened out into a maze of footpaths. Going straight forward they
came suddenly to a great crack in the ground, a black gap twenty feet
wide or more, right across their way.
It was as if the
spine of rock had been cracked apart by a wrenching of the earth and
had never healed again. The western sunlight streaming over the lips
of the cave lighted the vertical rock faces a little way down, but
below that was darkness.
There was a tannery
in the valley under the ridge, south of it. The tanners had brought
their wastes up here and dumped them into the crack, carelessly, so
that all around it was a litter of rancid scraps of half-cured
leather and a stink of rot and urine. There was another smell from
the depths of the cave as they approached the sheer edge: a cold,
sharp, earthy air that made Alder draw back.
"I grieve for
this, I grieve for this!" the wizard of Paln said aloud, looking
around at the rubbish and down at the roofs of the tannery with a
strange expression. But he spoke to Alder after a while in his usual
mild way: "This is the cave or cleft called Aurun, that we know
from our most ancient maps in Paln, where it is also called the Lips
of Paor. It used to speak to the people here, when they first came
here from the west. A long time ago. Men have changed. But it is what
it was then. Here you can lay down your burden, if that is what you
want."
"What must I
do?" Alder said.
Seppel led him to
the south end of the great split in the ground, where it narrowed
back together in fissured ridges of rock. He told him to lie facedown
where he could gaze into the depth of darkness stretching down and
down away from him. "Hold to the earth," he said. "That
is all you must do. Even if it moves, hold to it."
Alder lay there
staring down between the walls of stone. He felt rocks jabbing his
chest and hip as he lay on them; he heard Seppel begin to chant in a
high voice in words he knew were the Language of the Making; he felt
the warmth of the sun across his shoulders, and smelled the carrion
stink of the tannery. Then the breath of the cave blew up out of the
depths with a hollow sharpness that took his own breath away and made
his head spin. The darkness moved up towards him. The ground moved
under him, rocked and shook, and he held on to it, hearing the high
voice sing, breathing the breath of the earth. The darkness rose up
and took him. He lost the sun.
When he came back,
the sun was low in the west, a red ball in the haze over the western
shores of the bay. He saw that. He saw Seppel sitting nearby on the
ground, looking tired and forlorn, his black shadow long on the rocky
ground among the long shadows of the rocks.
"There you
are," Onyx said.
Alder realised that
he was lying on his back, his head on Onyx's knees, a rock digging
into his backbone. He sat up, dizzy, apologising.
They set off as
soon as he could walk, for they had some miles to go and it was clear
that neither he nor Seppel would be able to keep a fast pace. Full
night had fallen when they came by Boatwright Street. Seppel bade
them farewell, looking searchingly at Alder as they stood in the
light from a tavern door nearby. "I did as you asked me,"
he said, with that same unhappy look.
"I thank you
for it," Alder said, and put out his right hand to the wizard in
the manner of the people of the En-lades. After a moment Seppel
touched it with his hand; and so they parted.
Alder was so tired
he could barely make his legs move. The sharp, strange taste of the
air from the cave was still in his mouth and throat, making him feel
light, light-headed, hollow. When at last they came to the palace,
Onyx wanted to see him to his room, but Alder said he was well and
only needed to rest.
He came into his
room and Tug came dancing and tail-waving to greet him. "Ah, I
don't need you now," Alder said, bending down to stroke the
sleek grey back. Tears came into his eyes. It was only that he was
very tired. He lay down on the bed, and the cat jumped up and curled
up purring on his shoulder.
And he slept:
black, blank sleep with no dream he could remember, no voice calling
his name, no hill of dry grass, no dim wall of stones, nothing.
Walking in the
gardens of the palace in the evening before they were to sail south,
Tenar was heavyhearted and anxious. She did not want to be setting
off to Roke, the Isle of the Wise, the Isle of the Wizards.
(Accursed-sorcerers, a voice in her mind said in Kargish.) What had
she to do there? What possible use could she be? She wanted to go
home to Gont, to Ged. To her own house, her own work, her own dear
man.
She had estranged
Lebannen. She had lost him. He was polite, affable, and unforgiving.
How men feared
women! she thought, walking among the late-flowering roses. Not as
individuals, but women when they talked together, worked together,
spoke up for one another—then men saw plots, cabals,
constraints, traps being laid.
Of course they were
right. Women were likely, as women, to take the next generations
part, not this one's; they wove the links men saw as chains, the
bonds men saw as bondage. She and Seserakh were indeed in league
against him and ready to betray him, if he truly was nothing unless
he was independent. If he was only air and fire, no weight of earth
to him, no patient water…
But that was not
Lebannen so much as Tehanu. Unearthly, her Tehanu, the winged soul
that had come to stay with her a while and was soon, she knew, to
leave her. From fire to fire.
And Irian, with
whom Tehanu would go. What had that bright, fierce creature to do
with an old house that needed sweeping, an old man who needed looking
after? How could Irian understand such things? What was it to her, a
dragon, that a man should undertake his duty, marry, have children,
wear the yoke of earth?
Seeing herself
alone and useless among beings of high, inhuman destiny, Tenar gave
in altogether to homesickness.
Homesickness not
for Gont only. Why should she not be in league with Seserakh, who
might be a princess as she herself had been a priestess, but who was
not going to go flying off on fiery wings, being deeply and entirely
a. woman of the earth? And she spoke Tenars own language! Tenar had
dutifully tutored her in Hardic, had been delighted with her
quickness to learn, and realised only now that the true delight had
been just to speak Kargish with her, hearing and saying words that
held in them all her lost childhood.
As she came to the
walk that led to the fish ponds beneath the willows, she saw Alder.
With him was a small boy. They were talking quietly, soberly. She was
always glad to see Alder. She pitied him for the pain and fear he was
in and honored his patience in bearing it. She liked his honest,
handsome face, and his silver tongue. What was the harm in adding a
grace note or two to ordinary speech? Ged had trusted him.
Pausing at a
distance so as not to disturb the conversation, she saw him and the
child kneel down on the path, looking into the bushes. Presently
Alder's little grey cat emerged from under a bush. It paid no
attention to them, but set off across the grass, paw by paw, belly
low and eyes alight, hunting a moth.
"You can let
him stay out all night, if you like," Alder said to the child.
"He can't stray or come to harm here. He has a great taste for
the open air. But this is like all Havnor to him, you see, these
great gardens. Or you can give him his freedom in the mornings. And
then, if you like, he can sleep with you."
"I would like
that," the boy said, shyly decisive.
"Then he needs
his box of sand in your room, you know. And a bowl of drinking water,
never to go dry."
"And food."
"Yes, indeed;
once a day. Not too much of it. He's a bit greedy. Inclined to think
Segoy made the islands so that Tug could fill his belly."
"Does he catch
fish in the pond?" The cat was now near one of the carp pools,
sitting on the grass looking about; the moth had flown.
"He likes to
watch them."
"I do too,"
the boy said. They got up and walked together towards the pools.
Tenar was moved to
tenderness. There was an innocence to Alder, but it was a man's
innocence, not childish. He should have had children of his own. He
would have been a good father to them.
She thought of her
own children, and of the little grandchildren—though Apple's
eldest, Pippin, was it possible? was Pippin about to be twelve? She
would be named this year or next! Oh, it was time to go home. It was
time to visit Middle Valley, take a nameday present to her
granddaughter and toys to the babies, make sure Spark in his
restlessness wasn't overpruning the pear trees again, sit a while and
talk with her kind daughter Apple… Apple's true name was
Hayohe, the name Ogion had given her… The thought of Ogion
came as always with a pang of love and longing. She saw the
hearthplace of the house at Re Albi. She saw Ged sitting there at the
hearth. She saw him turn his dark face to ask her a question. She
answered it, aloud, in the gardens of the New Palace of Havnor
hundreds of miles from that hearth: "As soon as I can!"
In the morning, the
bright summer morning, they all went down from the palace to go
aboard the Dolphin. The people of the City of Havnor made it a
festival, swarming afoot in the streets and on the wharves, choking
the canals with the little poled boats they called chips, dotting the
great bay with sailboats and dinghies all flying bright flags; and
flags and pennants flew from the towers of the great houses and the
banner poles on bridges high and low. Passing among these cheerful
crowds, Tenar thought of the day long ago she and Ged came sailing
into Havnor, bringing home the Rune of Peace, Elfarran's Ring. That
Ring had been on her arm, and she had held it up so the silver would
flash in the sunlight and the people could see it, and they had
cheered and held out their arms to her as if they all wanted to
embrace her. It made her smile to think of that. She was smiling as
she went up the gangplank and bowed to Lebannen.
He greeted her with
the traditional formality of a ship's master: "Mistress Tenar,
be welcome aboard." She replied, moved by she knew not what
impulse, "I thank you, son of Elfarran."
He looked at her
for a moment, startled by that name. But Tehanu followed close after
her, and he repeated the formal greeting: "Mistress Tehanu, be
welcome aboard."
Tenar went on
towards the prow of the ship, remembering a corner there near a
capstan where a passenger could be out of the way of the hardworking
sailors and yet see all that happened on the crowded deck and outside
the ship too.
There was a
commotion in the main street leading to the dock: the High Princess
was arriving. Tenar saw with satisfaction that Lebannen, or perhaps
his majordomo, had arranged for the princess's arrival to be
fittingly magnificent. Mounted escorts opened a way through the
crowds, their horses snorting and clattering in fine style. Tall red
plumes, such as Kargish warriors wore on their helmets, waved from
the top of the closed, gilt-bedizened carriage that had brought the
princess across the city and on the headstalls of the four grey
horses that drew it. A band of musicians waiting on the waterside
struck up with trumpet, tambour, and tambourine. And the people,
discovering that they had a princess to cheer and peer at, cheered
loudly, and pressed as close as the horsemen and foot guards would
allow them, gaping and full of praises and somewhat random greetings.
"Hail the Queen of the Kargs!" some of them shouted, and
others, "She ain't," and others, "Look at em all in
red, fine as rubies, which one is her?" and others, "Long
live the Princess!"
Tenar saw
Seserakh—veiled of course from hat to foot, but unmistakable by
her height and bearing—descend from the carriage and sail,
stately as a ship herself, towards the gangplank. Two of her
shorter-veiled attendants trotted close behind her, followed by Lady
Opal of Ilien. Tenar's heart sank. Lebannen had decreed that no
servants or followers were to be taken on this journey. It was not a
cruise or pleasure trip, he had said sternly, and those aboard must
have good reason to be aboard. Had Seserakh not understood that? Or
did she so cling to her silly countrywomen that she meant to defy the
king? That would be a most unfortunate beginning of the voyage.
But at the foot of
the gangplank the gold-rippling red cylinder stopped and turned. It
put forth hands, gold-skinned hands shining with gold rings. The
princess embraced her handmaidens, clearly bidding them farewell. She
also embraced Lady Opal in the approved stately manner of royalty and
nobility in public. Then Lady Opal herded the handmaidens back
towards the carriage, while the princess turned again to the
gangplank.
There was a pause.
Tenar could see that featureless column of red and gold take a deep
breath. It drew itself up taller.
It proceeded up the
gangplank, slowly, for the tide had been rising and the angle was
steep, but with an unhesitant dignity that kept the crowds ashore
silent, fascinated, watching.
It attained the
deck and stopped there, facing the king.
"High Princess
of the Kargad Lands, be welcome aboard," Lebannen said in a
ringing voice. At that the crowds burst out—"Hurrah for
the Princess! Long live the Queen! Well walked, Reddy!"
Lebannen said
something to the princess which the cheering made inaudible to
others. The red column turned to the crowd on the waterside and
bowed, stiff-backed but gracious.
Tehanu had waited
for her near where the king stood, and now came forward and spoke to
her and led her to the aft cabin of the ship, where the heavy,
soft-flowing red and golden veils disappeared. The crowd cheered and
called more wildly than ever. "Come back, Princess! Where's
Reddy? Where's our lady? Where's the Queen?"
Tenar looked down
the length of the ship at the king. Through her misgivings and
heaviness of heart, unruly laughter welled up in her. She thought,
Poor boy, what will you do now? They've fallen in love with her the
first chance they got to see her, even though they can't see her…
Oh, Lebannen, we're all in league against you!
dolphin was a
fair-sized ship, fitted out to carry a king in some state and
comfort; but first and foremost she was made to sail, to fly with the
wind, to take him where he needed to go as quickly as could be.
Accommodations were cramped enough when it was only the crew and
officers, the king and a few companions aboard. On this voyage to
Roke, accommodations were jammed. The crew, to be sure, were in no
more than usual discomfort, sleeping down in the three-foot-high
kennel of the foreward hold; but the officers had to share one
wretched black closet under the forecastle. As for the passengers,
all four women were in what was normally the king's cabin, which ran
the narrow width of the sterncastle of the ship, while the cabin
beneath it, usually occupied by the ship's master and one or two
other officers, was shared by the king, the two wizards, the
sorcerer, and Tosla. The probability of misery and bad temper was,
Tenar thought, limitless. The first and most urgent probability,
however, was that the High Princess was going to be sick. They were
sailing down the Great Bay with the mildest following wind, the water
calm, the ship gliding along like a swan on a pond; but Seserakh
cowered on her bunk, crying out in despair whenever she looked out
through her veils and caught sight of the sunny, peaceful vista of
unexcited water, the mild white wake of the ship, through the broad
stern windows. "It will go up and down," she moaned in
Kargish.
"It is not
going up and down at all," Tenar said. "Use your head,
princess!"
"It is my
stomach not my head," Seserakh whimpered.
"Nobody could
possibly be seasick in this weather. You are simply afraid."
"Mother,"
Tehanu protested, understanding the tone if not the words. "Don't
scold her. It's miserable to be sick."
"She is not
sick!" Tenar said. She was absolutely convinced of the truth of
what she said. "Seserakh, you are not sick. You are afraid of
being sick. Get hold of yourself. Come out on deck. Fresh air will
make all the difference. Fresh air and courage."
"Oh my
friend," Seserakh murmured in Hardic. "Make me courage!"
Tenar was a little
taken aback. "You have to make it yourself, princess," she
said. Then, relenting, "Come on, just try it out on deck for a
minute. Tehanu, see if you can persuade her. Think what she'll suffer
if we do meet some weather!"
Between them they
got Seserakh to her feet and into her cylinder of red veiling,
without which she could not of course appear before the eyes of men;
they coaxed and wheedled her to creep out of the cabin, onto the bit
of deck to the side of it, in the shade, where they could all sit in
a row on the bone-white, impeccable decking and look out at the blue
and shining sea.
Seserakh parted her
veils enough that she could see straight in front of her; but she
mostly looked at her lap, with an occasional, brief, terrified glance
at the water, after which she shut her eyes and then looked down at
her lap again.
Tenar and Tehanu
talked a little, pointing out ships that passed, birds, an island.
"It's lovely. I forgot how I like to sail!" Tenar said.
"I like it if
I can forget the water," said Tehanu. "It's like flying."
"Ah, you
dragons," Tenar said.
It was spoken
lightly, but it was not lightly said. It was the first time she had
ever said anything of the kind to her adopted daughter. She was aware
that Tehanu had turned her head to look at her with her seeing eye.
Tenar's heart beat heavily. "Air and fire," she said.
Tehanu said
nothing. But her hand, the brown slender hand, not the claw, reached
out and took hold of Tenar's hand and held it tightly.
"I don't know
what I am, mother," she whispered in her voice that was seldom
more than a whisper.
"I do,"
Tenar said. And her heart beat heavier and harder than before.
"I'm not like
Irian," Tehanu said. She was trying to comfort her mother, to
reassure her, but there was longing in her voice, yearning jealousy,
profound desire.
"Wait, wait
and find out," her mother replied, finding it hard to speak.
"You'll know what to do… what you are… when the
time comes."
They were talking
so softly that the princess could not hear what they said, if she
could understand it. They had forgotten her. But she had caught the
name Irian, and parting her veils with her long hands and turning to
them, her eyes looking out bright from the warm red shadow, she
asked, "Irian, she is?"
"Somewhere
forward—up there—" Tenar waved at the rest of the
ship.
"She makes
herself courage. Ah?"
After a moment
Tenar said, "She doesn't need to make it, I think. She's
fearless."
"Ah,"
said the princess.
Her bright eyes
were gazing out of shadow all the length of the ship, to the prow,
where Irian stood beside Lebannen. The king was pointing ahead,
gesturing, talking with animation. He laughed, and Irian, standing by
him, as tall as he, laughed too.
"Barefaced,"
Seserakh muttered in Kargish. And then in Hardic, thoughtfully,
almost inaudibly, "Fearless."
She closed her
veils and sat featureless, unmoving.
The long shores of
Havnor were blue behind them. Mount Onn floated faint and high in the
north. The black basalt columns of the Isle of Omer towered off the
ship's right side as she worked across the Ebavnor Straits towards
the Inmost Sea. The sun was bright, the wind fresh, another fine day.
All the women were sitting under the sailcloth awning the sailors had
rigged for them beside the aftercabin. Women brought good luck to a
ship, and the sailors couldn't do enough for them in the way of
ingenious little comforts and amenities. Because wizards could bring
good luck or, equally, bad luck to a ship, the sailors also treated
the wizards very well; their awning was rigged in a corner of the
quarterdeck, where they had a good view forward. The women had velvet
cushions to sit on (provided by the king's forethought, or his
majordomo's); the wizards had packets of sailcloth, which did very
well.
Alder found himself
treated as and considered to be one of the wizards. He could do
nothing about it, though it embarrassed him lest Onyx and Seppel
should think he was claiming equality with them, and it also troubled
him because he was now not even a sorcerer. His gift was gone. He had
no power at all. He knew it as surely as he would have known the loss
of his sight, the paralysis of his hand. He could not have mended a
broken pitcher now, unless with glue; and he would have done it
badly, because he had never had to do it.
And beyond the
craft he had lost was something else, something larger than the
craft, that was gone. Its loss left him, as his wife's death had, in
a blankness in which no joy, no new thing was or would ever be.
Nothing could happen, nothing could change.
Not having known of
this larger aspect of his gift till he lost it, he pondered on it,
wondering about its nature. It was like knowing the way to go, he
thought, like knowing the direction of home. Not a thing one could
identify or even say much about, but a connection on which everything
else depended. Without it he was desolate. He was useless.
But at least he did
no harm. His dreams were fleeting, meaningless. They never took him
to those dreary moorlands, the hill of dead grass, the wall. No
voices called him to the dark.
He thought often of
Sparrowhawk, wishing he could talk with him: the Archmage who had
spent all his power, and having been great among the great, now lived
his life out poor and disregarded. Yet the king longed to show him
honor; so Sparrowhawk's poverty was by choice. Perhaps, Alder
thought, riches or high estate would have been only shameful to a man
who had lost his true wealth, his way.
Onyx clearly
regretted having led Alder to make this trade or bargain. He had
always been entirely civil to Alder, but he now treated him with
regard and compunction, while his manner to the wizard of Paln had
become a little distant. Alder himself felt no resentment towards
Seppel and no distrust of his intentions. The Old Powers were the Old
Powers. You used them at your risk. Seppel had told him what he must
pay, and he had paid it. He had not understood quite how much there
was to pay; but that was not Seppel's fault. It was his own, for
never having valued his gift at its true worth.
So he sat with the
two wizards, thinking of himself as false coin to their gold, but
listening to them with all his mind; for they trusted him and spoke
freely, and their talk was an education he had never dreamed of as a
sorcerer.
Sitting there in
the bright pale shade of the canvas awning, they talked of a bargain,
a greater bargain than the one he had made to stop his dreams. Onyx
said more than once the words of the Old Speech Seppel had spoken on
the rooftop: Verw nadan. As they talked, little by little Alder
gathered that the meaning of those words was something like a choice,
a division, making two things of one. Far, far back in time, before
the Kings of Enlad, before the writing of Hardic, maybe before there
was a Hardic tongue, when there was only the Language of the Making,
it seemed that people had made some kind of choice, given up one
great power or possession to gain another.
The wizards' talk
of this was hard to follow, not so much because they hid anything but
because they themselves were groping after things lost in the cloudy
past, the time before memory. Words of the Old Speech came into their
talk of necessity, and sometimes Onyx spoke entirely in that tongue.
But Seppel would answer him in Hardic. Seppel was sparing with the
words of the Making. Once he held up his hand to stop Onyx from going
on, and at the Roke wizard's look of surprise and question, said
mildly, "Spellwords act."
Alder's teacher
Gannet, too, had called the words of the Old Speech spellwords. "Each
is a deed of power," he had said. "True word makes truth
be." Gannet had been stingy with the spellwords he knew,
speaking them only at need, and when he wrote any rune but the common
ones that were used to write Hardic, he erased it almost as he
finished it. Most sorcerers were similarly careful, either to guard
their knowledge for themselves or because they respected the power of
the Language of the Making. Even Seppel, wizard as he was, with a far
wider knowledge and understanding of those words, preferred not to
use them in conversation, but to keep to ordinary language which, if
it allowed lies and errors, also permitted uncertainty and
retraction.
Perhaps that had
been part of the great choice men made in ancient times: to give up
the innate knowledge of the Old Speech, which they once shared with
the dragons. Had they done so, Alder wondered, in order to have a
language of their own, a language suited to mankind, in which they
could lie, cheat, swindle, and invent wonders that never had been and
would never be?
The dragons spoke
no speech but the Old Speech. Yet it was always said that dragons
lied. Was it so? he wondered. If spellwords were true, how could even
a dragon use them to lie?
Seppel and Onyx had
come to one of the long, easy, thoughtful pauses in their
conversation. Seeing that Onyx was, in fact, at least half asleep,
Alder asked the Pelnish wizard softly, "Is it true that dragons
can tell untruth in the true words?"
The Pelnishman
smiled. "That—so we say on Paln—is the very question
Ath asked Orm a thousand years ago, in the ruins of Ontuego. 'Can a
dragon lie?' the mage asked. And Orm replied, 'No,' and then breathed
on him, burning him to ashes… But are we to believe the story,
since it was only Orm who could have told it?"
Infinite are the
arguments of mages, Alder said to himself, but not aloud.
Onyx had gone
definitely to sleep, his head tilted back against the bulkhead, his
grave, tense face relaxed.
Seppel spoke, his
voice even quieter than usual. "Alder, I hope you do not regret
what we did at Aurun. I know our friend thinks I did not warn you
clearly enough."
Alder said without
hesitation, "I am content."
Seppel inclined his
dark head.
Alder said
presently, "I know that we try to keep the Equilibrium. But the
Powers of the Earth keep their own account."
"And theirs is
a justice that is hard for men to understand."
"That's it. I
try to see why it was just that, my craft, I mean, that I must give
up to free myself from that dream. What has the one to do with the
other?"
Seppel did not
answer for a while, and then it was with a question. "It was not
by your craft that you came to the wall of stones?"
"Never,"
Alder said with certainty. "I had no more power to go there if I
willed it than I had to prevent myself from going."
"So how did
you come there?"
"My wife
called me, and my heart went to her."
A longer pause. The
wizard said, "Other men have lost beloved wives."
"So I said to
my Lord Sparrowhawk. And he said: that's true, and yet the bond
between true lovers is as close as we come to what endures forever."
"Across the
wall of stones, no bond endures."
Alder looked at the
wizard, the swarthy, soft, keen-eyed face. "Why is it so?"
he said.
"Death is the
bond breaker."
"Then why do
the dead not die?"
Seppel stared at
him, taken aback.
"I'm sorry,"
Alder said. "I misspeak in my ignorance. What I mean is this:
death breaks the bond of soul with body, and the body dies. It goes
back to the earth. But the spirit must go to that dark place, and
wear a semblance of the body, and endure there—for how long?
Forever? In the dust and dusk there, without light, or love, or cheer
at all? I cannot bear to think of Lily in that place. Why must she be
there? Why can she not be—" his voice stumbled—"be
free?"
"Because the
wind does not blow there," Seppel said. His look was very
strange, his voice harsh. "It was stopped from blowing, by the
art of man."
He continued to
stare at Alder but only gradually did he begin to see him. The
expression in his eyes and face changed. He looked away, up the
beautiful white curve of the foresail, full of the breath of the
northwest wind. He glanced back at Alder. "You know as much as I
do of this matter, my friend," he said with almost his usual
softness. "But you know it in your body, your blood, in the
pulse of your heart. And I know only words. Old words… So we
had better get to Roke, where maybe the wise men will be able to tell
us what we need to know. Or if they cannot, the dragons will,
perhaps. Or maybe it will be you who shows us the way."
"That would be
the blind man who led the seers to the cliff's edge, indeed!"
Alder said with a laugh.
"Ah, but we're
at the cliff's edge already, with our eyes shut," said the
wizard of Paln.
Lebannen found the
ship too small to contain the enormous restlessness that filled him.
The women sat under their little awning and the wizards sat under
theirs like ducks in a row, but he paced up and down, impatient with
the narrow confines of the deck. He felt it was his impatience and
not the wind that sent Dolphin running so fast to the south, but
never fast enough. He wanted the journey over.
"Remember the
fleet on the way to Wathort?" Tosla said joining him while he
stood near the steersman, studying the chart and the clear sea before
them. "That was a grand sight. Thirty ships aline!"
"I wish it was
Wathort we were bound for," Lebannen said.
"I never did
like Roke," Tosla agreed. "Not an honest wind or current
for twenty miles off that shore, but only wizards' brew. And the
rocks north of it never in the same place twice. And the town full of
cheats and shape-shifters." He spat, competently, to leeward.
"I'd rather meet old Gore and his slavers again!"
Lebannen nodded,
but said nothing. That was often the pleasure of Tosla's company: he
said what Lebannen felt it was better that he himself not say.
"Who was the
dumb man, the mute," Tosla asked, "the one that killed
Falcon on the wall?"
"Egre. Pirate
turned slave taker."
"That's it. He
knew you, there at Sorra. Went right for you. I always wondered how."
"Because he
took me as a slave once."
It was not easy to
surprise Tosla, but the seaman looked at him with his mouth open,
evidently not believing him but not able to say so, and so with
nothing to say. Lebannen enjoyed the effect for a minute and then
took pity on him.
"When the
Archmage took me hunting after Cob, we went south, first. A man in
Hort Town betrayed us to the slave takers. They knocked the Archmage
on the head, and I ran off thinking I could lead them away from him.
But it was me they were after—I was salable. I woke up chained
in a galley bound for Sowl. He rescued me before the next night
passed. The irons fell off us all like bits of dead leaves. And he
told Egre not to speak again until he found something worth saying…
He came to that galley like a great light over the water… I
never knew what he was till then."
Tosla mulled this
over a while. "He unchained all the slaves? Why didn't the
others kill Egre?"
"Maybe they
took him on to Sowl and sold him," Lebannen said.
Tosla mulled a
while longer. "So that's why you were so keen to do away with
the slave trade."
"One reason."
"Doesn't
improve the character, as a rule," Tosla observed. He studied
the chart of the Inmost Sea tacked on the board to the steersman's
left. "Island of Way," he remarked. "Where the dragon
woman's from."
"You keep
clear of her, I notice."
Tosla pursed his
lips, though he did not whistle, being aboard ship. "You know
that song I mentioned, about the Lass of Belilo? Well, I never
thought of it as anything but a tale. Until I saw her."
"I doubt she'd
eat you, Tosla."
"It would be a
glorious death," the sailor said, rather sourly.
The king laughed.
"Don't push
your own luck," said Tosla.
"No fear."
"You and she
were talking there so free and easy. Like making yourself easy with a
volcano, to my mind… But I'll tell you, I wouldn't mind seeing
a bit more of that present the Kargs sent you. There's a sight worth
seeing in there, to judge by the feet. But how do you get it out of
the tent? The feet are grand, but I'd like a bit more ankle, to begin
with."
Lebannen felt his
face turn grim, and turned aside to keep Tosla from seeing it.
"If anybody
gave me a package like that," Tosla said, staring out over the
sea, "I'd open it."
Lebannen could not
restrain a slight movement of impatience. Tosla saw it; he was quick.
He grinned his wry grin and said no more.
The ship's master
had come out on deck, and Lebannen engaged him in talk. "Looks a
bit thick ahead?" he said, and the master nodded: "Thunder
squalls to the south and west there. We'll be in them tonight."
The sea grew
choppier as the afternoon drew on, the benign sunlight took on a
brassy tinge, and gusts of wind blew from one quarter then another.
Tenar had told Lebannen that the princess was afraid of the sea and
of seasickness, and he glanced back once or twice at the aftercabin,
expecting to see no red-veiled form among the ducks in a row. But it
was Tenar and Tehanu who had gone in; the princess was still there,
and Irian was sitting beside her. They were talking earnestly. What
on earth did a dragon woman from Way have to talk about with a harem
woman from Hur-at-Hur? What language had they in common? The question
seemed so much in need of answering to Lebannen that he walked aft.
When he got there
Irian looked up at him and smiled. She had a strong, open face, a
broad smile; she went barefoot by choice, was careless about her
dress, let the wind tangle her hair; altogether she seemed no more
than a handsome, hot-hearted, intelligent, untaught countrywoman,
till you saw her eyes. They were the color of smoky amber, and when
she looked straight at Lebannen, as she was doing now, he could not
meet them. He looked down.
He had made it
clear that there was to be no courtly ceremony on the ship, no bows
and courtesies, nobody was to leap up when he came near; but the
princess had got to her feet. They were, as Tosla had observed,
beautiful feet, not small, but high-arched, strong, and fine. He
looked at them, the two slender feet on the white wood of the deck.
He looked up from them and saw that the princess was doing as she had
done the last time he faced her: parting her veils so that he, though
no one else, could see her face. He was a little staggered by the
stern, almost tragic beauty of the face in that red shadow.
"Is—is
everything all right, princess?" he asked, stammering, a thing
he very seldom did.
She said, "My
friend Tenar said, breathe wind."
"Yes," he
said, rather at random.
"Is there
anything your wizards could do for her, do you think, maybe?"
said Irian, unfolding her long limbs and standing up too. She and the
princess were both tall women. Lebannen was trying to make out what
color the princess's eyes were, since he was able to look at them.
They were blue, he thought, but like blue opals they held other
colors in them, or maybe it was the sunlight coming through the red
of her veils.—"Do for her?"
"She wants
very much not to be seasick. She had a terrible time of it coming
from the Kargish places."
"I will not to
fear," the princess said. She gazed straight at him as if
challenging him to—what?
"Of course,"
he said, "of course. I'll ask Onyx. I'm sure there's something
he can do." He made a sketchy bow to them both and went off
hurriedly to find the wizard.
Onyx and Seppel
conferred and then consulted Alder. A spell against seasickness was
more in the province of sorcerers, menders, healers, than of learned
and powerful wizards. Alder could not do anything himself at present,
of course, but he might remember a charm…? He did not, having
never dreamed of going to sea until his troubles began. Seppel
confessed that he himself always got seasick in small boats or rough
weather. Onyx finally went to the aftercabin and begged the
princess's pardon: he himself had no skill to help her, and nothing
to offer her but—apologetically—a charm or talisman one
of the sailors hearing of her plight—the sailors heard
everything—had pressed upon him to give her.
The princess's
long-fingered hand emerged from the red and gold veils. The wizard
placed in it a queer little black-and-white object: dried seaweed
braided round a bird's breastbone. "A petrel, because they ride
the storm," Onyx said, shamefaced.
The princess bowed
her unseen head and murmured thanks in Kargish. The fetish
disappeared within her veils. She withdrew to the cabin. Onyx,
meeting the king quite nearby, apologised to him. The ship was
pitching energetically now in hard, erratic gusts on a choppy sea,
and he said, "I could, you know, sire, say a word to the winds…"
Lebannen knew well
that there were two schools of thought concerning weatherworking: the
old-fashioned one, that of the Bagmen who ordered the winds to serve
their ships as shepherds order their dogs to run here and there, and
the newfangled notion—a few centuries old at most—of the
Roke School, that the magewind might be raised at real need, but it
was best to let the world's winds blow. He knew that Onyx was a
devout upholder of the way of Roke. "Use your own judgment,
Onyx," he said. "If it seems we're in for a really bad
night… But if it's no more than a few squalls…"
Onyx looked up at
the masthead, where already a wisp or two of fallow fire had
flickered in the cloud-darkened dusk. Thunder rumbled grandly in the
blackness before them, all across the south. Behind them the last of
the daylight fell wan, tremulous across the waves. "Very well,"
he said, rather dismally, and went below to the small and crowded
cabin.
Lebannen stayed out
of that cabin almost entirely, sleeping on deck when he slept at all.
Tonight was not one for sleep for anybody on the Dolphin. It was not
a single squall, but a chain of violent late-summer storms boiling up
out of the southwest, and between the terrific commotion of the
lightning-dazzled sea, the thunder crashes that seemed about to knock
the ship apart, and the crazy storm gusts that kept her pitching and
rolling and taking queer jumps, it was a long night and a loud one.
Onyx consulted
Lebannen once: Should he say a word to the wind? Lebannen looked to
the master, who shrugged. He and his crew were busy enough, but
unconcerned. The ship was in no trouble. As for the womenfolk, they
were reported to be sitting up in their cabin, gambling. Irian and
the princess had come out on deck earlier, but it was hard to stay
afoot at times and they had seen they were in the crew's way, so they
had retired. The report that they were gambling came from the cook's
boy, who had been sent to see if they wanted anything to eat. They
had wanted whatever he could bring.
Lebannen found
himself possessed by the same intense curiosity he had felt in the
afternoon. There was no doubt the lamps were all alight in the stern
cabin, for the glow of them streamed out golden on the foam and race
of the ship's wake. About midnight, he went aft and knocked.
Irian opened the
door. After the dazzle and blackness of the storm the lamplight in
the cabin seemed warm and steady, though the swinging lamps cast
swinging shadows; and he was confusedly aware of colors, the soft,
various colors of the women's clothes, their skin, brown or pale or
gold, their hair, black or grey or tawny, their eyes—the
princess's eyes staring at him, startled, as she snatched up a scarf
or some cloth to hold before her face.
"Oh! We
thought it was the cook's boy!" Irian said with a laugh.
Tehanu looked at
him and said in her shy, comradely way, "Is there trouble?"
He realised that he
was standing in the doorway staring at them like some speechless
messenger of doom.
"No—None
at all—Are you getting on all right? I'm sorry it's been so
rough—"
"We don't hold
you answerable for the weather," Tenar said. "Nobody could
sleep, so the princess and I have been teaching the others Kargish
gambling."
He saw five-sided
ivory dice-sticks scattered over the table, probably Tosla's.
"We've been
betting islands," Irian said. "But Tehanu and I are losing.
The Kargs have already won Ark and Ilien."
The princess had
lowered the scarf; she sat facing Lebannen resolutely, extremely
tense, as a young swordsman might face him before a fencing match. In
the warmth of the cabin they were all bare-armed and barefoot, but
her consciousness of her uncovered face drew his consciousness as a
magnet draws a pin.
"I'm sorry
it's been so rough," he said again, idiotically, and closed the
door. As he turned away he heard them all laughing.
He went to stand by
the steersman. Looking into the gusty, rainy darkness lit by fitful,
distant lightning, he could still see everything in the stern cabin,
the black fall of Tehanu's hair, Tenar's affectionate, teasing smile,
the dice on the table, the princess's round arms, honey-colored like
the lamplight, her throat in the shadow of her hair, though he did
not remember looking at her arms and throat but only at her face, at
her eyes full of defiance, despair. What was the girl afraid of? Did
she think he wanted to hurt her?
A star or two was
shining out high in the south. He went to his crowded cabin, slung a
hammock, for the bunks were full, and slept for a few hours. He woke
before dawn, restless as ever, and went up on deck.
The day came as
bright and calm as if no storm had ever been. Lebannen stood at the
forward rail and saw the first sunlight strike across the water, and
an old song came into his mind:
O my joy! Before
bright Ea was, before Segoy Bade the islands be, The morning
wind blew on the sea. 0 my joy, be free!
It was a fragment
of a ballad or lullaby from his childhood. He could remember no more
of it. The rune was sweet. He sang it softly and let the wind take
the words from his lips.
Tenar emerged from
the cabin and, seeing him, came to him. "Good morning, my dear
lord," she said, and he greeted her fondly, with some memory
that he had been angry at her but not knowing why he had been or how
he could have been.
"Did you Kargs
win Havnor last night?" he asked.
"No, you may
keep Havnor. We went to bed. All the young ones are still there,
lolling. Shall we—what is it? lift Roke today?"
"Raise Roke?
No, not till early tomorrow. But before noon we should be in Thwil
Harbor. If they let us come to the island."
"What do you
mean?"
"Roke defends
itself from unwelcome visitors."
"Oh: Ged told
me about that. He was on a ship trying to sail back there, and they
sent the wind against him, the Roke wind he called it."
"Against him?
"It was a long
time ago." She smiled with pleasure at his incredulity, his
unwillingness that any affront should ever have been offered to Ged.
"When he was a boy who had meddled with the darkness. That's
what he said."
"When he was a
man he still meddled with it."
"He doesn't
now," Tenar said, serene.
"No, it's we
who have to." His face had grown somber. "I wish I knew
what we're meddling with. I am certain that things are drawing to
some great chance or change—as Ogion foretold—as Ged told
Alder. And I am certain that Roke is where we need to be to meet it.
But beyond that, no certainty, nothing. I don't know what it is we
face. When Ged took me into the dark land, we knew our enemy. When I
took the fleet to Sorra, I knew what the evil was I wanted to undo.
But now—Are the dragons our enemies or our allies? What has
gone wrong? What is it we must do or undo? Will the Masters of Roke
be able to tell us? Or will they turn their wind against us?"
"Fearing—?"
"Fearing the
dragon. The one they know. Or the one they don't know…"
Tenar's face was
sober too, but gradually it broke into a smile. "What a ragbag
you are bringing them, to be sure!" she said. "A sorcerer
with nightmares, a wizard from Paln, two dragons, and two Kargs. The
only respectable passengers on this ship are you and Onyx."
Lebannen could not
laugh. "If only he were with us," he said.
Tenar put her hand
on his arm. She started to speak and then did not.
He laid his hand
over hers. They stood silent thus for some time, side by side,
looking out at the dancing sea.
"The princess
has something she wants to tell you before we come to Roke,"
Tenar said. "It's a story from Hur-at-Hur. Off there in their
desert they remember things. I think this goes back before anything I
ever heard except the story of the Woman of Kemay. It has to do with
dragons… It would be kind of you to invite her, so that she
doesn't have to ask."
Aware of the care
and caution with which she spoke, he felt a moment of impatience, a
flick of shame. He watched, far south across the sea, the course of a
galley bound for Kamery or Way, the faint, tiny flash of the lifted
sweeps. He said, "Of course. About noon?"
"Thank you."
About noon, he sent
a young seaman to the stern cabin to request the princess to join the
king on the foredeck. She emerged at once, and the ship being only
about fifty feet long, he could observe her entire progress towards
him: not a long walk, though perhaps for her it was a long one. For
it was not a featureless red cylinder that approached him but a tall
young woman. She wore soft white trousers, a long shirt of dull red,
a gold circlet that held a very thin red veil over her face and head.
The veil fluttered in the sea wind. The young sailor led her round
the various obstacles and up and down the descents and ascents of the
crowded, cumbered, narrow deck. She walked slowly and proudly. She
was barefoot. Every eye in the ship was on her.
She arrived on the
foredeck and stood still. Lebannen bowed. "Your presence honors
us, princess." She performed a deep, straight-backed courtesy
and said, "Thank you."
"You were not
ill last night, I hope?" She put her hand on the charm she wore
on the cord round her neck, a small bone tied with black, showing it
to him. "Kerez akath akatharwa erevi," she said. He knew
the word akath in Kargish meant sorcerer or sorcery.
There were eyes
everywhere, eyes in hatchways, eyes up in the rigging, eyes that were
like augurs, like gimlets.
"Come forward,
if you will. We may see Roke Island soon," he said, though there
was not the remotest chance of seeing a glimmer of Roke till dawn.
With a hand under her elbow though not actually touching her, he
guided her up the steep slant of the deck to the forepeak, where
between a capstan, the slant of the bowsprit, and the port rail was a
little triangle of decking that—when a sailor had scurried away
with the cable he was mending—they had quite to themselves.
They were as visible as ever to the rest of the ship, but they could
turn their backs on it: as much privacy as royalty can hope for.
When they had
gained this tiny haven, the princess turned to him and pushed back
the veil from her face. He had intended to ask what he could do for
her, but the question seemed both inadequate and irrelevant. He said
nothing.
She said, "Lord
King. In Hur-at-Hur I am feyagat. In Roke Island I am to be king's
daughter of Kargad. To be this, I am not feyagat. I am bare face. If
it please you."
After a moment he
said, "Yes. Yes, princess. This is—this is well done."
"It please
you?"
"Very much.
Yes. I thank you, princess."
"Barrezu,"
she said, a regal acceptance of his thanks. Her dignity abashed him.
Her face had been flaming red when she first put back the veil; there
was no color in it now. But she stood straight and still, and
gathered up her forces for another speech.
"Too,"
she said. "Also. My friend Tenar."
"Our friend
Tenar," he said with a smile.
"Our friend
Tenar. She says I am to tell King Lebannen of the Vedurnan."
He repeated the
word.
"Long ago long
ago—Karg people, sorcery people, dragon people, hah? Yes?—All
people one, all speak one—one—Oh! Wuluah mekrevt!"
"One
language?"
"Hah! Yes! One
language!" In her passionate attempt to speak Hardic, to tell
him what she wanted to tell him, she was losing her
self-consciousness; her face and eyes shone. "But then, dragon
people say: Let go, let go all things. Fly!—But we people, we
say: No, keep. Keep all things. Dwell!—So we go apart, hah?
dragon people and we people? So they make the Vedurnan. These to let
go—these to keep. Yes? But to keep all things, we must to let
go that language. That dragon people language."
"The Old
Speech?"
"Yes! So we
people, we let go that Old Speech language, and keep all things. And
dragon people let go all things, but keep that, keep that language.
Hah? Seyneha? This is the Vedurnan." Her beautiful, large, long
hands gestured eloquently and she watched his face with eager hope of
understanding. "We go east, east, east. Dragon people go west,
west. We dwell, they fly. Some dragon come east with us, but not keep
the language, forget, and forget to fly. Like Karg people. Karg
people speak Karg language, not dragon language. All keep the
Vedurnan, east, west. Seyneha? But in—"
At a loss, she
brought her hands together from her "east" and "west,"
and Lebannen said, "In the middle?"
"Hah, yes! In
the middle!" She laughed with the pleasure of getting the word.
"In the middle—you! Sorcery people! Hah? You, middle
people, speak Hardic language but too, also, keep to speak Old Speech
language. You learn it. Like I learn Hardic, hah? Learn to speak.
Then, then—this is the bad. The bad thing. Then you say, in
that sorcery language, in that Old Speech language, you say: We will
not to die. And it is so. And the Vedurnan is broken." Her eyes
were like blue fire. After a moment she asked, "Seyneha?"
"I'm not sure
I understand."
"You keep
life. You keep. Too long. You never to let go. But to die—"
She threw her hands out in a great opening gesture as if she threw
something away, into the air, across
The water.
He shook his head
regretfully.
"Ah," she
said. She thought a minute, but no words came. Defeated, she moved
her hands palms down in a graceful pantomime of relinquishment. "I
must to learn more words," she said.
"Princess, the
Master Patterner of Roke, the Master of the Grove—" He
watched her for comprehension, and began again. "On Roke Island,
there is a man, a great mage, who is a Karg. You can tell him what
you have told me—in your own language."
She listened
intently and nodded. She said, "The friend of Irian. I will in
my heart to talk to this man." Her face was bright with the
thought.
That touched
Lebannen. He said, "I'm sorry you have been lonely here,
princess."
She looked at him,
alert and luminous, but did not reply.
"I hope, as
time goes on—as you learn the language—"
"I learn
quick," she said. He did not know if it was a statement or a
prediction.
They were looking
straight at each other.
She resumed her
stately attitude and spoke formally, as she had at the beginning: "I
thank you to listen, Lord King." She dipped her head and
shielded her eyes in a formal sign of respect and made the deep
knee-bend courtesy again, speaking some formula in Kargish.
"Please,"
he said, "tell me what you said."
She paused,
hesitated, thought, and replied, "Your—your, ah—small
kings?—sons! Sons, your sons, let them to be dragons and kings
of dragons. Hah?" She smiled radiantly, let the veil fall over
her face, backed away four steps, turned and departed, lithe and
sure-footed down the length of the ship. Lebannen stood as if last
night's lightning had struck him at last.
The last night of
the sea voyage was calm, warm, starless. Dolphin moved with a long,
easy rocking over the smooth swells southward. It was easy to sleep,
and the people slept, and sleeping dreamed.
Alder dreamed of a
little animal that came in the dark and touched his hand. He could
not see what it was, and when he reached out to it, it was gone,
lost. Again he felt the small, velvet muzzle touch his hand. He half
roused, and the dream slipped from him, but the piercing ache of loss
was in his heart.
In the bunk below
him, Seppel dreamed that he was in his own house in Ferao on Paln,
reading an old lore-book from the Dark Time, content with his work;
but he was interrupted. Someone wanted to see him. "It will only
take a minute," he told himself, and went to speak to the
caller. It was a woman; her hair was dark with a glint of red in it,
her face was beautiful and full of trouble. "You must send him
to me," she said. "You will send him to me, won't you?"
He thought: I don't know who she means, but I must pretend I do, and
he said, "That will not be easy, you know." At that the
woman drew her hand back and he saw that she held a stone, a heavy
stone. Startled, he thought she meant to throw it at him or strike
him down with it, and recoiling from her, he woke in the darkness of
the cabin. He lay listening to the breathing of the other sleepers
and the whisper of the sea along the ship's side.
In his bunk on the
other side of the small cabin, Onyx lay on his back gazing into the
dark; he thought his eyes were open, he thought he was awake, but he
thought that many small, thin cords had been tied around his arms and
legs and hands and head, and that all these cords ran out into the
darkness, over land and sea, over the curve of the world: and the
cords were drawing him, tugging him, so that he and the ship he was
in and all its passengers were being pulled gently, gently to the
place where the sea dried up, where the ship would go aground
silently on blind sands. But he could not speak or do anything
because the cords tied shut his jaws, his eyelids.
Lebannen had come
down to the cabin to sleep for a while, wanting to be fresh at dawn
when they might raise Roke Island. He slept quickly and deeply, and
his dreams fleeted and changed: a high green hill above the sea—a
woman who smiled and, lifting her hand, showed him she could make the
sun rise—a claimant in his court of justice in Havnor from whom
he learned to his horror and shame that half the people of the
kingdom were starving to death in locked rooms beneath houses—a
child who cried out to him, "Come to me!" but he could not
find the child—As he slept, his right hand held the rock in the
little amulet bag at his throat, clenched it tight.
In the deck cabin
above these dreamers, the women dreamed. Seserakh walked up into the
mountains, the beautiful dear desert mountains of her home. But she
was walking on the forbidden way, the dragon path. Human feet must
not walk that path, must not even cross it. The dust of it was smooth
and warm under her bare soles, and though she knew she must not walk
on it, she walked on, until she looked up and saw that the mountains
were not those she knew, but were black, jagged precipices which she
could never climb. Yet she must climb them.
Irian flew joyous
on the storm wind, but the storm sent loops of lightning up over her
wings, drawing her down and down towards the clouds, and as she was
pulled nearer and nearer she saw they were not clouds but black
rocks, a black and jagged mountain range. Her wings were tied to her
sides by cords of lightning, and she fell.
Tehanu crawled
through a tunnel deep underground. There was not enough air to
breathe and the tunnel grew narrower as she crawled. She could not
turn back. But the glimmering roots of trees, growing down through
the dirt into the tunnel, gave her handholds sometimes by which she
could pull herself on into the dark.
Tenar climbed up
the steps of the Throne of the Nameless Ones in the sacred Place of
Atuan. She was very small and the steps were very high, so that she
could climb them only laboriously. But when she reached the fourth
step she did not pause and turn around, as the priestesses had told
her she must do. She went on. She climbed the next step, and the
next, and the next, in dust so thick it had obliterated the steps and
she must feel for the levels where no foot had ever trodden. She went
hastily, because behind the empty throne Ged had left something or
lost something, something of great importance to myriads of people,
and she had to find it. Only she did not know what it was. "A
stone, a stone," she told herself. But behind the throne, when
she crawled there at last, was only dust, owls' droppings and dust.
In the alcove of
the Old Mage's house on the Overfell of Gont, Ged dreamed that he was
Archmage. He was talking with his friend Thorion as they walked the
corridor of runes towards the meeting room of the Masters of the
School. "I had no power at all," he told Thorion earnestly,
"for years and years." The Summoner smiled and said, "That
was only a dream, you know." But Ged was troubled by the long
black wings that trailed behind him through the corridor; he shrugged
his shoulders, trying to lift the wings, but they dragged on the
floor like empty sacks. "Do you have wings?" he asked
Thorion, who said, "Oh, yes," complacently, showing him how
his wings were tied tight against his back and legs by many small,
thin cords. "I am well yoked," he said.
Among the trees of
the Immanent Grove on Roke Island, Azver the Patterner slept as he
often did in summer in an open glade near the eastern edge of the
wood, where he could look up and see the stars through the leaves.
There his sleep was light, transparent, his mind moving from thought
to dream and back, guided by the movements of the stars and leaves as
they changed places in their dance. But tonight there were no stars,
and the leaves hung still. He looked up into the lightless sky and
saw through the clouds. In the high black sky were stars: small,
bright, and still. They did not move. He knew there would be no
sunrise.—He sat up then, awake, gazing into the faint, soft
light that always hung in the aisles of the trees. His heart beat
slow and hard.
In the Great House
the young men, sleeping, turned and cried out, dreaming that they
must go fight an army on a plain of dust, but the warriors they must
fight were old men, old women, weak, sick people, weeping children.
The Masters of Roke
dreamed that a ship was sailing towards them over the sea, heavy
laden, low in the water. One dreamed that the freight of the ship was
black rocks. Another dreamed she carried burning fire. Another
dreamed that her cargo was dreams.
The seven masters
who slept in the Great House woke, one and then another, in their
stone sleeping cells, made a little werelight, and got up. They found
the Doorkeeper already afoot and waiting at the door. "The king
will come," he said with a smile, "at daybreak."
"Roke knoll,"
Tosla said, gazing forward at the far, faint, unmoving wave in the
southwest above the twilit waves. Lebannen, standing beside him, said
nothing. The cloud cover had dispersed, and the sky arched its pure
uncolored dome over the great circle of the waters.
The ship's master
joined them. "A fair dawn," he said, whispering in the
silence.
The east brightened
slowly to yellow. Lebannen glanced aft. Two of the women were afoot,
standing at the rail outside their cabin; tall women, barefoot,
silent, gazing east.
The top of the
round green hill caught the sunlight first. It was broad daylight
when they sailed in between the headlands of Thwil Bay. Everyone
aboard was on deck, watching. But still they spoke little and softly.
The wind died down
within the harbor. It was so still the water reflected the little
town that rose above the bay and the walls of the Great House that
rose above the town. The ship glided on slower, still slower.
Lebannen glanced at
the ship's master and at Onyx. The master nodded. The wizard moved
his hands up and outward slowly in a spell and murmured a word.
The ship glided on
softly, not slowing until she came alongside the longest of the
docks. Then the master spoke, and the great sail was furled while men
aboard tossed the lines to men on the dock, shouting, and the silence
was broken.
There were people
on the quay to welcome them, townsfolk gathering, and a group of
young men from the School, among them a big, deep-chested,
dark-skinned man who held a heavy staff that matched his own height.
"Welcome to Roke, King of the Western Lands," he said,
coming forward as the gangplank was run out and made fast. "And
welcome to all your company."
The young men with
him and all the townsfolk called out hail and greeting to the king,
and Lebannen answered them merrily as he came down the gangplank. He
greeted the Master Summoner, and they spoke a while.
Those watching
could see that despite his words of welcome, the Master Summoner's
frowning gaze went to the ship again and again, to the women who
stood at the rail, and that his answers did not satisfy the king.
When Lebannen left
him and came back up into the ship, Irian came forward to meet him.
"Lord King," she said, "you may tell the masters that
I don't want to enter their house—this time. I wouldn't enter
it if they asked me."
Lebannen's face was
extremely stern. "It is the Master Patterner who asks you to
come to him, to the Grove," he said. At that Irian laughed,
radiant. "I knew he would," she said. "And Tehanu will
come with me."
"And my
mother," Tehanu whispered. He looked at Tenar; she nodded.
"So be it,"
he said. "And the rest of us will be lodged in the Great House,
unless any of us prefer another place."
"By your
leave, my lord," Seppel said, "I too will ask the
hospitality of the Master Patterner."
"Seppel,
that's not necessary," Onyx said harshly. "Come with me to
my house."
The Pelnish wizard
made a little placating gesture. "No reflection on your friends,
my friend," he said. "But I have longed all my life to walk
in the Immanent Grove. And I would be easier there."
"It may be
that the doors of the Great House are shut to me, as they were
before," Alder said, hesitant; and now Onyx's sallow face was
red with shame.
The princess's
veiled head had turned from face to face as she eagerly listened,
trying to understand what was said. Now she spoke: "Please, my
Lord King, I will to be with my friend Tenar? My friend Tehanu? And
Irian? And to speak to that Karg?"
Lebannen looked at
them all, glanced back to the Master Summoner standing massively at
the foot of the gangplank, and laughed. He spoke from the rail, in
his clear, affable voice: "My people have been cooped up in
ship's cabins, Summoner, and it would seem they long for grass
underfoot and leaves above their heads. If we all beg the Patterner
to take us in, and he agrees, will you forgive our seeming slight to
the hospitality of the Great House for a time at least?"
After a pause the
Summoner bowed stiffly.
A short, stocky man
had come up beside him on the dock, and was looking up smiling at
Lebannen. He lifted his staff of silvery wood.
"Sire,"
he said, "I took you about the Great House once, a long time
ago, and told you lies about everything."
"Gamble!"
said Lebannen. They met midway on the gangplank and embraced, and
talking, went down onto the dock.
Onyx was the first
to follow; he greeted the Summoner gravely and with ceremony, then
turned to the man called Gamble. "Are you Windkey now?" he
demanded, and when Gamble laughed and said yes, he also embraced him,
saying, "A master well made!" Taking Gamble a little aside,
he talked with him, eager and frowning.
Lebannen looked up
to the ship to signal the others to come ashore, and as they came
down one by one he introduced them to the two Masters of Roke, Brand
the Summoner and Gamble the Windkey.
On most islands of
the Archipelago people did not touch palms in greeting as was the way
of Enlad, but only bowed the head or held both palms open before the
heart, as if in offering. When Irian and the Summoner met, neither
bowed or made any gesture. They stood stiff with their hands at their
sides.
The princess made
her deep, straight-backed courtesy.
Tenar made the
conventional gesture, and the Summoner returned it.
"The Woman of
Gont, the daughter of the Archmage, Tehanu," Lebannen said.
Tehanu dipped her head and made the conventional gesture. But the
Master Summoner stared at her, gasped, and stepped back as if he had
been struck.
"Mistress
Tehanu," said Gamble quickly, coming forward between her and the
Summoner, "we welcome you to Roke—for your father's sake,
and your mother's, and your own. I hope your voyage was a pleasant
one?"
She looked at him
in confusion, and ducked, hiding her face, rather than bowed; but she
managed to whisper some kind of answer.
Lebannen, his face
a bronze mask of calm composure, said, "Yes, it was a good
voyage, Gamble, though the end of it is still in doubt. Shall we walk
up through the town, now, Tenar—Tehanu—Princess—Orm
Irian?" He looked at each as he spoke, saying the last name with
particular clarity.
He set off with
Tenar, and the others followed. As Seserakh came down the gangplank,
she resolutely swept back the red veils from her face.
Gamble walked with
Onyx, Alder with Seppel. Tosla stayed with the ship. The last to
leave the quay was Brand the Summoner, walking alone and heavily.
Tenar had asked ged
about the Grove more than once, liking to hear him describe it. "It
seems like any grove of trees, when you see it first. Not very large.
The fields come right up to it on the north and east, and there are
hills to the south and usually to the west… It looks like
nothing much. But it draws your eye. And sometimes, from up on Roke
Knoll, you can see that it's a forest, going on and on. You try to
make out where it ends, but you can't. It goes off into the west…
And when you walk in it, it seems ordinary again, though the trees
are mostly a kind that grows only there. Tall, with brown trunks,
something like an oak, something like a chestnut."
"What are they
called?"
Ged laughed.
"Arhada, in the Old Speech. Trees… The trees of the
Grove, in Hardic… Their leaves don't all turn in autumn, but
some at every season, so the foliage is always green with a gold
light in it. Even on a dark day those trees seem to hold some
sunlight. And in the night, it's never quite dark under them. There's
a kind of glimmer in the leaves, like moonlight or starlight. Willows
grow there, and oak, and fir, other kinds; but as you go deeper in,
it's more and more only the trees of the Grove. And the roots of
those go down deeper than the island. Some are huge trees, some
slender, but you don't see many fallen, nor many saplings. They live
a long, long time." His voice had grown soft, dreamy. "You
can walk and walk in their shadow, in their light, and never come to
the end of them."
"But is Roke
so large an island?"
He looked at her
peacefully, smiling. "The forests here on Gont Mountain are that
forest," he said. "All forests are."
And now she saw the
Grove. Following Lebannen, they had come up through the devious
streets of Thwil Town, gathering a flock of townsfolk and children
come out to see and greet their king. These cheerful followers
dropped away little by little as the travelers left the town on a
lane between hedges and farms, which petered out into a footpath past
the high, round hill, Roke Knoll.
Ged had told her of
the Knoll, too. There, he said, all magic is strong; there all things
take their true nature. "There," he said, "our
wizardry and the Old Powers of the Earth meet, and are one."
The wind blew in
the high, half-dry grass on the hill. A donkey colt galloped off
stiff-legged across a stubble field, flicking and flirting its tail.
Cattle walked in slow procession along a fence that crossed a little
stream. And there were trees ahead, dark trees, shadowy.
They followed
Lebannen through a stile and over a footbridge to a sunlit meadow at
the edge of the wood. A small, decrepit house stood near the stream.
Irian broke from their group, ran across the grass to the house, and
patted the door frame as one would pat and greet a beloved horse or
dog after long absence. "Dear house!" she said. And turning
to the others, smiling, "I lived here," she said, "when
I was Dragonfly."
She looked round,
searching the eaves of the wood, and then ran forward again. "Azver!"
she called.
A man had come out
of the shadow of the trees into the sunlight. His hair shone in it
like silver gilt. He stood still as Irian ran to him. He lifted his
hands to her, and she caught them in hers. "I won't burn you, I
won't burn you this time," she was saying, laughing and crying,
though without tears. "I'm keeping my fires out!"
They drew each
other close and stood face to face, and he said to her, "Daughter
of Kalessin, welcome home."
"My sister is
with me, Azver," she said.
He turned his
face—a light-skinned, hard, Kargish face, Tenar saw—and
looked straight at Tehanu. He came to her. He dropped on both his
knees before her. "Hama Gondun!" he said, and again,
"Daughter of Kalessin."
Tehanu stood
motionless for a moment. Slowly she put out her hand to him—her
right hand, the burnt hand, the claw. He took it, bowed his head, and
kissed it.
"My honor is
that I was your prophet, Woman of Gont," he said, with a kind of
exulting tenderness.
Then, rising, he
turned at last to Lebannen, made his bow, and said, "My king, be
welcome."
"It's a joy to
me to see you again, Patterner! But I bring a crowd into your
solitude."
"My solitude
is crowded already," said the Patterner. "A few live souls
might keep the balance."
His eyes, pale
grey-blue-green, glanced round among them. He suddenly smiled, a
smile of great warmth, surprising on his hard face. "But here
are women of my own people," he said in Kargish, and came to
Tenar and Seserakh, who stood side by side.
"I am Tenar of
Atuan—of Gont," she said. "With me is the High
Princess of the Kargad Lands."
He made a proper
bow. Seserakh made her stiff courtesy, but her words poured out,
tumultuous, in Kargish—"Oh, Lord Priest, I'm glad you're
here! If it weren't for my friend Tenar I would have gone mad,
thinking nobody was left in the world that could talk like a human
being except the idiot women they sent with me from Awabath—but
I am learning to speak as they do—and I am learning courage,
Tenar is my friend and teacher—But last night I broke taboo! I
broke taboo! Oh, Lord Priest, please tell me what I must do to atone!
I walked on the Dragons' Way!"
"But you were
aboard the ship, princess," said Tenar ("I dreamed,"
Seserakh said, impatient), "and the Lord Patterner is not a
priest but an—a sorcerer—"
"Princess,"
said Azver the Patterner, "I think we're all walking on the
Dragons' Way. And all taboos may well be shaken or broken. Not only
in dream. We'll speak of this later, under the trees. Have no fear.
But let me greet my friends, if you will?"
Seserakh nodded
regally, and he turned away to greet Alder and Onyx.
The princess
watched him. "He is a warrior," she said to Tenar in
Kargish, with satisfaction. "Not a priest. Priests have no
friends."
They all moved on
slowly and came under the shadow of the trees.
Tenar looked up
into the arcades and groves of branches, the layers and galleries of
leaves. She saw oaks and a big hemmen tree, but most were the trees
of the Grove. Their oval leaves moved easily in the air, like the
leaves of aspen and poplar; some had yellowed, and there was a dapple
of gold and brown on the ground at their roots, but the foliage in
the morning light was the green of summer, full of shadows and deep
light.
The Patterner led
them along a path among the trees. As they went, Tenar thought again
about Ged, remembering his voice as he told her about this place. She
felt nearer him than she had been since she and Tehanu left him in
the dooryard of their house in the early summer and walked down to
Gont Port to take the king's ship to Havnor. She knew Ged had lived
here with the Patterner of long ago, and had walked here with Azver.
She knew the Grove was to him the central and sacred place, the heart
of peace. She felt that she might look up and see him at the end of
one of the long, sun-dappled glades. And that notion eased her heart.
For her dream of
the night before had troubled her, and when Seserakh burst out with
her dream of breaking taboo, Tenar had been deeply startled. She too
had broken taboo in her dream, transgressed. She had climbed the last
three stairs of the Empty Throne, the forbidden steps. The Place of
the Tombs on Atuan was long ago and far away, and maybe the
earthquake had left no throne or steps there at all in the temple
where her name had been taken from her: but the Old Powers of the
Earth were there, and they were here. They were not changed or moved.
They were the earthquake, and the earth. Their justice was not man's
justice. As she had walked by the round hill, Roke Knoll, she knew
she walked where all the powers met.
She had defied
them, long ago, breaking free of the Tombs, stealing the treasure,
fleeing here to the West. But they were here. Under her feet. In the
roots of these trees, in the roots of the hill.
So, here in the
center where earth's powers met, the human powers had also met
together: a king, a princess, the masters of wizardry. And the
dragons.
And a
priestess-thief turned farmwife, and a village sorcerer with a broken
heart…
She looked round at
Alder. He was walking beside Tehanu. They were talking quietly.
Tehanu talked more readily with him than with anyone, even Irian, and
looked at ease when she was with him. It cheered Tenar to see them,
and she walked on under the great trees, letting her awareness slip
into a half trance of green light and moving leaves. She was sorry
when, after only a short way, the Patterner halted. She felt she
could walk forever in the Grove.
They gathered in a
grassy glade, open to the sky in the center where the branches did
not reach to meet. A tributary of the Thwilburn ran across one side
of it, willow and Alder growing along its course. Not far from the
stream was a low, lumpy house built of stone and sod, with a taller
lean-to against its wall made of withies and mats of woven reed. "My
winter palace, my summer palace," Azver said.
Both Onyx and
Lebannen stared at these small structures in surprise, and Irian
said, ''I never knew you had a house at all!"
"I didn't,"
said the Patterner. "But bones get old."
With a little
fetching and carrying from the ship, the house was soon furnished
with bedding for the women, and the lean-to for the men. Boys ran
back and forth to the eaves of the Grove with plentiful provisions
from the kitchens of the Great House. And late in the afternoon, the
Masters of Roke came at the invitation of the Patterner to meet with
the king's party.
"Is this where
they gather to choose the new Archmage?" Tenar asked Onyx, for
Ged had told her of that secret glade.
Onyx shook his
head. "I think not," he said. "The king would know,
for he was there when they last met. But maybe only the Patterner
could tell you. Because things change in this wood, you know. 'It is
not always where it is.' Nor are the ways through it ever quite the
same, I think."
"It should be
frightening," she said, "but I can't seem to be afraid."
Onyx smiled. "So
it is, here," he said.
She watched the
masters come into the glade, led by the big, bearlike Summoner and
Gamble the young weather-master. Onyx told her who the others were:
the Changer, the Chanter, the Herbal, the Hand: all grey-haired, the
Changer frail with age, using his wizard's staff as a walking stick.
The Doorkeeper, smooth-faced and almond-eyed, seemed neither young
nor old. The Namer, who came last, looked forty or so. His face was
calm and closed. He presented himself to the king, naming himself
Kurremkarmerruk.
At that Irian burst
out, indignant, "But you are not!"
He looked at her
and said evenly, "It is the Namer's name.
"Then my
Kurremkarmerruk is dead?"
He nodded.
"Oh," she
cried, "that's hard news to bear! He was my friend, when I had
few friends here!" She turned away and would not look at the
Namer, angry and tearless in her grief. She had greeted the Master
Herbal with affection, and the Doorkeeper, but she did not speak to
the others.
Tenar saw that they
watched Irian under their grey brows with uneasy looks.
From her they
looked at Tehanu; and looked away again; and glanced back, sidelong.
And Tenar began to wonder what they saw when they looked at Tehanu
and Irian. For these were men who saw with wizard's eyes.
So she bade herself
forgive the Summoner for his uncouth and unconcealed horror when he
first saw Tehanu. Maybe it had not been horror. Maybe it had been
awe.
When they were all
made known to one another and were seated in a circle, with cushions
and stump seats for those who needed them, the grass for carpet, and
sky and leaves for ceiling, the Patterner said in his voice that
still had some Kargish accent in it, "If it please him, my
fellow masters, we will hear the king."
Lebannen stood up.
As he spoke, Tenar watched him with irrepressible pride. He was so
beautiful, so wise in his youth! She did not follow all his words at
first, only the sense and passion of them.
He told the
masters, briefly and clearly, all the matter that had brought him to
Roke: the dragons and the dreams.
He ended, "It
seemed to us that night by night all these things draw together,
always more certainly, to some event, some end. It seemed to us that
here, on this ground, with your knowledge and power aiding us, we
might foresee and meet that event, not letting it overwhelm our
understanding. The wisest of our mages have foretold: a great change
is upon us. We must join together to learn what that change is, its
causes, its course, and how we may hope to turn it from conflict and
ruin to harmony and peace, in whose sign I rule."
Brand the Summoner
stood to answer him. After some stately politenesses, with a special
welcome to the High Princess, he said, "That the dreams of men,
and more than their dreams, forewarn us of dire changes, all the
masters and wizards of Roke agree. That there is a disturbance of the
deepset boundaries between death and life—transgressions of
those boundaries, and the threat of worse—we confirm. But that
these disturbances can be understood or controlled by any but the
masters of the art magic, we doubt. And very deeply do we doubt that
dragons, whose lives and death are wholly different from that of man,
can ever be trusted to submit their wild wrath and jealousy to serve
human good."
"Summoner,"
Lebannen said, before Irian could speak, "Orm Embar died for me
on Selidor. Kalessin bore me to my throne.—Here in this circle
are three peoples: the Kargish, the Hardic, and the People of the
West."
"They were all
one people, once," said the Namer in his level, toneless voice.
"But they are
not now," said the Summoner, each word heavy and separate. "Do
not misunderstand me because I speak hard truth, my Lord King! I
honor the truce you have sworn with the dragons. When the danger we
are in is past, Roke will aid Havnor in seeking lasting peace with
them. But the dragons have nothing to do with this crisis that is
upon us. Nor have the eastern peoples, who foreswore their immortal
souls when they forgot the Language of the Making."
"Es eyemra,"
said a soft, hissing voice: Tehanu, standing.
The Summoner stared
at her.
"Our
language," she repeated in Hardic, staring back at him.
Irian laughed. "Es
eyemra," she said.
"You are not
immortal," Tenar said to the Summoner. She had had no intention
of speaking. She did not stand up. The words broke from her like fire
from struck rock. " We are! We die to rejoin the undying world.
It was you who foreswore immortality."
Then they were all
still. The Patterner had made a small movement of his hands, a gentle
movement.
His face was
preoccupied, untroubled, as he studied a design of a few twigs and
leaves he had made on the grass where he sat, just in front of his
crossed legs. He looked up, looked round at them all. "I think
we will have to go there soon," he said.
After another
silence, Lebannen asked, "Go where, my lord?"
"Into the
dark," said the Patterner.
As Alder sat
listening to them speak, slowly the voices grew faint, fading, and
the warm late sunlight of late summer dimmed into darkness. Nothing
was left but the trees: tall blind presences between the blind earth
and the sky. The oldest living children of the earth. 0 Segoy, he
said in his heart: made and maker, let me come to you.
The darkness went
on and on, past the trees, past everything.
Against that
emptiness he saw the hill, the high hill that had been on their right
as they walked up out of the town. He saw the dust of the road, the
stones of the path, that led past that hill.
He turned now aside
from the path, leaving the others, and walked up the slope.
The grasses were
tall. The spent flower cases of spark-weed nodded among them. He came
on a narrow path and followed it up the steep hillside. Now I am
myself, he said in his heart. Segoy, the world is beautiful. Let me
come through it to you.
I can do again what
I was meant to do, he thought as he walked. I can mend what was
broken. I can rejoin.
He reached the top
of the hill. Standing there in the sun and wind among the nodding
grasses he saw on his right the fields, the roofs of the little town
and the big house, the bright bay and the sea beyond it. If he turned
he would see behind him in the west the trees of the endless forest,
fading on and on into blue distances. Before him the hill slope was
dim and grey, going down to the wall of stones and the darkness
beyond the wall, and the crowding, calling shadows at the wall. I
will come, he said to them. I will come!
Warmth fell across
his shoulders and his hands. Wind stirred in the leaves above his
head. Voices spoke, speaking, not calling, not crying out his name.
The Patterner's eyes were watching him across the circle of grass.
The Summoner too was watching him. He looked down, bewildered. He
tried to listen. He gathered his mind and listened.
The king was
speaking, using all his skill and strength to hold these fierce,
willful men and women to one purpose. "Let me try to tell you,
Masters of Roke, what I learned from the High Princess as we sailed
here. Princess, may I speak for you?"
Unveiled, she gazed
across the circle at him, and bowed grave permission.
"This is her
tale, then: long ago, the human and the dragon peoples were one kind,
speaking one language. But they sought different things, and so they
agreed to part—to go different ways. That agreement was called
the Vedurnan."
Onyx's head went
up, and Seppel's bright dark eyes widened. "Verw nadan," he
whispered.
"The human
beings went east, the dragons west. The humans gave up their
knowledge of the Language of the Making, and in exchange received all
skill and craft of hand, and ownership of all that hands can make.
The dragons let go all such things. But they kept the Old Speech."
"And their
wings," said Irian.
"And their
wings," Lebannen said. He had caught Azver's eye. "Patterner,
perhaps you can continue the story better than I?"
"The villagers
of Gont and Hur-at-Hur remember what the wise men of Roke and the
priests of Karego forget," Azver said. "Yes, as a child I
was told this tale, I think, or something like it. But the dragons
had been forgotten in it. It told how the Dark Folk of the
Archipelago broke their oath. We had all promised to forgo sorcery
and the language of sorcery, speaking only our common tongue. We
would name no names, and make no spells. We would trust to Segoy, to
the powers of the Earth our mother, mother of the Warrior Gods. But
the Dark Folk broke the covenant. They caught the Language of the
Making in their craft, writing it in runes. They kept it, taught it,
used it. They made spells with it, with the skill of their hands,
with false tongues speaking the true words. So the Kargish people can
never trust them. So says the tale."
Irian spoke: "Men
fear death as dragons do not. Men want to own life, possess it, as if
it were a jewel in a box. Those ancient mages craved everlasting
life. They learned to use true names to keep men from dying. But
those who cannot die can never be reborn."
"The name and
the dragon are one," said Kurremkarmerruk the Namer. "We
men lost our names at the verwnadan, but we learned how to regain
them. Name is self. Why should death change that?"
He looked at the
Summoner; but Brand sat heavy and grim, listening, not speaking.
"Say more of
this, Namer, if you will," the king said.
"I say what I
have half learned, half guessed, not from village tales but from the
most ancient records in the Isolate Tower. A thousand years before
the first kings of Enlad, there were men in Ea and Solea, the first
and greatest of the mages, the Rune Makers. It was they who learned
to write the Language of the Making. They made the runes, which the
dragons never learned. They taught us to give each soul its true
name: which is its truth, its self. And with their power they granted
to those who bear their true name life beyond the body's death."
"Life
immortal," Seppel's soft voice took the word. He spoke smiling a
little. "In a great land of rivers and mountains and beautiful
cities, where there is no suffering or pain, and where the self
endures, unchanged, unchanging, forever… That is the dream of
the ancient Lore of Paln."
"Where,"
the Summoner said, "where is that land?"
"On the other
wind," said Irian. "The west beyond the west." She
looked round at them all, scornful, irate. "Do you think we
dragons fly only on the winds of this world? Do you think our
freedom, for which we gave up all possessions, is no greater than
that of the mindless seagulls? That our realm is a few rocks at the
edge of your rich islands? You own the earth, you own the sea. But we
are the fire of sunlight, we fly the wind! You wanted land to own.
You wanted things to make and keep. And you have that. That was the
division, the verw nadan. But you were not content with your share.
You wanted not only your cares, but our freedom. You wanted the wind!
And by the spells and wizardries of those oath-breakers, you stole
half our realm from us, walled it away from life and light, so that
you could live there forever. Thieves, traitors!"
"Sister,"
Tehanu said. "These are not the men who stole from us. They are
those who pay the price."
A silence followed
her harsh, whispering voice. "What was the price?" said the
Namer. Tehanu looked at Irian. Irian hesitated, and then said in a
much subdued voice, "Greed puts out the sun. These are
Kalessin's words."
Azver the Patterner
spoke. As he spoke, he looked into the aisles of the trees across the
clearing, as if following the slight movements of the leaves. "The
ancients saw that the dragons' realm was not of the body only. That
they could fly… outside of time, it may be… And envying
that freedom, they followed the dragons' way into the west beyond the
west. There they claimed part of that realm as their own. A timeless
realm, where the self might be forever. But not in the body, as the
dragons were. Only in spirit could men be there… So they made
a wall which no living body could cross, neither man nor dragon. For
they feared the anger of the dragons. And their arts of naming laid a
great net of spells upon all the western lands, so that when the
people of the islands die, they would come to the west beyond the
west and live there in the spirit forever.
"But as the
wall was built and the spell laid, the wind ceased to blow, within
the wall. The sea withdrew. The springs ceased to run. The mountains
of sunrise became the mountains of the night. Those that died came to
a dark land, a dry land."
"I have walked
in that land," Lebannen said, low and unwillingly. "I do
not fear death, but I fear it."
There was a silence
among them.
"Cob, and
Thorion," the Summoner said in his rough, reluctant voice, "they
tried to break down that wall. To bring the dead back into life."
"Not into
life, master," Seppel said. "Still, like the Rune Makers,
they sought the bodiless, immortal self."
"Yet their
spells disturbed that place," the Summoner said, brooding. "So
the dragons began to remember the ancient wrong… And so the
souls of the dead come reaching now across the wall, yearning back to
life."
Alder stood up. He
said, "It is not life they yearn for. It is death. To be one
with the earth again. To rejoin it."
They all looked at
him, but he hardly knew it; his awareness was half with them, half in
the dry land. The grass beneath his feet was green and sunlit, was
dead and dim. The leaves of the trees trembled above him and the low
stone wall lay only a little distance from him, down the dark hill.
Of them all he saw only Tehanu; he could not see her clearly, but he
knew her, standing between him and the wall. He spoke to her. "They
built it, but they cannot unbuild it," he said. "Will you
help me, Tehanu?"
"I will,
Hara," she said.
A shadow rushed
between them, a great dark bulky strength, hiding her, seizing him,
holding him; he struggled, gasped for breath, could not draw breath,
saw red fire in the darkness, and saw nothing more.
They met in the
starlight at the edge of the glade, the king of the western lands and
the Master of Roke, the two powers of Earthsea.
"Will he
live?" the Summoner asked, and Lebannen answered, "The
healer says he is in no danger now."
"I did wrong,"
said the Summoner. "I am sorry for it."
"Why did you
summon him back?" the king asked, not reproving but wanting an
answer.
After a long time
the Summoner said, grimly, "Because I had the power to do it."
They paced along in
silence down an open path among the great trees. It was very dark to
either hand, but the starlight shone grey where they walked.
"I was wrong.
But it is not right to want to die," the Summoner said. The burr
of the East Reach was in his voice. He spoke low, almost pleadingly.
"For the very old, the very ill, it may be. But life is given
us. Surely it's wrong not to hold and treasure that great gift!"
"Death also is
given us," said the king.
Alder lay on a
pallet on the grass. He should lie out under the stars, the Patterner
had said, and the old Master Herbal had agreed to that. He lay
asleep, and Tehanu sat still beside him.
Tenar sat in the
doorway of the low stone house and watched her. The great stars of
late summer shone above the clearing: highest of them the star called
Tehanu, the Swan's Heart, the linchpin of the sky.
Seserakh came
quietly out of the house and sat down on the threshold beside her.
She had taken off the circlet that held her veil, leaving her mass of
tawny hair unbound.
"Oh my
friend," she murmured, "what will happen to us? The dead
are coming here. Do you feel them? Like the tide rising. Across that
wall. I think nobody can stop them. All the dead people, from the
graves of all the islands of the west, all the centuries…"
Tenar felt the
beating, the calling, in her head and in her blood. She knew now,
they all knew, what Alder had known. But she held to what she
trusted, even if trust had become mere hope. She said, "They are
only the dead, Seserakh. We built a false wall. It must be unbuilt.
But there is a true one."
Tehanu got up and
came softly over to them. She sat on the doorstep below them.
"He's all
right, he's sleeping," she whispered.
"Were you
there with him?" Tenar asked.
Tehanu nodded. "We
were at the wall."
"What did the
Summoner do?"
"Summoned
him—brought him back by force."
"Into life."
"Into life."
"I don't know
which I should fear more," Tenar said, "death or life. I
wish I could be done with fear."
Seserakh's face,
the wave of her warm hair, bent down to Tenar's shoulder for a moment
in a light caress. "You are brave, brave," she murmured.
"But oh! I fear the sea! and I fear death!"
Tehanu sat quietly.
In the faint soft light that hung among the trees, Tenar could see
how her daughter's slender hand lay crossed over her burnt and
twisted hand.
"I think,"
Tehanu said in her soft, strange voice, "that when I die, I can
breathe back the breath that made me live. I can give back to the
world all that I didn't do. All that I might have been and couldn't
be. All the choices I didn't make. All the things I lost and spent
and wasted. I can give them back to the world. To the lives that
haven't been lived yet. That will be my gift back to the world that
gave me the life I did live, the love I loved, the breath I
breathed."
She looked up at
the stars and sighed. "Not for a long time yet," she
whispered. Then she looked round at Tenar.
Seserakh stroked
Tenar's hair gently, rose, and went silently into the house.
"Before long,
I think, mother…"
"I know."
"I don't want
to leave you."
"You have to
leave me."
"I know."
They sat on in the
glimmering darkness of the Grove, silent.
"Look,"
Tehanu murmured. A shooting star crossed the sky, a quick,
slow-fading trail of light.
Five wizards sat in
starlight. "Look," one said, his hand following the trail
of the shooting star.
"The soul of a
dragon dying," said Azver the Patterner "So they say in
Karego-At."
"Do dragons
die?" asked Onyx, musing. "Not as we do I think."
"They don't
live as we do. They move between the worlds. So says Orm Irian. From
the world's wind to the other wind."
"As we sought
to do," said Seppel. "And failed."
Gamble looked at
him curiously. "Have you on Paln always known this tale, this
lore we have learned today—of the parting of dragon and
mankind, and the making of the dry land?"
"Not as we
heard it today. I was taught that the verw nadan was the first great
triumph of the art magic. And that the goal of wizardry was to
triumph over time and live forever… Hence the evils the
Pelnish Lore has done."
"At least you
kept the Mother knowledge we despised," Onyx said. "As your
people did, Azver."
"Well, you had
the sense to build your Great House here," the Patterner said,
smiling.
"But we built
it wrong," Onyx said. "All we build, we build wrong."
"So we must
knock it down," said Seppel.
"No,"
said Gamble. "We're not dragons. We do live in houses. We have
to have some walls, at least."
"So long as
the wind can blow through the windows," said Azver.
"And who will
come in the doors?" asked the Doorkeeper in his mild voice.
There was a pause.
A cricket trilled industriously somewhere across the glade, fell
silent, trilled again.
"Dragons?"
said Azver.
The Doorkeeper
shook his head. "I think maybe the division that was begun, and
then betrayed, will be completed at last," he said. "The
dragons will go free, and leave us here to the choice we made."
"The knowledge
of good and evil," said Onyx.
"The joy of
making, shaping," said Seppel. "Our mastery."
"And our
greed, our weakness, our fear," said Azver.
The cricket was
answered by another, closer to the stream. The two trills pulsed,
crossed, in and out of rhythm.
"What I fear,"
said Gamble, "so much that I fear to say it—is this: that
when the dragons go, our mastery will go with them. Our art. Our
magic."
The silence of the
others showed that they feared what he did. But the Doorkeeper spoke
at last, gently, but with some certainty. "No, I think not. They
are the Making, yes. But we learned the Making. We made it ours. It
can't be taken from us. To lose it we must forget it, throw it away."
"As my people
did," said Azver.
"Yet your
people remembered what the earth is, what life everlasting is,"
said Seppel. "While we forgot."
There was another
long silence among them.
"I could reach
my hand out to the wall," Gamble said in a very low voice, and
Seppel said, "They are near, they are very near."
"How are we to
know what we should do?" Onyx said.
Azver spoke into
the silence that followed the question.
"Once when my
lord the Archmage was here with me in the Grove, he said to me he had
spent his life learning how to choose to do what he had no choice but
to do."
"I wish he
were here now," said Onyx.
"He's done
with doing," the Doorkeeper murmured smiling.
"But we're
not. We sit here talking on the edge of the precipice—we all
know it." Onyx looked round at their starlit faces. "What
do the dead want of us?"
"What do the
dragons want of us?" said Gamble. "These women who are
dragons, dragons who are women—why are they here? Can we trust
them?"
"Have we a
choice?" said the Doorkeeper.
"I think not,"
said the Patterner. An edge of hardness, a sword's edge, had come
into his voice. "We can only follow."
"Follow the
dragons?" Gamble asked.
Azver shook his
head. "Alder."
"But he's no
guide, Patterner!" said Gamble. "A village mender?"
Onyx said, "Alder
has wisdom, but in his hands, not in his head. He follows his heart.
Certainly he doesn't seek to lead us."
"Yet he was
chosen from among us all."
"Who chose
him?" Seppel asked softly.
The Patterner
answered him: "The dead."
They sat silent.
The crickets' trill had ceased. Two tall figures came towards them
through the grass lit grey by starlight. "May Brand and I sit
with you a while?" Lebannen said. "There is no sleep
tonight."
On the doorstep of
the house on the Overfell, Ged sat watching the stars above the sea.
He had gone in to sleep an hour or more ago, but as he closed his
eyes he saw the hillside and heard the voices rising like a wave. He
got up at once and went outside, where he could see the stars move.
He was tired. His
eyes would close, and then he would be there by the wall of stones,
his heart cold with dread that he would be there forever, not knowing
the way back. At last, impatient and sick of fear, he got up again,
fetched a lantern from the house and lit it, and set off on the path
to Moss's house. Moss might or might not be frightened; she lived
pretty near the wall, these days. But Heather would be in a panic,
and Moss would not be able to soothe her. And since whatever had to
be done, it wasn't he who could do it this time, he could at least go
comfort the poor half-wit. He could tell her it was only dreams.
It was hard going
in the dark, the lantern throwing great shadows of small things
across the path. He walked slower than he would have liked to walk,
and stumbled sometimes.
He saw a light in
the widower's house, late as it was. A child wailed, over in the
village. Mother, mother, why are the people crying? Who are the
people crying, mother? There was no sleep there, either. There was
not much sleep anywhere in Earthsea, tonight, Ged thought. He grinned
a little as he thought it; for he had always liked that pause, that
fearful pause, the moment before things changed.
Alder woke. he lay
on earth and felt its depth beneath him. Above him the bright stars
burned, the stars of summer, moving between leaf and leaf with the
wind's blowing, moving from east to west with the world's turning. He
watched them a while before he let them go. Tehanu was waiting for
him on the hill.
"What must we
do, Hara?" she asked him.
"We have to
mend the world," he said. He smiled, because his heart had grown
light at last. "We have to break the wall."
"Can they help
us?" she asked, for the dead were gathered waiting down in the
darkness as countless as grass or sand or stars, silent now, a great,
dim beach of souls.
"No," he
said, "but maybe others can." He walked down the hill to
the wall. It was little more than waist-high here. He put his hands
on one of the stones of the coping row and tried to move it. It was
fixed fast, or was heavier than a stone should be; he could not lift
it, could not make it move at all.
Tehanu came beside
him. "Help me," he said. She put her hands on the stone,
the human hand and the burnt claw, gripping it as well as she could,
and gave a lifting tug as he did. The stone moved a little, then a
little more. "Push it!" she said, and together they pushed
it slowly out of place, grating hard on the rock beneath it, till it
fell on the far side of the wall with a dull heavy thump.
The next stone was
smaller; together they could lift it up out of its place. They let it
drop into the dust on the near side.
A tremor ran
through the ground under their feet then. Small chinking stones in
the wall rattled. And with a long sigh, the multitudes of the dead
came closer to the wall.
The patterner stood
up suddenly and stood listening. Leaves stormed all about the glade,
the trees of the Grove bowed and trembled as if under a great wind,
but there was no wind.
"Now it
changes," he said, and he walked away from them, into the
darkness under the trees.
The Summoner, the
Doorkeeper, and Seppel rose and followed him, quick and silent.
Gamble and Onyx followed more slowly after them.
Lebannen stood up;
he took a few steps after the others, hesitated, and hurried across
the glade to the low house of stone and sod. "Irian," he
said, stooping to the dark doorway. "Irian, will you take me
with you?"
She came out of the
house; she was smiling, and there was a kind of fiery brightness all
about her. "Come then, come quick," she said, and took his
hand. Her hand burned like a coal of fire as she lifted him into the
other wind.
After a little time
Seserakh came out of the house into the starlight, and after her came
Tenar. They stood and looked about them. Nothing moved; the trees
were still again.
"They are all
gone," Seserakh whispered. "On the Dragons' Way."
She took a step
forward, gazing into the dark.
"What are we
to do, Tenar?"
"We are to
keep the house," Tenar said.
"Oh!"
Seserakh whispered, dropping to her knees. She had seen Lebannen
lying near the doorway, stretched facedown in the grass. "He
isn't dead—I think—Oh, my dear Lord King, don't go, don't
die!"
"He's with
them. Stay with him. Keep him warm. Keep the house, Seserakh,"
Tenar said. She went to where Alder lay, his unseeing eyes turned to
the stars. She sat down by him, her hand on his. She waited.
Alder could
scarcely move the great stone his hands were on, but the Summoner was
beside him, stooping with his shoulder against it, and said, "Now!"
Together they pushed it till it overbalanced and dropped down with
that same heavy, final thump on the far side of the wall.
Others were there
now with him and Tehanu, wrenching at the stones, casting them down
beside the wall. Alder saw his own hands cast shadows for an instant
from a red gleam. Orm Irian, as he had seen her first, a great dragon
shape, had let out her fiery breath as she struggled to move a
boulder from the lowest rank of stones, deepset in the earth. Her
talons struck sparks and her thorned back arched, and the rock rolled
ponderously free, breaching the wall entirely in that place.
There was a vast,
soft cry among the shadows on the other side, like the sound of the
sea on a hollow shore. Their darkness surged up against the wall. But
Alder looked up and saw that it was no longer dark. Light moved in
that sky where the stars had never moved, quick sparks of fire far in
the dark west.
"Kalessin!"
That was Tehanu's
voice. He looked at her. She was gazing upward, westward. She had no
eye for earth.
She reached up her
arms. Fire ran along her hands, her arms, into her hair, into her
face and body, flamed up into great wings above her head, and lifted
her into the air, a creature all fire, blazing, beautiful.
She cried out
aloud, a clear, wordless cry. She flew high, headlong, fast, up into
the sky where the light was growing and a white wind had erased the
unmeaning stars.
From among the
hosts of the dead a few here and there, like her, rose up flickering
into dragons, and mounted on the wind.
Most came forward
afoot. They were not pressing, not crying out now, but walking with
unhurried certainty towards the fallen places in the wall: great
multitudes of men and women, who as they came to the broken wall did
not hesitate but stepped across it and were gone: a wisp of dust, a
breath that shone an instant in the ever-brightening light.
Alder watched them.
He still held in his hands, forgotten, a chinking stone he had
wrenched from the wall to loosen a larger rock. He watched the dead
go free. At last he saw her among them. He tossed the stone aside
then and stepped forward. "Lily," he said. She saw him and
smiled and held out her hand to him. He took her hand, and they
crossed together into the sunlight.
Lebannen stood by
the ruined wall and watched the dawn brighten in the east. There was
an east now, where there had been no direction, no way to go. There
was east and west, and light and motion. The very ground moved,
shook, shivering like a great animal, so that the wall of stones
beyond where they had broken it shuddered and slid into rubble. Fire
broke from the far, black peaks of the mountains called Paln, the
fire that burns in the heart of the world, the fire that feeds
dragons.
He looked into the
sky over those mountains and saw, as he and Ged had seen them once
above the western sea, the dragons flying on the wind of morning.
Three came wheeling
towards him where he stood among the others near the crest of the
hill, above the ruined wall. Two he knew, Orm Irian and Kalessin. The
third had bright mail, gold, with wings of gold. That one flew
highest and did not stoop down to them. Orm Irian played about her in
the air and they flew together, one chasing the other higher and
higher, till all at once the highest rays of the rising sun struck
Tehanu and she burned like her name, a great bright star.
Kalessin circled
again, flew low, and alighted hugely amid the ruins of the wall.
"Agni
Lebannen," said the dragon to the king.
"Eldest,"
the king said to the dragon.
"Aissadan verw
nadannan," said the vast, hissing voice, like a sea of cymbals.
Beside Lebannen,
Brand the Summoner of Roke stood planted solidly. He repeated the
dragon's words in the Speech of the Making, and then said them in
Hardic: "What was divided is divided."
The Patterner stood
near them, his hair bright in the brightening light. He said, "What
was built is broken. What was broken is made whole."
Then he looked up
yearning into the sky, at the gold dragon and the red-bronze one; but
they had flown almost out of sight, wheeling now in vast gyres over
the long, falling land, where empty shadow cities faded to nothing in
the light of day.
"Eldest,"
he said, and the long head swung slowly back to him.
"Will she
follow the way back through the forest, sometimes?" Azver asked
in the speech of dragons.
Kalessin's long,
fathomless, yellow eye regarded him. The enormous mouth seemed, like
the mouths of lizards, closed upon a smile. It did not speak.
Then ponderously
dragging its length along the wall so that stones still standing slid
and fell grating beneath its iron belly, Kalessin writhed away from
them, and with a rush and rattle of upraised wings pushed off from
the hillside and flew low over the land towards the mountains, whose
peaks now were bright with smoke and white steam, fire and sunlight.
"Come,
friends," said Seppel in his soft voice. "It's not yet our
time to go free."
Sunlight was in the
sky above the crowns of the highest trees, but the glade still held
the chill grey of dawn. Tenar sat with her hand on Alder's hand, her
face bowed down. She looked at the cold dew beading a grass blade,
how it hung in tiny, delicate drops along the blade, each drop
reflecting all the world.
Someone spoke her
name. She did not look up.
"He's gone,"
she said.
The Patterner knelt
by her. He touched Alder's face with a gentle hand.
He knelt there
silent a while. Then he said to Tenar in her language, "My lady,
I saw Tehanu. She flies golden on the other wind."
Tenar glanced up at
him. His face was white and worn, but there was a shadow of glory in
his eyes.
She struggled and
then said, speaking roughly and almost inaudibly, "Whole?"
He nodded.
She stroked Alder's
hand, the mender's hand, fine, skillful. Tears came into her eyes.
"Let me be
with him a while," she said, and she began to cry. She put her
hands to her face and cried hard, bitterly, silently.
Azver went to the
little group by the door of the house. Onyx and Gamble were near the
Summoner, who stood, heavy and anxious, near the princess. She
crouched beside Lebannen, her arms across him, protecting him, daring
any wizard to touch him. Her eyes flashed. She held Lebannen's short
steel dagger naked in her hand.
"I came back
with him," Brand said to Azver. "I tried to stay with him.
I wasn't sure of the way. She won't let me near him."
"Ganai,"
Azver said, her title in Kargish, princess.
Her eyes flashed up
to him. "Oh may Atwah-Wuluah be thanked and the Mother praised
for ever!" she cried. "Lord Azver! Make these
accursed-sorcerers go away. Kill them! They have killed my king."
She held out the dagger to him by its slender steel blade.
"No, princess.
He went with the dragon Irian. But this sorcerer brought him back to
us. Let me see him," and he knelt and turned Lebannen's face a
little to see it better, and laid his hands on his chest. "He's
cold," he said. "It was a hard way back. Take him in your
arms, princess. Keep him warm."
"I have tried
to," she said, biting her lip. She flung down the dagger and
bent to the unconscious man. "O poor king!" she said softly
in Hardic, "dear king, poor king!"
Azver got up and
said to the Summoner, "I think he will be all right, Brand. She
is much more use than we are, now."
The Summoner put
out his big hand and took hold of Azver's arm. "Steady now,"
he said.
"The
Doorkeeper," Azver said, going whiter than before and looking
around the glade.
"He came back
with the Pelnishman," Brand said. "Sit down, Azver."
Azver obeyed him,
sitting down on the log seat the old Changer had sat on in their
circle the afternoon before. A thousand years ago it seemed. The old
men had gone back to the School in the evening… And then the
long night had begun, the night that brought the wall of stones so
close that to sleep was to be there, and to be there was terror, so
no one had slept. No one, maybe, in all Roke, in all the isles…
Only Alder, who went to guide them… Azver found he was dozing
and shivering.
Gamble tried to
make him go inside the winter house, but Azver insisted that he
should be near the princess to interpret for her. And near Tenar, he
thought without saying it, to protect her. To let her grieve. But
Alder was done with grieving. He had passed his grief to her. To them
all. His joy…
The Herbal came
from the School and fussed about Azver, put a winter cloak over his
shoulders. He sat on in a weary, feverish half doze, not heeding the
others, dimly irritated by the presence of so many people in his
sweet silent glade, watching the sunlight creep down among the
leaves. His vigil was rewarded when the princess came to him, knelt
before him looking with solicitous respect into his face, and said,
"Lord Azver, the king would speak with you."
She helped him
stand up, as if he were an old man. He did not mind. "Thank you,
gainha? he said.
"I am not
queen," she said with a laugh.
"You will be,"
said the Patterner.
It was the strong
tide of the full moon, and Dolphin had to wait for the slack to run
between the Armed Cliffs. Tenar did not disembark in Gont Port till
midmorning, and then there was the long walk uphill. It was near
sunset when she came through Re Albi and took the cliff path to the
house.
Ged was watering
the cabbages, well grown by now.
He straightened up
and looked at her coming to him, that hawk look, frowning. "Ah,"
he said.
"Oh my dear,"
she said. She hurried, the last few steps, as he came to her.
She was tired. She
was very glad to sit with him with a glass of Spark's good red wine
and watch the evening of early autumn flare into gold over all the
western sea.
"How can I
tell you everything?" she said.
"Tell it
backward," he said.
"All right. I
will. They wanted me to stay, but I said I wanted to go home. But
there was a council meeting, the King's Council, you know, for the
betrothal. There'll be a grand wedding and all, of course, but I
don't think I have to go. Because that was truly when they married.
With Elfar-ran's Ring. Our ring."
He looked at her
and smiled, the broad, sweet smile that she thought, perhaps wrongly,
perhaps rightly, nobody but her had ever seen on his face.
"Yes?" he
said.
"Lebannen came
and stood here, see, on my left, and then Seserakh came and stood
here on my right. In front of Morred's throne. And I held up the
Ring. The way I did when we brought it to Havnor, remember? in
Lookfar, in the sunlight? Lebannen took it in his hands and kissed it
and gave it back to me. And I put it on her arm, it just went over
her hand—she's not a little woman, Seserakh—Oh, you
should see her, Ged! What a beauty she is, what a lion! He's met his
match.—And everybody shouted. And there were festivals and so
on. And so I could get away."
"Go on."
"Backward?"
"Backward."
"Well. Before
that was Roke."
"Roke's never
simple."
"No."
They drank their
red wine in silence.
"Tell me of
the Patterner."
She smiled.
"Seserakh calls him the Warrior. She says only a warrior would
fall in love with a dragon."
"Who followed
him to the dry land—that night?"
"He followed
Alder."
"Ah," Ged
said, with surprise and a certain satisfaction.
"So did others
of the masters. And Lebannen, and Irian…"
"And Tehanu."
A silence.
"She went out
of the house. When I came out she was gone." A long silence.
"Azver saw her. In the sunrise. On the other wind."
A silence.
"They're all
gone. There are no dragons left in Havnor or the western islands.
Onyx said: as that shadow place and all the shadows in it rejoined
the world of light, so they regained their true realm."
"We broke the
world to make it whole," Ged said.
After a long time
Tenar said in a soft, thin voice, "The Patterner believes Irian
will come to the Grove if he calls to her."
Ged said nothing,
till, after a while: "Look there, Tenar."
She looked where he
was looking, into the dim gulf of air above the western sea.
"If she comes,
she'll come from there," he said. "And if she doesn't come,
she is there."
She nodded. "I
know." Her eyes were full of tears. "Lebannen sang me a
song, on the ship, when we were going back to Havnor." She could
not sing; she whispered the words. "O my joy, be free…"
He looked away, up
at the forests, at the mountain, the darkening heights.
"Tell me,"
she said, "tell me what you did while I was gone."
"Kept the
house."
"Did you walk
in the forest?"
"Not yet,"
he said.